Uncle Silas Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Uncle Silas Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Enjoy this wonderful eBook from All You Can Books audiobooks and ebooks service.
Visit us at AllYouCanBooks.com for more great titles you can enjoy anytime, anywhere.
-1-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[Transcriber’s note: The spelling inconsistencies of the original have been retained in this etext.]
UNCLE SILAS
A Tale of Bartram-Haugh
By
J. S. LeFanu
1899
TO
THE RIGHT HON.
This Tale
-2-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
IS INSCRIBED BY
THE AUTHOR
[pg xvii]
A PRELIMINARY WORD
The writer of this Tale ventures, in his own person, to address a very few words, chiefly of explanation, to
his readers. A leading situation in this ’Story of Bartram-Haugh’ is repeated, with a slight variation, from a
short magazine tale of some fifteen pages written by him, and published long ago in a periodical under the
title of ’A Passage in the Secret History of an Irish Countess,’ and afterwards, still anonymously, in a small
volume under an altered title. It is very unlikely that any of his readers should have encountered, and still
more so that they should remember, this trifle. The bare possibility, however, he has ventured to anticipate
by this brief explanation, lest he should be charged with plagiarism—always a disrespect to a reader.
May he be permitted a few words also of remonstrance against the promiscuous application of the term
’sensation’ to that large school of fiction which transgresses no one of those canons of construction and
morality which, in producing the unapproachable ’Waverley Novels,’ their great author imposed upon
himself? No one, it is assumed, would describe Sir Walter Scott’s romances as ’sensation novels;’ yet in that
marvellous series there is not a single tale in which death, crime, and, in some form, mystery, have not a
place.
Passing by those grand romances of ’Ivanhoe,’ ’Old Mortality,’ and ’Kenilworth,’ with their terrible
intricacies of crime and bloodshed, constructed with so fine a mastery of the art of exciting suspense and
horror, let the reader pick out those two exceptional novels in the series which profess to paint
contemporary manners and the scenes of common life; and remembering [pg xviii] in the ’Antiquary’ the
vision in the tapestried chamber, the duel, the horrible secret, and the death of old Elspeth, the drowned
fisherman, and above all the tremendous situation of the tide-bound party under the cliffs; and in ’St.
Ronan’s Well,’ the long-drawn mystery, the suspicion of insanity, and the catastrophe of
suicide;—determine whether an epithet which it would be a profanation to apply to the structure of any,
-3-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
even the most exciting of Sir Walter Scott’s stories, is fairly applicable to tales which, though illimitably
inferior in execution, yet observe the same limitations of incident, and the same moral aims.
The author trusts that the Press, to whose masterly criticism and generous encouragement he and other
humble labourers in the art owe so much, will insist upon the limitation of that degrading term to the
peculiar type of fiction which it was originally intended to indicate, and prevent, as they may, its being
made to include the legitimate school of tragic English romance, which has been ennobled, and in great
measure founded, by the genius of Sir Walter Scott.
[pg xix]
CONTENTS
CHAPTER
-4-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
-5-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg xxi]
UNCLE SILAS
A Tale of Bartram-Haugh
[pg 1]
-6-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER I
It was winter—that is, about the second week in November—and great gusts were rattling at the windows,
and wailing and thundering among our tall trees and ivied chimneys—a very dark night, and a very cheerful
fire blazing, a pleasant mixture of good round coal and spluttering dry wood, in a genuine old fireplace, in a
sombre old room. Black wainscoting glimmered up to the ceiling, in small ebony panels; a cheerful clump
of wax candles on the tea-table; many old portraits, some grim and pale, others pretty, and some very
graceful and charming, hanging from the walls. Few pictures, except portraits long and short, were there.
On the whole, I think you would have taken the room for our parlour. It was not like our modern notion of a
drawing-room. It was a long room too, and every way capacious, but irregularly shaped.
A girl, of a little more than seventeen, looking, I believe, younger still; slight and rather tall, with a great
deal of golden hair, dark grey-eyed, and with a countenance rather sensitive and melancholy, was sitting at
the tea-table, in a reverie. I was that girl.
The only other person in the room—the only person in the house related to me—was my father. He was Mr.
Ruthyn, of Knowl, so called in his county, but he had many other places, was of a very ancient lineage, who
had refused a baronetage often, and it was said even a viscounty, being of a proud and defiant spirit, and
thinking themselves higher in station and purer of blood than two-thirds of the nobility into whose ranks, it
was said, they had been invited to enter. Of all this family lore I knew but little and vaguely; only what is to
be gathered from the fireside talk of old retainers in the nursery.
[pg 02]
I am sure my father loved me, and I know I loved him. With the sure instinct of childhood I apprehended his
tenderness, although it was never expressed in common ways. But my father was an oddity. He had been
early disappointed in Parliament, where it was his ambition to succeed. Though a clever man, he failed
-7-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
there, where very inferior men did extremely well. Then he went abroad, and became a connoisseur and a
collector; took a part, on his return, in literary and scientific institutions, and also in the foundation and
direction of some charities. But he tired of this mimic government, and gave himself up to a country life, not
that of a sportsman, but rather of a student, staying sometimes at one of his places and sometimes at another,
and living a secluded life.
Rather late in life he married, and his beautiful young wife died, leaving me, their only child, to his care.
This bereavement, I have been told, changed him—made him more odd and taciturn than ever, and his
temper also, except to me, more severe. There was also some disgrace about his younger brother—my uncle
Silas—which he felt bitterly.
He was now walking up and down this spacious old room, which, extending round an angle at the far end,
was very dark in that quarter. It was his wont to walk up and down thus, without speaking—an exercise
which used to remind me of Chateaubriand’s father in the great chamber of the Château de Combourg. At
the far end he nearly disappeared in the gloom, and then returning emerged for a few minutes, like a portrait
with a background of shadow, and then again in silence faded nearly out of view.
This monotony and silence would have been terrifying to a person less accustomed to it than I. As it was, it
had its effect. I have known my father a whole day without once speaking to me. Though I loved him very
much, I was also much in awe of him.
While my father paced the floor, my thoughts were employed about the events of a month before. So few
things happened at Knowl out of the accustomed routine, that a very trifling occurrence was enough to set
people wondering and conjecturing in that serene household. My father lived in remarkable seclusion;
except for a ride, he hardly ever left the grounds of Knowl; [pg 03] and I don’t think it happened twice in
the year that a visitor sojourned among us.
There was not even that mild religious bustle which sometimes besets the wealthy and moral recluse. My
father had left the Church of England for some odd sect, I forget its name, and ultimately became, I was
told, a Swedenborgian. But he did not care to trouble me upon the subject. So the old carriage brought my
governess, when I had one, the old housekeeper, Mrs. Rusk, and myself to the parish church every Sunday.
And my father, in the view of the honest rector who shook his head over him—’a cloud without water,
carried about of winds, and a wandering star to whom is reserved the blackness of darkness’—corresponded
with the ’minister’ of his church, and was provokingly contented with his own fertility and illumination; and
-8-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Mrs. Rusk, who was a sound and bitter churchwoman, said he fancied he saw visions and talked with angels
like the rest of that ’rubbitch.’
I don’t know that she had any better foundation than analogy and conjecture for charging my father with
supernatural pretensions; and in all points when her orthodoxy was not concerned, she loved her master and
was a loyal housekeeper.
I found her one morning superintending preparations for the reception of a visitor, in the hunting-room it
was called, from the pieces of tapestry that covered its walls, representing scenes à la Wouvermans, of
falconry, and the chase, dogs, hawks, ladies, gallants, and pages. In the midst of whom Mrs. Rusk, in black
silk, was rummaging drawers, counting linen, and issuing orders.
Well, she only knew his name. It was a Mr. Bryerly. My papa expected him to dinner, and to stay for some
days.
’I guess he’s one of those creatures, dear, for I mentioned his name just to Dr. Clay (the rector), and he says
there is a Doctor Bryerly, a great conjurer among the Swedenborg sect—and that’s him, I do suppose.’
In my hazy notions of these sectaries there was mingled a suspicion of necromancy, and a weird
freemasonry, that inspired something of awe and antipathy.
Mr. Bryerly arrived time enough to dress at his leisure, before dinner. He entered the drawing-room—a tall,
lean man, all [pg 04] in ungainly black, with a white choker, with either a black wig, or black hair dressed in
imitation of one, a pair of spectacles, and a dark, sharp, short visage, rubbing his large hands together, and
with a short brisk nod to me, whom he plainly regarded merely as a child, he sat down before the fire,
crossed his legs, and took up a magazine.
This treatment was mortifying, and I remember very well the resentment of which he was quite
unconscious.
His stay was not very long; not one of us divined the object of his visit, and he did not prepossess us
favourably. He seemed restless, as men of busy habits do in country houses, and took walks, and a drive,
and read in the library, and wrote half a dozen letters.
-9-
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
His bed-room and dressing-room were at the side of the gallery, directly opposite to my father’s, which had
a sort of ante-room en suite, in which were some of his theological books.
The day after Mr. Bryerly’s arrival, I was about to see whether my father’s water caraffe and glass had been
duly laid on the table in this ante-room, and in doubt whether he was there, I knocked at the door.
I suppose they were too intent on other matters to hear, but receiving no answer, I entered the room. My
father was sitting in his chair, with his coat and waistcoat off, Mr. Bryerly kneeling on a stool beside him,
rather facing him, his black scratch wig leaning close to my father’s grizzled hair. There was a large tome of
their divinity lore, I suppose, open on the table close by. The lank black figure of Mr. Bryerly stood up, and
he concealed something quickly in the breast of his coat.
My father stood up also, looking paler, I think, than I ever saw him till then, and he pointed grimly to the
door, and said, ’Go.’
Mr. Bryerly pushed me gently back with his hands to my shoulders, and smiled down from his dark features
with an expression quite unintelligible to me.
I had recovered myself in a second, and withdrew without a word. The last thing I saw at the door was the
tall, slim figure in black, and the dark, significant smile following me: and then the door was shut and
locked, and the two Swedenborgians were left to their mysteries.
I remember so well the kind of shock and disgust I felt in [pg 05] the certainty that I had surprised them at
some, perhaps, debasing incantation—a suspicion of this Mr. Bryerly, of the ill-fitting black coat, and white
choker—and a sort of fear came upon me, and I fancied he was asserting some kind of mastery over my
father, which very much alarmed me.
I fancied all sorts of dangers in the enigmatical smile of the lank high-priest. The image of my father, as I
had seen him, it might be, confessing to this man in black, who was I knew not what, haunted me with the
disagreeable uncertainties of a mind very uninstructed as to the limits of the marvellous.
I mentioned it to no one. But I was immensely relieved when the sinister visitor took his departure the
morning after, and it was upon this occurrence that my mind was now employed.
- 10 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Some one said that Dr. Johnson resembled a ghost, who must be spoken to before it will speak. But my
father, in whatever else he may have resembled a ghost, did not in that particular; for no one but I in his
household—and I very seldom—dared to address him until first addressed by him. I had no notion how
singular this was until I began to go out a little among friends and relations, and found no such rule in force
anywhere else.
As I leaned back in my chair thinking, this phantasm of my father came, and turned, and vanished with a
solemn regularity. It was a peculiar figure, strongly made, thick-set, with a face large, and very stern; he
wore a loose, black velvet coat and waistcoat. It was, however, the figure of an elderly rather than an old
man—though he was then past seventy—but firm, and with no sign of feebleness.
I remember the start with which, not suspecting that he was close by me, I lifted my eyes, and saw that
large, rugged countenance looking fixedly on me, from less than a yard away.
After I saw him, he continued to regard me for a second or two; and then, taking one of the heavy
candlesticks in his gnarled hand, he beckoned me to follow him; which, in silence and wondering, I
accordingly did.
He led me across the hall, where there were lights burning, and into a lobby by the foot of the back stairs,
and so into his library.
It is a long, narrow room, with two tall, slim windows at the far end, now draped in dark curtains. Dusky it
was with but one candle; and he paused near the door, at the left-hand side of [pg 06] which stood, in those
days, an old-fashioned press or cabinet of carved oak. In front of this he stopped.
He had odd, absent ways, and talked more to himself, I believe, than to all the rest of the world put together.
’She won’t understand,’ he whispered, looking at me enquiringly. ’No, she won’t. Will she?’
Then there was a pause, during which he brought forth from his breast pocket a small bunch of some
half-dozen keys, on one of which he looked frowningly, every now and then balancing it a little before his
eyes, between his finger and thumb, as he deliberated.
- 11 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’They are easily frightened—ay, they are. I’d better do it another way.’
’They are—yes—I had better do it another way—another way; yes—and she’ll not suspect—she’ll not
suppose.’
Then he looked steadfastly upon the key, and from it to me, suddenly lifting it up, and said abruptly, ’See,
child,’ and, after a second or two, ’Remember this key.’
’It opens that,’ and he tapped it sharply on the door of the cabinet. ’In the daytime it is always here,’ at
which word he dropped it into his pocket again. ’You see?—and at night under my pillow—you hear me?’
’Yes, sir.’
’You won’t forget this cabinet—oak—next the door—on your left—you won’t forget?’
’No, sir.’
’Pity she’s a girl, and so young—ay, a girl, and so young—no sense—giddy. You say, you’ll remember?’
’Yes, sir.’
He turned round and looked full upon me, like a man who has taken a sudden resolution; and I think for a
moment he had made up his mind to tell me a great deal more. But if so, he changed it again; and after
another pause, he said slowly and sternly—’You [pg 07] will tell nobody what I have said, under pain of my
displeasure.’
’Good child!’
- 12 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Except,’ he resumed, ’under one contingency; that is, in case I should be absent, and Dr. Bryerly—you
recollect the thin gentleman, in spectacles and a black wig, who spent three days here last month—should
come and enquire for the key, you understand, in my absence.’
’Yes, sir.’
’Let us return.’
Which, accordingly, we did, in silence; the storm outside, like a dirge on a great organ, accompanying our
flitting.
CHAPTER II
UNCLE SILAS
When we reached the drawing-room, I resumed my chair, and my father his slow and regular walk to and
fro, in the great room. Perhaps it was the uproar of the wind that disturbed the ordinary tenor of his
thoughts; but, whatever was the cause, certainly he was unusually talkative that night.
After an interval of nearly half an hour, he drew near again, and sat down in a high-backed arm-chair,
beside the fire, and nearly opposite to me, and looked at me steadfastly for some time, as was his wont,
before speaking; and said he—
In cases of this kind I merely set down my book or work, as it might be, and adjusted myself to listen
without speaking.
- 13 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Your French is pretty well, and your Italian; but you have no German. Your music may be pretty
good—I’m no judge—but your drawing might be better—yes—yes. I believe there are accomplished
ladies—finishing governesses, they call them—who [pg 08] undertake more than any one teacher would
have professed in my time, and do very well. She can prepare you, and next winter, then, you shall visit
France and Italy, where you may be accomplished as highly as you please.’
’You shall. It is nearly six months since Miss Ellerton left you—too long without a teacher.’
’Dr. Bryerly will ask you about that key, and what it opens; you show all that to him, and no one else.’
’But,’ I said, for I had a great terror of disobeying him in ever so minute a matter, ’you will then be absent,
sir—how am I to find the key?’
He smiled on me suddenly—a bright but wintry smile—it seldom came, and was very transitory, and kindly
though mysterious.
’True, child; I’m glad you are so wise; that, you will find, I have provided for, and you shall know exactly
where to look. You have remarked how solitarily I live. You fancy, perhaps, I have not got a friend, and you
are nearly right—nearly, but not altogether. I have a very sure friend—one—a friend whom I once
misunderstood, but now appreciate.’
’He’ll make me a call, some day soon; I’m not quite sure when. I won’t tell you his name—you’ll hear that
soon enough, and I don’t want it talked of; and I must make a little journey with him. You’ll not be afraid of
being left alone for a time?’
’And have you promised, sir?’ I answered, with another question, my curiosity and anxiety overcoming my
awe. He took my questioning very good-humouredly.
’Well—promise?—no, child; but I’m under condition; he’s not to be denied. I must make the excursion with
him the moment he calls. I have no choice; but, on the whole, I rather like it—remember, I say, I rather like
- 14 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
it.’
And he smiled again, with the same meaning, that was at once stern and sad. The exact purport of these
sentences remained fixed in my mind, so that even at this distance of time I am quite sure of them.
A person quite unacquainted with my father’s habitually abrupt and odd way of talking, would have fancied
that he was possibly [pg 09] a little disordered in his mind. But no such suspicion for a moment troubled
me. I was quite sure that he spoke of a real person who was coming, and that his journey was something
momentous; and when the visitor of whom he spoke did come, and he departed with him upon that
mysterious excursion, I perfectly understood his language and his reasons for saying so much and yet so
little.
You are not to suppose that all my hours were passed in the sort of conference and isolation of which I have
just given you a specimen; and singular and even awful as were sometimes my tête-a-têtes with my father, I
had grown so accustomed to his strange ways, and had so unbounded a confidence in his affection, that they
never depressed or agitated me in the manner you might have supposed. I had a great deal of quite a
different sort of chat with good old Mrs. Rusk, and very pleasant talks with Mary Quince, my somewhat
ancient maid; and besides all this, I had now and then a visit of a week or so at the house of some one of our
country neighbours, and occasionally a visitor—but this, I must own, very rarely—at Knowl.
There had come now a little pause in my father’s revelations, and my fancy wandered away upon a flight of
discovery. Who, I again thought, could this intending visitor be, who was to come, armed with the
prerogative to make my stay-at-home father forthwith leave his household goods—his books and his
child—to whom he clung, and set forth on an unknown knight-errantry? Who but Uncle Silas, I
thought—that mysterious relative whom I had never seen—who was, it had in old times been very darkly
hinted to me, unspeakably unfortunate or unspeakably vicious—whom I had seldom heard my father
mention, and then in a hurried way, and with a pained, thoughtful look. Once only he had said anything
from which I could gather my father’s opinion of him, and then it was so slight and enigmatical that I might
have filled in the character very nearly as I pleased.
It happened thus. One day Mrs. Rusk was in the oak-room, I being then about fourteen. She was removing a
stain from a tapestry chair, and I watched the process with a childish interest. She sat down to rest
herself—she had been stooping over her work—and threw her head back, for her neck was weary, and in
[pg 10] this position she fixed her eyes on a portrait that hung before her.
- 15 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
It was a full-length, and represented a singularly handsome young man, dark, slender, elegant, in a costume
then quite obsolete, though I believe it was seen at the beginning of this century—white leather pantaloons
and top-boots, a buff waistcoat, and a chocolate-coloured coat, and the hair long and brushed back.
There was a remarkable elegance and a delicacy in the features, but also a character of resolution and ability
that quite took the portrait out of the category of mere fops or fine men. When people looked at it for the
first time, I have so often heard the exclamation—’What a wonderfully handsome man!’ and then, ’What a
clever face!’ An Italian greyhound stood by him, and some slender columns and a rich drapery in the
background. But though the accessories were of the luxurious sort, and the beauty, as I have said, refined,
there was a masculine force in that slender oval face, and a fire in the large, shadowy eyes, which were very
peculiar, and quite redeemed it from the suspicion of effeminacy.
’Yes, dear,’ answered Mrs. Rusk, looking, with her resolute little face, quietly on the portrait.
’He must be a very handsome man, Mrs. Rusk. Don’t you think so?’ I continued.
’He was, my dear—yes; but it is forty years since that was painted—the date is there in the corner, in the
shadow that comes from his foot, and forty years, I can tell you, makes a change in most of us;’ and Mrs.
Rusk laughed, in cynical good-humour.
There was a little pause, both still looking on the handsome man in top-boots, and I said—
’And why, Mrs. Rusk, is papa always so sad about Uncle Silas?’
’What’s that, child?’ said my father’s voice, very near. I looked round, with a start, and flushed and faltered,
receding a step from him.
’No harm, dear. You have said nothing wrong,’ he said gently, observing my alarm. ’You said I was always
sad, I think, about Uncle Silas. Well, I don’t know how you gather that; but if I [pg 11] were, I will now tell
you, it would not be unnatural. Your uncle is a man of great talents, great faults, and great wrongs. His
talents have not availed him; his faults are long ago repented of; and his wrongs I believe he feels less than I
do, but they are deep. Did she say any more, madam?’ he demanded abruptly of Mrs. Rusk.
- 16 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Nothing, sir,’ with a stiff little courtesy, answered Mrs. Rusk, who stood in awe of him.
’And there is no need, child,’ he continued, addressing himself to me, ’that you should think more of him at
present. Clear your head of Uncle Silas. One day, perhaps, you will know him—yes, very well—and
understand how villains have injured him.
’Mrs. Rusk, a word, if you please,’ beckoning to that lady, who trotted after him to the library.
I think he then laid some injunction upon the housekeeper, which was transmitted by her to Mary Quince,
for from that time forth I could never lead either to talk with me about Uncle Silas. They let me talk on, but
were reserved and silent themselves, and seemed embarrassed, and Mrs. Rusk sometimes pettish and angry,
when I pressed for information.
Thus curiosity was piqued; and round the slender portrait in the leather pantaloons and top-boots gathered
many-coloured circles of mystery, and the handsome features seemed to smile down upon my baffled
curiosity with a provoking significance.
Why is it that this form of ambition—curiosity—which entered into the temptation of our first parent, is so
specially hard to resist? Knowledge is power—and power of one sort or another is the secret lust of human
souls; and here is, beside the sense of exploration, the undefinable interest of a story, and above all,
something forbidden, to stimulate the contumacious appetite.
[pg 12]
CHAPTER III
A NEW FACE
- 17 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I think it was about a fortnight after that conversation in which my father had expressed his opinion, and
given me the mysterious charge about the old oak cabinet in his library, as already detailed, that I was one
night sitting at the great drawing-room window, lost in the melancholy reveries of night, and in admiration
of the moonlighted scene. I was the only occupant of the room; and the lights near the fire, at its farther end,
hardly reached to the window at which I sat.
The shorn grass sloped gently downward from the windows till it met the broad level on which stood, in
clumps, or solitarily scattered, some of the noblest timber in England. Hoar in the moonbeams stood those
graceful trees casting their moveless shadows upon the grass, and in the background crowning the
undulations of the distance, in masses, were piled those woods among which lay the solitary tomb where the
remains of my beloved mother rested.
The air was still. The silvery vapour hung serenely on the far horizon, and the frosty stars blinked brightly.
Everyone knows the effect of such a scene on a mind already saddened. Fancies and regrets float mistily in
the dream, and the scene affects us with a strange mixture of memory and anticipation, like some sweet old
air heard in the distance. As my eyes rested on those, to me, funereal but glorious woods, which formed the
background of the picture, my thoughts recurred to my father’s mysterious intimations and the image of the
approaching visitor; and the thought of the unknown journey saddened me.
In all that concerned his religion, from very early association, there was to me something of the unearthly
and spectral.
When my dear mamma died I was not nine years old; and I remember, two days before the funeral, there
came to Knowl, [pg 13] where she died, a thin little man, with large black eyes, and a very grave, dark face.
He was shut up a good deal with my dear father, who was in deep affliction; and Mrs. Rusk used to say, ’It
is rather odd to see him praying with that little scarecrow from London, and good Mr. Clay ready at call, in
the village; much good that little black whipper-snapper will do him!’
With that little black man, on the day after the funeral, I was sent out, for some reason, for a walk; my
governess was ill, I know, and there was confusion in the house, and I dare say the maids made as much of a
holiday as they could.
- 18 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I remember feeling a sort of awe of this little dark man; but I was not afraid of him, for he was gentle,
though sad—and seemed kind. He led me into the garden—the Dutch garden, we used to call it—with a
balustrade, and statues at the farther front, laid out in a carpet-pattern of brilliantly-coloured flowers. We
came down the broad flight of Caen stone steps into this, and we walked in silence to the balustrade. The
base was too high at the spot where we reached it for me to see over; but holding my hand, he said, ’Look
through that, my child. Well, you can’t; but I can see beyond it—shall I tell you what? I see ever so much. I
see a cottage with a steep roof, that looks like gold in the sunlight; there are tall trees throwing soft shadows
round it, and flowering shrubs, I can’t say what, only the colours are beautiful, growing by the walls and
windows, and two little children are playing among the stems of the trees, and we are on our way there, and
in a few minutes shall be under those trees ourselves, and talking to those little children. Yet now to me it is
but a picture in my brain, and to you but a story told by me, which you believe. Come, dear; let us be
going.’
So we descended the steps at the right, and side by side walked along the grass lane between tall trim walls
of evergreens. The way was in deep shadow, for the sun was near the horizon; but suddenly we turned to the
left, and there we stood in rich sunlight, among the many objects he had described.
’Is this your house, my little men?’ he asked of the children—pretty little rosy boys—who assented; and he
leaned with his open hand against the stem of one of the trees, and with a grave smile he nodded down to
me, saying—
’You see now, and hear, and feel for yourself that both the [pg 14] vision and the story were quite true; but
come on, my dear, we have further to go.’
And relapsing into silence we had a long ramble through the wood, the same on which I was now looking in
the distance. Every now and then he made me sit down to rest, and he in a musing solemn sort of way would
relate some little story, reflecting, even to my childish mind, a strange suspicion of a spiritual meaning, but
different from what honest Mrs. Rusk used to expound to me from the Parables, and, somehow, startling in
its very vagueness.
Thus entertained, though a little awfully, I accompanied the dark mysterious little ’whipper-snapper’
through the woodland glades. We came, to me quite unexpectedly, in the deep sylvan shadows, upon the
grey, pillared temple, four-fronted, with a slanting pedestal of lichen-stained steps, the lonely sepulchre in
which I had the morning before seen poor mamma laid. At the sight the fountains of my grief reopened, and
- 19 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I cried bitterly, repeating, ’Oh! mamma, mamma, little mamma!’ and so went on weeping and calling wildly
on the deaf and the silent. There was a stone bench some ten steps away from the tomb.
’Sit down beside me, my child,’ said the grave man with the black eyes, very kindly and gently. ’Now, what
do you see there?’ he asked, pointing horizontally with his stick towards the centre of the opposite structure.
’Yes, a stone wall with pillars, too high for either you or me to see over. But——’
Here he mentioned a name which I think must have been Swedenborg, from what I afterwards learnt of his
tenets and revelations; I only know that it sounded to me like the name of a magician in a fairy tale; I
fancied he lived in the wood which surrounded us, and I began to grow frightened as he proceeded.
’But Swedenborg sees beyond it, over, and through it, and has told me all that concerns us to know. He says
your mamma is not there.’
’She is taken away!’ I cried, starting up, and with streaming eyes, gazing on the building which, though I
stamped my feet in my distraction, I was afraid to approach. ’Oh, is mamma taken away? Where is she?
Where have they brought her to?’
I was uttering unconsciously very nearly the question with [pg 15] which Mary, in the grey of that
wondrous morning on which she stood by the empty sepulchre, accosted the figure standing near.
’Your mamma is alive but too far away to see or hear us. Swedenborg, standing here, can see and hear her,
and tells me all he sees, just as I told you in the garden about the little boys and the cottage, and the trees
and flowers which you could not see. You believed in when I told you. So I can tell you now as I did then;
and as we are both, I hope, walking on to the same place just as we did to the trees and cottage. You will
surely see with your own eyes how true the description is which I give you.’
I was very frightened, for I feared that when he had done his narrative we were to walk on through the wood
into that place of wonders and of shadows where the dead were visible.
He leaned his elbow on his knee, and his forehead on his hand, which shaded his downcast eyes. In that
attitude he described to me a beautiful landscape, radiant with a wondrous light, in which, rejoicing, my
mother moved along an airy path, ascending among mountains of fantastic height, and peaks, melting in
- 20 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
celestial colouring into the air, and peopled with human beings translated into the same image, beauty, and
splendour. And when he had ended his relation, he rose, took my hand, and smiling gently down on my
pale, wondering face, he said the same words he had spoken before—
’Oh! no, no, no—not now,’ I said, resisting, and very much frightened.
’Home, I mean, dear. We cannot walk to the place I have described. We can only reach it through the gate
of death, to which we are all tending, young and old, with sure steps.’
’And where is the gate of death?’ I asked in a sort of whisper, as we walked together, holding his hand, and
looking stealthily. He smiled sadly and said—
’When, sooner or later, the time comes, as Hagar’s eyes were opened in the wilderness, and she beheld the
fountain of water, so shall each of us see the door open before us, and enter in and be refreshed.’
For a long time following this walk I was very nervous; more so for the awful manner in which Mrs. Rusk
received my [pg 16] statement—with stern lips and upturned hands and eyes, and an angry expostulation: ’I
do wonder at you, Mary Quince, letting the child walk into the wood with that limb of darkness. It is a
mercy he did not show her the devil, or frighten her out of her senses, in that lonely place!’
Of these Swedenborgians, indeed, I know no more than I might learn from good Mrs. Rusk’s very
inaccurate talk. Two or three of them crossed in the course of my early life, like magic-lantern figures, the
disk of my very circumscribed observation. All outside was and is darkness. I once tried to read one of their
books upon the future state—heaven and hell; but I grew after a day or two so nervous that I laid it aside. It
is enough for me to know that their founder either saw or fancied he saw amazing visions, which, so far
from superseding, confirmed and interpreted the language of the Bible; and as dear papa accepted their
ideas, I am happy in thinking that they did not conflict with the supreme authority of holy writ.
Leaning on my hand, I was now looking upon that solemn wood, white and shadowy in the moonlight,
where, for a long time after that ramble with the visionary, I fancied the gate of death, hidden only by a
strange glamour, and the dazzling land of ghosts, were situate; and I suppose these earlier associations gave
to my reverie about my father’s coming visitor a wilder and a sadder tinge.
- 21 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER IV
MADAME DE LA ROUGIERRE
On a sudden, on the grass before me, stood an odd figure—a very tall woman in grey draperies, nearly
white under the moon, courtesying extraordinarily low, and rather fantastically.
I stared in something like a horror upon the large and rather hollow features which I did not know, smiling
very unpleasantly on me; and the moment it was plain that I saw her, the [pg 17] grey woman began
gobbling and cackling shrilly—I could not distinctly hear what through the window—and gesticulating
oddly with her long hands and arms.
As she drew near the window, I flew to the fireplace, and rang the bell frantically, and seeing her still there,
and fearing that she might break into the room, I flew out of the door, very much frightened, and met
Branston the butler in the lobby.
If I had said a man, I suppose fat Branston would have summoned and sent forward a detachment of
footmen. As it was, he bowed gravely, with a—
’Yes,’m—shall,’m.’
I don’t think that he was pleasantly impressed himself by the first sight of our visitor, for he stopped short
some steps of the window, and demanded rather sternly—
- 22 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
To this summons, her answer, which occupied a little time, was inaudible to me. But Branston replied—
’I wasn’t aware, ma’am; I heerd nothin’; if you’ll go round that way, you’ll see the hall-door steps, and I’ll
speak to the master, and do as he shall order.’
And Mr. Branston returned slowly down the long room, and halted with out-turned pumps and a grave
inclination before me, and the faintest amount of interrogation in the announcement—
To which I assented, and away strode the flat pumps of the butler to the library.
I stood breathless in the hall. Every girl at my age knows how much is involved in such an advent. I also
heard Mrs. Rusk, in a minute or two more, emerge I suppose from the study. She walked quickly, and
muttered sharply to herself—an [pg 18] evil trick, in which she indulged when much ’put about.’ I should
have been glad of a word with her; but I fancied she was vexed, and would not have talked satisfactorily.
She did not, however, come my way; merely crossing the hall with her quick, energetic step.
Was it really the arrival of a governess? Was that apparition which had impressed me so unpleasantly to
take the command of me—to sit alone with me, and haunt me perpetually with her sinister looks and shrilly
gabble?
I was just making up my mind to go to Mary Quince, and learn something definite, when I heard my
father’s step approaching from the library: so I quietly re-entered the drawingroom, but with an anxious and
throbbing heart.
- 23 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
When he came in, as usual, he patted me on the head gently, with a kind of smile, and then began his silent
walk up and down the room. I was yearning to question him on the point that just then engrossed me so
disagreeably; but the awe in which I stood of him forbade.
After a time he stopped at the window, the curtain of which I had drawn, and the shutter partly opened, and
he looked out, perhaps with associations of his own, on the scene I had been contemplating.
It was not for nearly an hour after, that my father suddenly, after his wont, in a few words, apprised me of
the arrival of Madame de la Rougierre to be my governess, highly recommended and perfectly qualified.
My heart sank with a sure presage of ill. I already disliked, distrusted, and feared her.
I had more than an apprehension of her temper and fear of possibly abused authority. The large-featured,
smirking phantom, saluting me so oddly in the moonlight, retained ever after its peculiar and unpleasant
hold upon my nerves.
’Well, Miss Maud, dear, I hope you’ll like your new governess—for it’s more than I do, just at present at
least,’ said Mrs. Rusk, sharply—she was awaiting me in my room. ’I hate them French-women; they’re not
natural, I think. I gave her her supper in my room. She eats like a wolf, she does, the great raw-boned
hannimal. I wish you saw her in bed as I did. I put her next the clock-room—she’ll hear the hours betimes,
I’m thinking. You never saw such a sight. The great long nose and hollow [pg 19] cheeks of her, and oogh!
such a mouth! I felt a’most like little Red Riding-Hood—I did, Miss.’
Here honest Mary Quince, who enjoyed Mrs. Rusk’s satire, a weapon in which she was not herself strong,
laughed outright.
’Turn down the bed, Mary. She’s very agreeable—she is, just now—all new-comers is; but she did not get
many compliments from me, Miss—no, I rayther think not. I wonder why honest English girls won’t answer
the gentry for governesses, instead of them gaping, scheming, wicked furriners? Lord forgi’ me, I think
they’re all alike.’
Next morning I made acquaintance with Madame de la Rougierre. She was tall, masculine, a little ghastly
perhaps, and draped in purple silk, with a lace cap, and great bands of black hair, too thick and black,
perhaps, to correspond quite naturally with her bleached and sallow skin, her hollow jaws, and the fine but
grim wrinkles traced about her brows and eyelids. She smiled, she nodded, and then for a good while she
scanned me in silence with a steady cunning eye, and a stern smile.
- 24 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And how is she named—what is Mademoiselle’s name?’ said the tall stranger.
’Maud, Madame.’
’Maud!—what pretty name! Eh bien! I am very sure my dear Maud she will be very good little girl—is not
so?—and I am sure I shall love you vary moche. And what ’av you been learning, Maud, my dear
cheaile—music, French, German, eh?’
’Yes, a little; and I had just begun the use of the globes when my governess went away.’
I nodded towards the globes, which stood near her, as I said this.
’Oh! yes—the globes;’ and she spun one of them with her great hand. ’Je vous expliquerai tout cela à fond.’
Madame de la Rougierre, I found, was always quite ready to explain everything ’à fond;’ but somehow her
’explications,’ as she termed them, were not very intelligible, and when pressed her temper woke up; so that
I preferred, after a while, accepting the expositions just as they came.
Madame was on an unusually large scale, a circumstance which made some of her traits more startling, and
altogether rendered her, in her strange way, more awful in the eyes of a nervous child, I may say, such as I
was. She used to look at me [pg 20] for a long time sometimes, with the peculiar smile I have mentioned,
and a great finger upon her lip, like the Eleusinian priestess on the vase.
She would sit, too, sometimes for an hour together, looking into the fire or out of the window, plainly seeing
nothing, and with an odd, fixed look of something like triumph—very nearly a smile—on her cunning face.
She was by no means a pleasant gouvernante for a nervous girl of my years. Sometimes she had accesses of
a sort of hilarity which frightened me still more than her graver moods, and I will describe these by-and-by.
CHAPTER V
- 25 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
There is not an old house in England of which the servants and young people who live in it do not cherish
some traditions of the ghostly. Knowl has its shadows, noises, and marvellous records. Rachel Ruthyn, the
beauty of Queen Anne’s time, who died of grief for the handsome Colonel Norbrooke, who was killed in the
Low Countries, walks the house by night, in crisp and sounding silks. She is not seen, only heard. The
tapping of her high-heeled shoes, the sweep and rustle of her brocades, her sighs as she pauses in the
galleries, near the bed-room doors; and sometimes, on stormy nights, her sobs.
There is, beside, the ’link-man’, a lank, dark-faced, black-haired man, in a sable suit, with a link or torch in
his hand. It usually only smoulders, with a deep red glow, as he visits his beat. The library is one of the
rooms he sees to. Unlike ’Lady Rachel,’ as the maids called her, he is seen only, never heard. His steps fall
noiseless as shadows on floor and carpet. The lurid glow of his smouldering torch imperfectly lights his
figure and face, and, except when much perturbed, his link never blazes. On those occasions, however, as he
goes his rounds, he ever and [pg 21] anon whirls it around his head, and it bursts into a dismal flame. This is
a fearful omen, and always portends some direful crisis or calamity. It occurs, only once or twice in a
century.
I don’t know whether Madame had heard anything of these phenomena; but she did report which very much
frightened me and Mary Quince. She asked us who walked in the gallery on which her bed-room opened,
making a rustling with her dress, and going down the stairs, and breathing long breaths here and there.
Twice, she said, she had stood at her door in the dark, listening to these sounds, and once she called to know
who it was. There was no answer, but the person plainly turned back, and hurried towards her with an
unnatural speed, which made her jump within her door and shut it.
When first such tales are told, they excite the nerves of the young and the ignorant intensely. But the special
effect, I have found, soon wears out The tale simply takes it’s place with the rest. It was with Madame’s
narrative.
About a week after its relation, I had my experience of a similar sort. Mary Quince went down-stairs for a
night-light, leaving me in bed, a candle burning in the room, and being tired. I fell asleep before her return.
When I awoke the candle had been extinguished. But I heard a step softly approaching. I jumped up—quite
- 26 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
forgetting the ghost, and thinking only of Mary Quince—and opened the door, expecting to see the light of
her candle. Instead, all was dark, and near me I heard the fall of a bare foot on the oak floor. It was as if
some one had stumbled. I said, ’Mary,’ but no answer came, only a rustling of clothes and a breathing at the
other side of the gallery, which passed off towards the upper staircase. I turned into my room, freezing with
horror, and clapt my door. The noise wakened Mary Quince, who had returned and gone to her bed half an
hour before.
About a fortnight after this, Mary Quince, a very veracious spinster, reported to me, that having got up to fix
the window, which was rattling, at about four o’clock in the morning, she saw a light shining from the
library window. She could swear to its being a strong light, streaming through the chinks of the shutter, and
moving. No doubt the link was waved about his head by the angry ’link-man.’
[pg 22]
These strange occurrences helped, I think, just then to make me nervous, and prepared the way for the odd
sort of ascendency which, through my sense of the mysterious and super-natural, that repulsive
Frenchwoman was gradually, and it seemed without effort, establishing over me.
Some dark points of her character speedily emerged from the prismatic mist with which she had enveloped
it.
Mrs. Rusk’s observation about the agreeability of new-comers I found to be true; for as Madame began to
lose that character, her good-humour abated very perceptibly, and she began to show gleams of another sort
of temper, that was lurid and dangerous.
Notwithstanding this, she was in the habit of always having her Bible open by her, and was austerely
attentive at morning and evening services, and asked my father, with great humility, to lend her some
translations of Swedenborg’s books, which she laid much to heart.
When we went out for our walk, if the weather were bad we generally made our promenade up and down
the broad terrace in front of the windows. Sullen and malign at times she used to look, and as suddenly she
would pat me on the shoulder caressingly, and smile with a grotesque benignity, asking tenderly, ’Are you
fatigue, ma chère?’ or ’Are you cold-a, dear Maud?’
- 27 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
At first these abrupt transitions puzzled me, sometimes half frightened me, savouring, I fancied, of insanity.
The key, however, was accidentally supplied, and I found that these accesses of demonstrative affection
were sure to supervene whenever my father’s face was visible through the library windows.
I did not know well what to make of this woman, whom I feared with a vein of superstitious dread. I hated
being alone with her after dusk in the school-room. She would sometimes sit for half an hour at a time, with
her wide mouth drawn down at the corners, and a scowl, looking into the fire. If she saw me looking at her,
she would change all this on the instant, affect a sort of languor, and lean her head upon her hand, and
ultimately have recourse to her Bible. But I fancied she did not read, but pursued her own dark ruminations,
for I observed that the open book might often lie for half an hour or more under her eyes and yet the leaf
never turned.
I should have been glad to be assured that she prayed when [pg 23] on her knees, or read when that book
was before her; I should have felt that she was more canny and human. As it was, those external pieties
made a suspicion of a hollow contrast with realities that helped to scare me; yet it was but a suspicion—I
could not be certain.
Our rector and the curate, with whom she was very gracious, and anxious about my collects and catechism,
had an exalted opinion of her. In public places her affection for me was always demonstrative.
In like manner she contrived conferences with my father. She was always making excuses to consult him
about my reading, and to confide in him her sufferings, as I learned, from my contumacy and temper. The
fact is, I was altogether quiet and submissive. But I think she had a wish to reduce me to a state of the most
abject bondage. She had designs of domination and subversion regarding the entire household, I now
believe, worthy of the evil spirit I sometimes fancied her.
My father beckoned me into the study one day, and said he—
’You ought not to give poor Madame so much pain. She is one of the few persons who take an interest in
you; why should she have so often to complain of your ill-temper and disobedience?—why should she be
compelled to ask my permission to punish you? Don’t be afraid, I won’t concede that. But in so kind a
person it argues much. Affection I can’t command—respect and obedience I may—and I insist on your
rendering both to Madame.’
- 28 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’But sir,’ I said, roused into courage by the gross injustice of the charge, ’I have always done exactly as she
bid me, and never said one disrespectful word to Madame.’
’I don’t think, child, you are the best judge of that. Go, and amend.’ And with a displeased look he pointed
to the door. My heart swelled with the sense of wrong, and as I reached the door I turned to say another
word, but I could not, and only burst into tears.
’There—don’t cry, little Maud—only let us do better for the future. There—there—there has been enough.’
And he kissed my forehead, and gently put me out and closed the door.
In the school-room I took courage, and with some warmth upbraided Madame.
[pg 24]
’Wat wicked cheaile!’ moaned Madame, demurely. ’Read aloud those three—yes, those three chapters of
the Bible, my dear Maud.’
There was no special fitness in those particular chapters, and when they were ended she said in a sad tone—
’Now, dear, you must commit to memory this pretty priaire for umility of art.’
It was a long one, and in a state of profound irritation I got through the task.
Mrs. Rusk hated her. She said she stole wine and brandy whenever the opportunity offered—that she was
always asking her for such stimulants and pretending pains in her stomach. Here, perhaps, there was
exaggeration; but I knew it was true that I had been at different times despatched on that errand and pretext
for brandy to Mrs. Rusk, who at last came to her bedside with pills and a mustard blister only, and was
hated irrevocably ever after.
I felt all this was done to torture me. But a day is a long time to a child, and they forgive quickly. It was
always with a sense of danger that I heard Madame say she must go and see Monsieur Ruthyn in the library,
and I think a jealousy of her growing influence was an ingredient in the detestation in which honest Mrs.
Rusk held her.
- 29 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER VI
Two little pieces of by-play in which I detected her confirmed my unpleasant suspicion. From the corner of
the gallery I one day saw her, when she thought I was out and all quiet, with her ear at the keyhole of papa’s
study, as we used to call the sitting-room next his bed-room. Her eyes were turned in the direction of the
stairs, from which only she apprehended surprise. Her great mouth was open, and her eyes absolutely
goggled with [pg 25] eagerness. She was devouring all that was passing there. I drew back into the shadow
with a kind of disgust and horror. She was transformed into a great gaping reptile. I felt that I could have
thrown something at her; but a kind of fear made me recede again toward my room. Indignation, however,
quickly returned, and I came back, treading briskly as I did so. When I reached the angle of the gallery
again. Madame, I suppose, had heard me, for she was half-way down the stairs.
’Ah, my dear Cheaile, I am so glad to find you, and you are dress to come out. We shall have so pleasant
walk.’
At that moment the door of my father’s study opened, and Mrs. Rusk, with her dark energetic face very
much flushed, stepped out in high excitement.
’The Master says you may have the brandy-bottle, Madame and I’m glad to be rid of it—I am.’
Madame courtesied with a great smirk, that was full of intangible hate and insult.
’Better your own brandy, if drink you must!’ exclaimed Mrs. Rusk. ’You may come to the store-room now,
or the butler can take it.’
There had been no common skirmish on this occasion, but a pitched battle.
- 30 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Madame had made a sort of pet of Anne Wixted, an underchambermaid, and attached her to her interest
economically by persuading me to make her presents of some old dresses and other things. Anne was such
an angel!
But Mrs. Rusk, whose eyes were about her, detected Anne, with a brandy-bottle under her apron, stealing
up-stairs. Anne, in a panic, declared the truth. Madame had commissioned her to buy it in the town, and
convey it to her bed-room. Upon this, Mrs. Rusk impounded the flask; and, with Anne beside her, rather
precipitately appeared before ’the Master.’ He heard and summoned Madame. Madame was cool, frank, and
fluent. The brandy was purely medicinal. She produced a document in the form of a note. Doctor Somebody
presented his compliments to Madame de la Rougierre, and ordered her a table-spoonful of brandy and
some drops of laudanum whenever the pain of stomach returned. The flask would last a whole year, perhaps
two. She claimed her medicine.
[pg 26]
Man’s estimate of woman is higher than woman’s own. Perhaps in their relations to men they are generally
more trustworthy—perhaps woman’s is the juster, and the other an appointed illusion. I don’t know; but so
it is ordained.
Mrs. Rusk was recalled, and I saw, as you are aware, Madame’s procedure during the interview.
It was a great battle—a great victory. Madame was in high spirits. The air was sweet—the landscape
charming—I, so good—everything so beautiful! Where should we go? this way?
I had made a resolution to speak as little as possible to Madame, I was so incensed at the treachery I had
witnessed; but such resolutions do not last long with very young people, and by the time we had reached the
skirts of the wood we were talking pretty much as usual.
- 31 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I assented.
’My faith, curious reason; you say because poor mamma is buried there you will not approach! Why,
cheaile, what would good Monsieur Ruthyn say if he heard such thing? You are surely not so unkain’, and I
am with you. Allons. Let us come—even a little part of the way.’
There was a grass-grown road, which we easily reached, leading to the sombre building, and we soon
arrived before it.
Madame de la Rougierre seemed rather curious. She sat down on the little bank opposite, in her most
languid pose—her head leaned upon the tips of her fingers.
’How very sad—how solemn!’ murmured Madame. ’What noble tomb! How triste, my dear cheaile, your
visit ’ere must it be, remembering a so sweet maman. There is new inscription—is it not new?’ And so,
indeed, it seemed.
’I am fatigue—maybe you will read it aloud to me slowly and solemnly, my dearest Maud?’
As I approached, I happened to look, I can’t tell why, suddenly, over my shoulder; I was startled, for
Madame was grimacing after me with a vile derisive distortion. She pretended to [pg 27] be seized with a fit
of coughing. But it would not do: she saw that I had detected her, and she laughed aloud.
’Come here, dear cheaile. I was just reflecting how foolish is all this thing—the tomb—the epitaph. I think I
would ’av none—no, no epitaph. We regard them first for the oracle of the dead, and find them after only
the folly of the living. So I despise. Do you think your house of Knowl down there is what you call haunt,
my dear?’
’Why?’ said I, flushing and growing pale again. I felt quite afraid of Madame, and confounded at the
suddenness of all this.
’Because Anne Wixted she says there is ghost. How dark is this place! and so many of the Ruthyn family
they are buried here—is not so? How high and thick are the trees all round! and nobody comes near.’
- 32 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And Madame rolled her eyes awfully, as if she expected to see something unearthly, and, indeed, looked
very like it herself.
’Come away, Madame,’ I said, growing frightened, and feeling that if I were once, by any accident, to give
way to the panic that was gathering round me, I should instantaneously lose all control of myself. ’Oh, come
away! do, Madame—I’m frightened.’
’No, on the contrary, sit here by me. It is very odd, you will think, ma chêre—un goût bizarre,
vraiment!—but I love very much to be near to the dead people—in solitary place like this. I am not afraid of
the dead people, nor of the ghosts. ’Av you ever see a ghost, my dear?’
’Wat little fool! But no, you are not afraid. I ’av seen the ghosts myself. I saw one, for example, last night,
shape like a monkey, sitting in the corner, with his arms round his knees; very wicked, old, old man his face
was like, and white eyes so large.’
’Come away, Madame! you are trying to frighten me,’ I said, in the childish anger which accompanies fear.
Madame laughed an ugly laugh, and said—
’Eh bien! little fool!—I will not tell the rest if you are really frightened; let us change to something else.’
[pg 28]
’Very—the kindest darling. I don’t know why it is, Madame, I am so afraid of him, and never could tell him
how much I love him.’
This confidential talking with Madame, strange to say, implied no confidence; it resulted from fear—it was
deprecatory. I treated her as if she had human sympathies, in the hope that they might be generated
somehow.
’Was there not a doctor from London with him a few months ago? Dr. Bryerly, I think they call him.’
- 33 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Yes, a Doctor Bryerly, who remained a few days. Shall we begin to walk towards home, Madame? Do,
pray.’
’Disease! he has no disease. Have you heard anything about his health, Madame?’ I said, anxiously.
’Oh no, ma foi—I have heard nothing; but if the doctor came, it was not because he was quite well.’
’But that doctor is a doctor in theology, I fancy. I know he is a Swedenborgian; and papa is so well, he could
not have come as a physician.’
’I am very glad, ma chère, to hear; but still you know your father is old man to have so young cheaile as
you. Oh, yes—he is old man, and so uncertain life is. ’As he made his will, my dear? Every man so rich as
he, especially so old, aught to ’av made his will.’
’There is no need of haste, Madame; it is quite time enough when his health begins to fail.’
’Ah, little rogue! you will not tell—but you are not such fool as you feign yourself. No, no; you know
everything. Come, tell me all about—it is for your advantage, you know. What is in his will, and when he
wrote?’
’But, Madame, I really know nothing of it. I can’t say whether there is a will or not. Let us talk of something
else.’
’But, cheaile, it will not kill Monsieur Ruthyn to make his will; he will not come to lie here a day sooner by
cause of that; but if he make no will, you may lose a great deal of the property. Would not that be pity?’
[pg 29]
- 34 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I really don’t know anything of his will. If papa has made one, he has never spoken of it to me. I know he
loves me—that is enough.’
’Ah! you are not such little goose—you do know everything, of course. Come tell me, little obstinate,
otherwise I will break your little finger. Tell me everything.’
’I know nothing of papa’s will. You don’t know, Madame, how you hurt me. Let us speak of something
else.’
’You do know, and you must tell, petite dure-tête, or I will break a your little finger.’
With which words she seized that joint, and laughing spitefully, she twisted it suddenly back. I screamed
while she continued to laugh.
She did not release it immediately however, but continued her torture and discordant laughter. At last she
finally released my finger.
’So she is going to be good cheaile, and tell everything to her affectionate gouvernante. What do you cry
for, little fool?’
’Rub it and blow it and give it a kiss, little fool! What cross girl! I will never play with you again—never.
Let us go home.’
Madame was silent and morose all the way home. She would not answer my questions, and affected to be
very lofty and offended.
This did not last very long, however, and she soon resumed her wonted ways. And she returned to the
question of the will, but not so directly, and with more art.
Why should this dreadful woman’s thoughts be running so continually upon my father’s will? How could it
concern her?
- 35 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 30]
CHAPTER VII
CHURCH SCARSDALE
I think all the females of our household, except Mrs. Rusk, who was at open feud with her and had only
room for the fiercer emotions, were more or less afraid of this inauspicious foreigner.
’Where does she come from?—is she a French or a Swiss one, or is she a Canada woman? I remember one
of them when I was a girl, and a nice limb she was, too! And who did she live with? Where was her last
family? Not one of us knows nothing about her, no more than a child; except, of course, the Master—I do
suppose he made enquiry. She’s always at hugger-mugger with Anne Wixted. I’ll pack that one about her
business, if she doesn’t mind. Tattling and whispering eternally. It’s not about her own business she’s
a-talking. Madame de la Rougepot, I call her. She does know how to paint up to the ninety-nines—she does,
the old cat. I beg your pardon, Miss, but that she is—a devil, and no mistake. I found her out first by her
thieving the Master’s gin, that the doctor ordered him, and filling the decanter up with water—the old
villain; but she’ll be found out yet, she will; and all the maids is afraid on her. She’s not right, they think—a
witch or a ghost—I should not wonder. Catherine Jones found her in her bed asleep in the morning after she
sulked with you, you know, Miss, with all her clothes on, what-ever was the meaning; and I think she has
frightened you, Miss and has you as nervous as anythink—I do,’ and so forth.
It was true. I was nervous, and growing rather more so; and I think this cynical woman perceived and
intended it, and was pleased. I was always afraid of her concealing herself in my room, and emerging at
night to scare me. She began sometimes to mingle in my dreams, too—always awfully; and this nourished,
of course, the kind of ambiguous fear in which, in waking hours, I held her.
- 36 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 31]
I dreamed one night that she led me, all the time whispering something so very fast that I could not
understand her, into the library, holding a candle in her other hand above her head. We walked on tiptoe,
like criminals at the dead of night, and stopped before that old oak cabinet which my father had indicated in
so odd a way to me. I felt that we were about some contraband practice. There was a key in the door, which
I experienced a guilty horror at turning, she whispering in the same unintelligible way, all the time, at my
ear. I did turn it; the door opened quite softly, and within stood my father, his face white and malignant, and
glaring close in mine. He cried in a terrible voice, ’Death!’ Out went Madame’s candle, and at the same
moment, with a scream, I waked in the dark—still fancying myself in the library; and for an hour after I
continued in a hysterical state.
Every little incident about Madame furnished a topic of eager discussion among the maids. More or less
covertly, they nearly all hated and feared her. They fancied that she was making good her footing with ’the
Master;’ and that she would then oust Mrs. Rusk—perhaps usurp her place—and so make a clean sweep of
them all. I fancy the honest little housekeeper did not discourage that suspicion.
About this time I recollect a pedlar—an odd, gipsified-looking man—called in at Knowl. I and Catherine
Jones were in the court when he came, and set down his pack on the low balustrade beside the door.
All sorts of commodities he had—ribbons, cottons, silks, stockings, lace, and even some bad jewellry; and
just as he began his display—an interesting matter in a quiet country house—Madame came upon the
ground. He grinned a recognition, and hoped ’Madamasel’ was well, and ’did not look to see her here.’
’Madamasel’ thanked him. ’Yes, vary well,’ and looked for the first time decidedly ’put out.’
’Wat a pretty things!’ she said. ’Catherine, run and tell Mrs. Rusk. She wants scissars, and lace too—I heard
her say.’
’Will you, dear cheaile, be so kind to bring here my purse, I forgot on the table in my room; also, I advise
you, bring your.’
- 37 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Catherine returned with Mrs. Rusk. Here was a man who [pg 32] could tell them something of the old
Frenchwoman, at last! Slyly they dawdled over his wares, until Madame had made her market and departed
with me. But when the coveted opportunity came, the pedlar was quite impenetrable. ’He forgot everything;
he did not believe as he ever saw the lady before. He called a Frenchwoman, all the world over,
Madamasel—that wor the name on ’em all. He never seed her in partiklar afore, as he could bring to mind.
He liked to see ’em always, ’cause they makes the young uns buy.’
This reserve and oblivion were very provoking, and neither Mrs. Rusk nor Catherine Jones spent sixpence
with him;—he was a stupid fellow, or worse.
Of course Madame had tampered with him. But truth, like murder, will out some day. Tom Williams, the
groom, had seen her, when alone with him, and pretending to look at his stock, with her face almost buried
in his silks and Welsh linseys, talking as fast as she could all the time, and slipping money, he did suppose,
under a piece of stuff in his box.
In the mean time, I and Madame were walking over the wide, peaty sheep-walks that lie between Knowl and
Church Scarsdale. Since our visit to the mausoleum in the wood, she had not worried me so much as before.
She had been, indeed, more than usually thoughtful, very little talkative, and troubled me hardly at all about
French and other accomplishments. A walk was a part of our daily routine. I now carried a tiny basket in my
hand, with a few sandwiches, which were to furnish our luncheon when we reached the pretty scene, about
two miles away, whither we were tending.
We had started a little too late; Madame grew unwontedly fatigued and sat down to rest on a stile before we
had got half-way; and there she intoned, with a dismal nasal cadence, a quaint old Bretagne ballad, about a
lady with a pig’s head:—
- 38 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And she would sing like a funeral bell, with a ding-dong tune.
[pg 33]
On acorns or on flesh.
And so it went on, in a gingling rigmarole. The more anxious I seemed to go on our way, the more likely
was she to loiter. I therefore showed no signs of impatience, and I saw her consult her watch in the course of
her ugly minstrelsy, and slyly glance, as if expecting something, in the direction of our destination.
When she had sung to her heart’s content, up rose Madame, and began to walk onward silently. I saw her
glance once or twice, as before, toward the village of Trillsworth, which lay in front, a little to our left, and
the smoke of which hung in a film over the brow of the hill. I think she observed me, for she enquired—
- 39 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Church Scarsdale is a very pretty and odd scene. The slightly undulating sheep-walk dips suddenly into a
wide glen, in the lap of which, by a bright, winding rill, rise from the sward the ruins of a small abbey, with
a few solemn trees scattered round. The crows’ nests hung untenanted in the trees; the birds were foraging
far away from their roosts. The very cattle had forsaken the place. It was solitude itself.
As we descended the slope which shut out the surrounding [pg 34] world, and the scene grew more sad and
lonely. Madame’s spirits seemed to rise.
’See ’ow many grave-stones—one, two hundred. Don’t you love the dead, cheaile? I will teach you to love
them. You shall see me die here to-day, for half an hour, and be among them. That is what I love.’
We were by this time at the little brook’s side, and the low churchyard wall with a stile, reached by a couple
of stepping-stones, across the stream, immediately at the other side.
’Come, now!’ cried Madame, raising her face, as if to sniff the air; ’we are close to them. You will like them
soon as I. You shall see five of them. Ah, ça ira, ça ira, ça ira! Come cross quickily! I am Madame la
Morgue—Mrs. Deadhouse! I will present you my friends, Monsieur Cadavre and Monsieur Squelette.
Come, come, leetle mortal, let us play. Ouaah!’ And she uttered a horrid yell from her enormous mouth, and
pushing her wig and bonnet back, so as to show her great, bald head. She was laughing, and really looked
quite mad.
’No, Madame, I will not go with you,’ I said, disengaging my hand with a violent effort, receding two or
three steps.
- 40 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Not enter the churchyard! Ma foi—wat mauvais goût! But see, we are already in shade. The sun he is
setting soon—where well you remain, cheaile? I will not stay long.’
’I’ll stay here,’ I said, a little angrily—for I was angry as well as nervous; and through my fear was that
indignation at her extravagances which mimicked lunacy so unpleasantly, and were, I knew, designed to
frighten me.
Over the stepping-stones, pulling up her dress, she skipped with her long, lank legs, like a witch joining a
Walpurgis. Over the stile she strode, and I saw her head wagging, and heard her sing some of her ill-omened
rhymes, as she capered solemnly, with many a grin and courtesy, among the graves and headstones, towards
the ruin.
[pg 35]
CHAPTER VIII
THE SMOKER
Three years later I learned—in a way she probably little expected, and then did not much care about—what
really occurred there. I learned even phrases and looks—for the story was related by one who had heard it
told—and therefore I venture to narrate what at the moment I neither saw nor suspected. While I sat, flushed
and nervous, upon a flat stone by the bank of the little stream, Madame looked over her shoulder, and
perceiving that I was out of sight, she abated her pace, and turned sharply towards the ruin which lay at her
left. It was her first visit, and she was merely exploring; but now, with a perfectly shrewd and businesslike
air, turning the corner of the building, she saw, seated upon the edge of a grave-stone, a rather fat and
flashily-equipped young man, with large, light whiskers, a jerry hat, green cutaway coat with gilt buttons,
and waistcoat and trousers rather striking than elegant in pattern. He was smoking a short pipe, and made a
nod to Madame, without either removing it from his lips or rising, but with his brown and rather
good-looking face turned up, he eyed her with something of the impudent and sulky expression that was
- 41 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
habitual to it.
’Ha, Deedle, you are there! an’ look so well. I am here, too, quite alon; but my friend, she wait outside the
churchyard, by-side the leetle river, for she must not think I know you—so I am come alon.’
’You’re a quarter late, and I lost a fight by you, old girl, this morning,’ said the gay man, and spat on the
ground; ’and I wish you would not call me Diddle. I’ll call you Granny if you do.’
’Eh bien! Dud, then. She is vary nice—wat you like. Slim waist, wite teeth, vary nice eyes—dark—wat you
say is best—and nice leetle foot and ankle.’
’Well, that isn’t much good. I hate women’s screechin’ about fairies and flowers. Hang her! there’s a
scarecrow as sings at Curl’s Divan. Such a caterwauling upon a stage! I’d like to put my two barrels into
her.’
By this time Dud’s pipe was out, and he could afford to converse.
’You shall see her and decide. You will walk down the river, and pass her by.’
’That’s as may be; howsoever, it would not do, nohow, to buy a pig in a poke, you know. And s’pose I
shouldn’t like her, arter all?’
’Vary good! Then some one else will not be so ’ard to please—as you will soon find.’
’Some one’s bin a-lookin’ arter her, you mean?’ said the young man, with a shrewd uneasy glance on the
cunning face of the French lady.
- 42 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I mean precisely—that which I mean,’ replied the lady, with a teazing pause at the break I have marked.
’Come, old ’un, none of your d—— old chaff, if you want me to stay here listening to you. Speak out, can’t
you? There’s any chap as has bin a-lookin’ arter her—is there?’
’Well, you suppose, and I suppose—we may all suppose, I guess; but that does not make a thing be, as
wasn’t before; and you tell me as how the lass is kep’ private up there, and will be till you’re done educating
her—a precious good ’un that is!’ And he laughed a little lazily, with the ivory handle of his cane on his lip,
and eyeing Madame with indolent derision.
’I’m only chaffin’, you know, old girl. You’ve bin chaffin’—w’y shouldn’t I? But I don’t see why she can’t
wait a bit; and what’s all the d——d hurry for? I’m in no hurry. I don’t want a wife on my back for a while.
There’s no fellow marries till he’s took his bit o’ fun, and seen life—is there! And why should I be driving
with her to fairs, or to church, or to meeting, by jingo!—for [pg 37] they say she’s a Quaker—with a babby
on each knee, only to please them as will be dead and rotten when I’m only beginning?’
’Ah, you are such charming fellow; always the same—always sensible. So I and my friend we will walk
home again, and you go see Maggie Hawkes. Good-a-by, Dud—good-a-by.’
’Quiet, you fool!—can’t ye?’ said the young gentleman, with the sort of grin that made his face vicious
when a horse vexed him. ’Who ever said I wouldn’t go look at the girl? Why, you know that’s just what I
come here for—don’t you? Only when I think a bit, and a notion comes across me, why shouldn’t I speak
out? I’m not one o’ them shilly-shallies. If I like the girl, I’ll not be mug in and mug out about it. Only mind
ye, I’ll judge for myself. Is that her a-coming?’
’Well, you go round that a-way, and you only look at her, you know, for she is such fool—so nairvous.’
- 43 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, is that the way with her?’ said Dud, knocking out the ashes of his pipe on a tombstone, and replacing
the Turkish utensil in his pocket. ’Well, then, old lass, good-bye,’ and he shook her hand. ’And, do ye see,
don’t ye come up till I pass, for I’m no hand at play-acting; an’ if you called me "sir," or was coming it
dignified and distant, you know, I’d be sure to laugh, a’most, and let all out. So good-bye, d’ye see, and if
you want me again be sharp to time, mind.
From habit he looked about for his dogs, but he had not brought one. He had come unostentatiously by rail,
travelling in a third-class carriage, for the advantage of Jack Briderly’s company, and getting a world of
useful wrinkles about the steeplechase that was coming off next week.
So he strode away, cutting off the heads of the nettles with his cane as he went; and Madame walked forth
into the open space among the graves, where I might have seen her, had I stood up, looking with the
absorbed gaze of an artist on the ruin.
In a little while, along the path, I heard the clank of a step, and the gentleman in the green cutaway coat,
sucking his cane, and eyeing me with an offensive familiar sort of stare the while, passed me by, rather
hesitating as he did so.
[pg 38]
I was glad when he turned the corner in the little hollow close by, and disappeared. I stood up at once, and
was reassured by a sight of Madame, not very many yards away, looking at the ruin, and apparently restored
to her right mind. The last beams of the sun were by this time touching the uplands, and I was longing to
recommence our walk home. I was hesitating about calling to Madame, because that lady had a certain spirit
of opposition within her, and to disclose a small wish of any sort was generally, if it lay in her power, to
prevent its accomplishment.
At this moment the gentleman in the green coat returned, approaching me with a slow sort of swagger.
’I say, Miss, I dropped a glove close by here. May you have seen it?’
’No, sir,’ I said, drawing back a little, and looking, I dare say, both frightened and offended.
- 44 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No offence, Miss, but you’re sure you didn’t hide it?’
’Don’t be frightened, Miss; it’s only a bit o’ chaff. I’m not going to search.’
I called aloud, ’Madame, Madame!’ and he whistled through his fingers, and shouted, ’Madame, Madame,’
and added, ’She’s as deaf as a tombstone, or she’ll hear that. Gi’e her my compliments, and say I said
you’re a beauty, Miss;’ and with a laugh and a leer he strode off.
Altogether this had not been a very pleasant excursion. Madame gobbled up our sandwiches, commending
them every now and then to me. But I had been too much excited to have any appetite left, and very tired I
was when we reached home.
’So, there is lady coming to-morrow?’ said Madame, who knew everything. ’Wat is her name? I forget.’
’Oh yes, Madame,’ I answered, laughing. ’I have said it to [pg 39] you twice since you came;’ and I gabbled
through the chief towns and rivers as catalogued in my geography.
- 45 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Madame had fallen into the English way of liking people with titles, as perhaps foreigners would if titles
implied the sort of power they do generally with us.
’Certainly, Madame.’
’Oh no.’
Madame reminded me twice, in the course of the evening, of my promise. She was very eager on this point.
But it is a world of disappointment, influenza, and rheumatics; and next morning Madame was prostrate in
her bed, and careless of all things but flannel and James’s powder.
Madame was désolée; but she could not raise her head. She only murmured a question.
’Hélas! ’ow onlucky! maybe to-morrow I shall be better Ouah! my ear. The laudanum, dear cheaile!’
And so our conversation for that time ended, and Madame buried her head in her old red cashmere shawl.
CHAPTER IX
MONICA KNOLLYS
Punctually Lady Knollys arrived. She was accompanied by her nephew, Captain Oakley.
- 46 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
They arrived a little before dinner; just in time to get to their rooms and dress. But Mary Quince enlivened
my toilet with eloquent descriptions of the youthful Captain whom she had [pg 40] met in the gallery, on his
way to his room, with the servant, and told me how he stopped to let her pass, and how ’he smiled so
’ansom.’
I was very young then, you know, and more childish even than my years; but this talk of Mary Quince’s
interested me, I must confess, considerably. I was painting all sort of portraits of this heroic soldier, while
affecting, I am afraid, a hypocritical indifference to her narration, and I know I was very nervous and
painstaking about my toilet that evening. When I went down to the drawing-room, Lady Knollys was there,
talking volubly to my father as I entered—a woman not really old, but such as very young people fancy
aged—energetic, bright, saucy, dressed handsomely in purple satin, with a good deal of lace, and a rich
point—I know not how to call it—not a cap, a sort of head-dress—light and simple, but grand withal, over
her greyish, silken hair.
Rather tall, by no means stout, on the whole a good firm figure, with something kindly in her look. She got
up, quite like a young person, and coming quickly to meet me with a smile—
’My young cousin!’ she cried, and kissed me on both cheeks. ’You know who I am? Your cousin
Monica—Monica Knollys—and very glad, dear, to see you, though she has not set eyes on you since you
were no longer than that paper-knife. Now come here to the lamp, for I must look at you. Who is she like?
Let me see. Like your poor mother, I think, my dear; but you’ve the Aylmer nose—yes—not a bad nose
either, and, come I very good eyes, upon my life—yes, certainly something of her poor mother—not a bit
like you, Austin.’
My father gave her a look as near a smile as I had seen there for a long time, shrewd, cynical, but kindly too,
and said he—
’It was not for me to say—but you know, Austin, you always were an ugly creature. How shocked and
indignant the little girl looks! You must not be vexed, you loyal little woman, with Cousin Monica for
telling the truth. Papa was and will be ugly all his days. Come, Austin, dear, tell her—is not it so?’
- 47 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, maybe not; but if the child won’t believe her own eyes, [pg 41] how is she to believe me? She has
long, pretty hands—you have—and very nice feet too. How old is she?’
’That is the true grey—large, deep, soft—very peculiar. Yes, dear, very pretty—long lashes, and such bright
tints! You’ll be in the Book of Beauty, my dear, when you come out, and have all the poet people writing
verses to the tip of your nose—and a very pretty little nose it is!’
I must mention here how striking was the change in my father’s spirit while talking and listening to his odd
and voluble old Cousin Monica. Reflected from bygone associations, there had come a glimmer of
something, not gaiety, indeed, but like an appreciation of gaiety. The gloom and inflexibility were gone, and
there was an evident encouragement and enjoyment of the incessant sallies of his bustling visitor.
How morbid must have been the tendencies of his habitual solitude, I think, appeared from the evident
thawing and brightening that accompanied even this transient gleam of human society. I was not a
companion—more childish than most girls of my age, and trained in all his whimsical ways, never to
interrupt a silence, or force his thoughts by unexpected question or remark out of their monotonous or
painful channel.
I was as much surprised at the good-humour with which he submitted to his cousin’s saucy talk; and,
indeed, just then those black-panelled and pictured walls, and that quaint, misshapen room, seemed to have
exchanged their stern and awful character for something wonderfully pleasanter to me, notwithstanding the
unpleasantness of the personal criticism to which the plain-spoken lady chose to subject me.
Just at that moment Captain Oakley joined us. He was my first actual vision of that awful and distant world
of fashion, of whose splendours I had already read something in the three-volumed gospel of the circulating
library.
Handsome, elegant, with features almost feminine, and soft, wavy, black hair, whiskers and moustache, he
was altogether such a knight as I had never beheld, or even fancied, at Knowl—a hero of another species,
- 48 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
and from the region of the demigods. I did not then perceive that coldness of the eye, and cruel curl [pg 42]
of the voluptuous lip—only a suspicion, yet enough to indicate the profligate man, and savouring of death
unto death.
But I was young, and had not yet the direful knowledge of good and evil that comes with years; and he was
so very handsome, and talked in a way that was so new to me, and was so much more charming than the
well-bred converse of the humdrum county families with whom I had occasionally sojourned for a week at a
time.
It came out incidentally that his leave of absence was to expire the day after to-morrow. A Lilliputian pang
of disappointment followed this announcement. Already I was sorry to lose him. So soon we begin to make
a property of what pleases us.
I was shy, but not awkward. I was flattered by the attention of this amusing, perhaps rather fascinating,
young man of the world; and he plainly addressed himself with diligence to amuse and please me. I dare say
there was more effort than I fancied in bringing his talk down to my humble level, and interesting me and
making me laugh about people whom I had never heard of before, than I then suspected.
Cousin Knollys meanwhile was talking to papa. It was just the conversation that suited a man so silent as
habit had made him, for her frolic fluency left him little to supply. It was totally impossible, indeed, even in
our taciturn household, that conversation should ever flag while she was among us.
Cousin Knollys and I went into the drawing-room together, leaving the gentlemen—rather ill-assorted, I
fear—to entertain one another for a time.
’Come here, my dear, and sit near me,’ said Lady Knollys, dropping into an easy chair with an energetic
little plump, ’and tell me how you and your papa get on. I can remember him quite a cheerful man once, and
rather amusing—yes, indeed—and now you see what a bore he is—all by shutting himself up and nursing
his whims and fancies. Are those your drawings, dear?’
’Yes, very bad, I’m afraid; but there are a few, better, I think in the portfolio in the cabinet in the hall.’
- 49 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I dare say. I must hear you by-and-by. And how does your papa amuse you? You look bewildered, dear.
Well, I dare say, [pg 43] amusement is not a frequent word in this house. But you must not turn into a nun,
or worse, into a puritan. What is he? A Fifth-Monarchy-man, or something—I forget; tell me the name, my
dear.’
’Yes, yes—I forgot the horrid name—a Swedenborgian, that is it. I don’t know exactly what they think, but
everyone knows they are a sort of pagans, my dear. He’s not making one of you, dear—is he?’
’Well, that’s a mercy; Swedenborgian is such an ugly name, and besides, they are all likely to be damned,
my dear, and that’s a serious consideration. I really wish poor Austin had hit on something else; I’d much
rather have no religion, and enjoy life while I’m in it, than choose one to worry me here and bedevil me
hereafter. But some people, my dear, have a taste for being miserable, and provide, like poor Austin, for its
gratification in the next world as well as here. Ha, ha, ha! how grave the little woman looks! Don’t you
think me very wicked? You know you do; and very likely you are right. Who makes your dresses, my dear?
You are such a figure of fun!’
’Mrs. Rusk, I think, ordered this dress. I and Mary Quince planned it. I thought it very nice. We all like it
very well.’
There was something, I dare say, very whimsical about it, probably very absurd, judged at least by the
canons of fashion, and old Cousin Monica Knollys, in whose eye the London fashions were always fresh,
was palpably struck by it as if it had been some enormity against anatomy, for she certainly laughed very
heartily; indeed, there were tears on her cheeks when she had done, and I am sure my aspect of wonder and
dignity, as her hilarity proceeded, helped to revive her merriment again and again as it was subsiding.
’There, you mustn’t be vexed with old Cousin Monica,’ she cried, jumping up, and giving me a little hug,
and bestowing a hearty kiss on my forehead, and a jolly little slap on my cheek. ’Always remember your
cousin Monica is an outspoken, wicked old fool, who likes you, and never be offended by her nonsense. A
council of three—you all sat upon it—Mrs. Rusk, you said, and Mary Quince, and your wise self, the weird
- 50 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
sisters; and Austin stepped in, as Macbeth, and said, ’What is’t ye do?’ you [pg 44] all made answer
together, ’A something or other without a name!’ Now, seriously, my dear, it is quite unpardonable in
Austin—your papa, I mean—to hand you over to be robed and bedizened according to the whimsies of
these wild old women—aren’t they old? If they know better, it’s positively fiendish. I’ll blow him up—I
will indeed, my dear. You know you’re an heiress, and ought not to appear like a jack-pudding.’
’Papa intends sending me to London with Madame and Mary Quince, and going with me himself, if Doctor
Bryerly says he may make the journey, and then I am to have dresses and everything.’
’Well, that is better. And who is Doctor Bryerly—is your papa ill?’
’Ill; oh no; he always seems just the same. You don’t think him ill-looking ill, I mean?’ I asked eagerly and
frightened.
’No, my dear, he looks very well for his time of life; but why is Doctor What’s-his-name here? Is he a
physician, or a divine, or a horse-doctor? and why is his leave asked?’
’I believe so.’
’Oh, I see; ha, ha, ha! And so poor Austin must ask leave to go up to town. Well, go he shall, whether his
doctor likes it or not, for it would not do to send you there in charge of your Frenchwoman, my dear.
What’s her name?’
’Madame de la Rougierre.’
CHAPTER X
- 51 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And why does not Madame make your dresses, my dear? I wager a guinea the woman’s a milliner. Did not
she engage to make your dresses?’
[pg 45]
’I—I really don’t know; I rather think not. She is my governess—a finishing governess, Mrs. Rusk says.’
’Finishing fiddle! Hoity-toity! and my lady’s too grand to cut out your dresses and help to sew them? And
what does she do? I venture to say she’s fit to teach nothing but devilment—not that she has taught you
much, my dear—yet at least. I’ll see her, my dear; where is she? Come, let us visit Madame. I should so like
to talk to her a little.’
’But she is ill,’ I answered, and all this time I was ready to cry for vexation, thinking of my dress, which
must be very absurd to elicit so much unaffected laughter from my experienced relative, and I was only
longing to get away and hide myself before that handsome Captain returned.
’I should so like to see her, my dear. It is not mere curiosity, I assure you. In fact, curiosity has nothing on
earth to do with it. A governess may be a very useful or a very useless person; but she may also be about the
most pernicious inmate imaginable. She may teach you a bad accent, and worse manners, and heaven knows
what beside. Send the housekeeper, my dear, to tell her that I am going to see her.’
’I had better go myself, perhaps,’ I said, fearing a collision between Mrs. Rusk and the bitter Frenchwoman.
- 52 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And away I ran, not sorry somehow to escape before Captain Oakley returned.
As I went along the passage, I was thinking whether my dress could be so very ridiculous as my old cousin
thought it, and trying in vain to recollect any evidence of a similar contemptuous estimate on the part of that
beautiful and garrulous dandy. I could not—quite the reverse, indeed. Still I was uncomfortable and
feverish—girls of my then age will easily conceive how miserable, under similar circumstances, such a
misgiving would make them.
It was a long way to Madame’s room. I met Mrs. Rusk bustling along the passage with a housemaid.
[pg 46]
’Quite well, I believe,’ answered the housekeeper, drily. ’Nothing the matter that I know of. She eat enough
for two to-day. I wish I could sit in my room doing nothing.’
Madame was sitting, or rather reclining, in a low arm-chair, when I entered the room, close to the fire, as
was her wont, her feet extended near to the bars, and a little coffee equipage beside her. She stuffed a book
hastily between her dress and the chair, and received me in a state of langour which, had it not been for Mrs.
Rusk’s comfortable assurances, would have frightened me.
’Better than I deserve, my dear cheaile, sufficiently well. The people are all so good, trying me with every
little thing, like a bird; here is café—Mrs. Rusk-a, poor woman, I try to swallow a little to please her.’
She shook her head languidly, her elbow resting on the chair, and three finger-tips supporting her forehead,
and then she made a little sigh, looking down from the corners of her eyes, in an interesting dejection.
’Je sens des lassitudes in all the members—but I am quaite ’appy, and though I suffer I am console and
oblige des bontés, ma chère, que vous avez tous pour moi;’ and with these words she turned a languid
glance of gratitude on me which dropped on the ground.
- 53 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Lady Knollys wishes very much to see you, only for a few minutes, if you could admit her.’
’Vous savez les malades see never visitors,’ she replied with a startled sort of tartness, and a momentary
energy. ’Besides, I cannot converse; je sens de temps en temps des douleurs de tête—of head, and of the ear,
the right ear, it is parfois agony absolutely, and now it is here.’
And she winced and moaned, with her eyes closed and her hand pressed to the organ affected.
Simple as I was, I felt instinctively that Madame was shamming. She was over-acting; her transitions were
too violent, and beside she forgot that I knew how well she could speak English, and must perceive that she
was heightening the interest of her helplessness by that pretty tessellation of foreign idiom. I there-fore said
with a kind of courage which sometimes helped me suddenly—
[pg 47]
’Oh, Madame, don’t you really think you might, without much inconvenience, see Lady Knollys for a very
few minutes?’
’Cruel cheaile! you know I have a pain of the ear which makes me ’orribly suffer at this moment, and you
demand me whether I will not converse with strangers. I did not think you would be so unkain, Maud; but it
is impossible, you must see—quite impossible. I never, you know, refuse to take trouble when I am
able—never—never.’
And Madame shed some tears, which always came at call, and with her hand pressed to her ear, said very
faintly,
’Be so good to tell your friend how you see me, and how I suffer, and leave me, Maud, for I wish to lie
down for a little, since the pain will not allow me to remain longer.’
So with a few words of comfort which could not well be refused, but I dare say betraying my suspicion that
more was made of her sufferings than need be, I returned to the drawing-room.
’Captain Oakley has been here, my dear, and fancying, I suppose, that you had left us for the evening, has
gone to the billiard-room, I think,’ said Lady Knollys, as I entered.
- 54 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
That, then, accounted for the rumble and smack of balls which I had heard as I passed the door.
’Yes, and really, Austin, it is quite clear you ought to marry; you want some one to take this girl out, and
look after her, and who’s to do it? She’s a dowdy—don’t you see? Such a dust! And it is really such a pity;
for she’s a very pretty creature, and a clever woman could make her quite charming.’
My father took Cousin Monica’s sallies with the most wonderful good-humour. She had always, I fancy,
been a privileged person, and my father, whom we all feared, received her jolly attacks, as I fancy the grim
Front-de-Boeufs of old accepted the humours and personalities of their jesters.
’Yes, you may, but not for myself, Austin—I’m not worthy. Do you remember little Kitty Weadon that I
wanted you to marry eight-and-twenty years ago, or more, with a hundred and twenty thousand pounds?
Well, you know, she has got ever so much now, and she is really a most amiable old thing, and [pg 48]
though you would not have her then, she has had her second husband since, I can tell you.’
’Well, they really say her wealth is absolutely immense. Her last husband, the Russian merchant, left her
everything. She has not a human relation, and she is in the best set.’
’You were always a match-maker, Monica,’ said my father, stopping, and putting his hand kindly on hers.
’But it won’t do. No, no, Monica; we must take care of little Maud some other way.’
I was relieved. We women have all an instinctive dread of second marriages, and think that no widower is
quite above or below that danger; and I remember, whenever my father, which indeed was but seldom,
made a visit to town or anywhere else, it was a saying of Mrs. Rusk—
’I shan’t wonder, neither need you, my dear, if he brings home a young wife with him.’
So my father, with a kind look at her, and a very tender one on me, went silently to the library, as he often
did about that hour.
- 55 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I could not help resenting my Cousin Knollys’ officious recommendation of matrimony. Nothing I dreaded
more than a step-mother. Good Mrs. Rusk and Mary Quince, in their several ways, used to enhance, by
occasional anecdotes and frequent reflections, the terrors of such an intrusion. I suppose they did not wish a
revolution and all its consequences at Knowl, and thought it no harm to excite my vigilance.
’You know, my dear, your father is an oddity,’ she said. ’I don’t mind him—I never did. You must not.
Cracky, my dear, cracky—decidedly cracky!’
And she tapped the corner of her forehead, with a look so sly and comical, that I think I should have
laughed, if the sentiment had not been so awfully irreverent.
’Madame is suffering so much from pain in her ear, that she says it would be quite impossible to have the
honour—’
’Honour—fiddle! I want to see what the woman’s like. Pain in her ear, you say? Poor thing! Well, dear, I
think I can cure [pg 49] that in five minutes. I have it myself, now and then. Come to my room, and we’ll
get the bottles.
So she lighted her candle in the lobby, and with a light and agile step she scaled the stairs, I following; and
having found the remedies, we approached Madame’s room together.
I think, while we were still at the end of the gallery, Madame heard and divined our approach, for her door
suddenly shut, and there was a fumbling at the handle. But the bolt was out of order.
Lady Knollys tapped at the door, saying—’we’ll come in, please, and see you. I’ve some remedies, which
I’m sure will do you good.’
There was no answer; so she opened the door, and we both entered. Madame had rolled herself in the blue
coverlet, and was lying on the bed, with her face buried in the pillow, and enveloped in the covering.
’Perhaps she’s asleep?’ said Lady Knollys, getting round to the side of the bed, and stooping over her.
- 56 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Madame lay still as a mouse. Cousin Monica set down her two little vials on the table, and, stooping again
over the bed, began very gently with her fingers to lift the coverlet that covered her face. Madame uttered a
slumbering moan, and turned more upon her face, clasping the coverlet faster about her.
’Madame, it is Maud and Lady Knollys. We have come to relieve your ear. Pray let me see it. She can’t be
asleep, she’s holding the clothes so fast. Do, pray, allow me to see it.’
CHAPTER XI
Perhaps, if Madame had murmured, ’It is quite well—pray permit me to sleep,’ she would have escaped an
awkwardness. But having adopted the rôle of the exhausted slumberer, she could not consistently speak at
the moment; neither would it do [pg 50] by main force, to hold the coverlet about her face, and so her
presence of mind forsook her. Cousin Monica drew it back and hardly beheld the profile of the sufferer,
when her good-humoured face was lined and shadowed with a dark curiosity and a surprise by no means
pleasant. She stood erect beside the bed, with her mouth firmly shut and drawn down at the corners, in a sort
of recoil and perturbation, looking down upon the patient.
’So that’s Madame de la Rougierre?’ at length exclaimed Lady Knollys, with a very stately disdain. I think I
never saw anyone look more shocked.
Madame sat up, very flushed. No wonder, for she had been wrapped so close in the coverlet. She did not
look quite at Lady Knollys, but straight before her, rather downward, and very luridly.
I was very much frightened and amazed, and felt on the point of bursting into tears.
’So, Mademoiselle, you have married, it seems, since I had last the honour of seeing you? I did not
recognise Mademoiselle under her new name.’
- 57 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Yes—I am married, Lady Knollys; I thought everyone who knew me had heard of that. Very respectably
married, for a person of my rank. I shall not need long the life of a governess. There is no harm, I hope?’
’I hope not,’ said Lady Knollys, drily, a little pale, and still looking with a dark sort of wonder upon the
flushed face and forehead of the governess, who was looking downward, straight before her, very sulkily
and disconcerted.
’I suppose you have explained everything satisfactorily to Mr. Ruthyn, in whose house I find you?’ said
Cousin Monica.
’Yes, certainly, everything he requires—in effect there is nothing to explain. I am ready to answer to any
question. Let him demand me.’
Madame turned upon her a peaked and malign look, smiling askance with a stealthy scorn.
’For myself, I have nothing to conceal. I have always done my duty. What fine scene about nothing
absolutely—what charming [pg 51] remedies for a sick person! Ma foi! how much oblige I am for these so
amiable attentions!’
’So far as I can see, Mademoiselle—Madame, I mean—you don’t stand very much in need of remedies.
Your ear and head don’t seem to trouble you just now. I fancy these pains may now be dismissed.’
’Mi ladi has diverted my attention for a moment, but that does not prevent that I suffer frightfully. I am, of
course, only poor governess, and such people perhaps ought not to have pain—at least to show when they
suffer. It is permitted us to die, but not to be sick.’
’Come, Maud, my dear, let us leave the invalid to her repose and to nature. I don’t think she needs my
chloroform and opium at present.’
- 58 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Mi ladi is herself a physic which chases many things, and powerfully affects the ear. I would wish to sleep,
notwithstanding, and can but gain that in silence, if it pleases mi ladi.’
’Come, my dear,’ said Lady Knollys, without again glancing at the scowling, smiling, swarthy face in the
bed; ’let us leave your instructress to her concforto.’
’The room smells all over of brandy, my dear—does she drink?’ said Lady Knollys, as she closed the door,
a little sharply.
I am sure I looked as much amazed as I felt, at an imputation which then seemed to me so entirely
incredible.
’Good little simpleton!’ said Cousin Monica, smiling in my face, and bestowing a little kiss on my cheek;
’such a thing as a tipsy lady has never been dreamt of in your philosophy. Well, we live and learn. Let us
have our tea in my room—the gentlemen, I dare say, have retired.’
I assented, of course, and we had tea very cosily by her bedroom fire.
’How long have you had that woman?’ she asked suddenly, after, for her, a very long rumination.
’She came in the beginning of February—nearly ten months ago—is not it?’
’I really don’t know; papa tells me so little—he arranged it all himself, I think.’
[pg 52]
Cousin Monica made a sound of acquiescence—her lips closed and a nod, frowning hard at the bars.
’It is very odd!’ she said; ’how people can be such fools!’ Here there came a little pause. ’And what sort of
person is she—do you like her?’
’Very well—that is, pretty well. You won’t tell?—but she rather frightens me. I’m sure she does not intend
it, but somehow I am very much afraid of her.’
- 59 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’She does not beat you?’ said Cousin Monica, with an incipient frenzy in her face that made me love her.
’Oh no!’
’No.’
’You know I won’t tell her anything you say to me; and I only want to know, that I may put an end to it, my
poor little cousin.’
’Thank you, Cousin Monica very much; but really and truly she does not ill-use me.’
’Well, I really—I’m half ashamed to tell you—you’ll laugh at me—and I don’t know that she wishes to
frighten me. But there is something, is not there, ghosty, you know, about her?’
’Ghosty—is there? well, I’m sure I don’t know, but I suspect there’s something devilish—I mean, she seems
roguish—does not she? And I really think she has had neither cold nor pain, but has just been shamming
sickness, to keep out of my way.’
I perceived plainly enough that Cousin Monica’s damnatory epithet referred to some retrospective
knowledge, which she was not going to disclose to me.
’She assures me she is Madame de la Rougierre, and, I suppose, in French phrase she so calls herself,’
answered Lady Knollys, with a laugh, but uncomfortably, I thought.
- 60 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, dear Cousin Monica, do tell me—is she—is she very wicked? I am so afraid of her!’
[pg 53]
’How should I know, dear Maud? But I do remember her face, and I don’t very much like her, and you may
depend on it. I will speak to your father in the morning about her, and don’t, darling, ask me any more about
her, for I really have not very much to tell that you would care to hear, and the fact is I won’t say any more
about her—there!’
And Cousin Monica laughed, and gave me a little slap on the cheek, and then a kiss.
’Well, I won’t tell you this, nor anything—not a word, curious little woman. The fact is, I have little to tell,
and I mean to speak to your father, and he, I am sure, will do what is right; so don’t ask me any more, and
let us talk of something pleasanter.’
There was something indescribably winning, it seemed to me, in Cousin Monica. Old as she was, she
seemed to me so girlish, compared with those slow, unexceptionable young ladies whom I had met in my
few visits at the county houses. By this time my shyness was quite gone, and I was on the most intimate
terms with her.
’You know a great deal about her, Cousin Monica, but you won’t tell me.’
’Nothing I should like better, if I were at liberty, little rogue; but you know, after all, I don’t really say
whether I do know anything about her or not, or what sort of knowledge it is. But tell me what you mean by
ghosty, and all about it.’
So I recounted my experiences, to which, so far from laughing at me, she listened with very special gravity.
I had seen her write letters, and supposed, though I could only recollect one or two, that she received in
proportion.
- 61 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Mary was arranging the window-curtains, and turned, dropping a courtesy affirmatively toward her.
’No,’m—please, my lady.’
[pg 54]
’Never, you are quite sure, my dear?’ said Lady Knollys, transferring the question to me.
Cousin Monica mused gravely, I fancied even anxiously, into the grate; then stirred her tea and sipped it,
still looking into the same point of our cheery fire.
’I like your face, Mary Quince; I’m sure you are a good creature,’ she said, suddenly turning toward her
with a pleasant countenance. ’I’m very glad you have got her, dear. I wonder whether Austin has gone to his
bed yet!’
’I think not. I am certain he is either in the library or in his private room—papa often reads or prays alone at
night, and—and he does not like to be interrupted.’
- 62 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And so you are afraid of goblins, my dear,’ she said at last, with a faded sort of smile, turning toward me;
’well, if I were, I know what I should do—so soon as I, and good Mary Quince here, had got into my
bed-chamber for the night, I should stir the fire into a good blaze, and bolt the door—do you see, Mary
Quince?—bolt the door and keep a candle lighted all night. You’ll be very attentive to her, Mary Quince, for
I—I don’t think she is very strong, and she must not grow nervous: so get to bed early, and don’t leave her
alone—do you see?—and—and remember to bolt the door, Mary Quince, and I shall be sending a little
Christmas-box to my cousin, and I shan’t forget you. Good-night.’
[pg 55]
CHAPTER XII
A CURIOUS CONVERSATION
We each had another cup of tea, and were silent for awhile.
’We must not talk of ghosts now. You are a superstitious little woman, you know, and you shan’t be
frightened.’
And now Cousin Monica grew silent again, and looking briskly around the room, like a lady in search of a
subject, her eye rested on a small oval portrait, graceful, brightly tinted, in the French style, representing a
pretty little boy, with rich golden hair, large soft eyes, delicate features, and a shy, peculiar expression.
’It is odd; I think I remember that pretty little sketch, very long ago. I think I was then myself a child, but
that is a much older style of dress, and of wearing the hair, too, than I ever saw. I am just forty-nine now.
Oh dear, yes; that is a good while before I was born. What a strange, pretty little boy! a mysterious little
fellow. Is he quite sincere, I wonder? What rich golden hair! It is very clever—a French artist, I dare
say—and who is that little boy?’
- 63 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I never heard. Some one a hundred years ago, I dare say. But there is a picture down-stairs I am so anxious
to ask you about!’
’It is the full-length picture of Uncle Silas—I want to ask you about him.’
At mention of his name, my cousin gave me a look so sudden and odd as to amount almost to a start.
’Your uncle Silas, dear? It is very odd, I was just thinking of him;’ and she laughed a little.
And up jumped active Cousin Monica, with a candle in her [pg 56] hand, upon a chair, and scrutinised the
border of the sketch for a name or a date.
And so she unhung it, and there, true enough, not on the back of the drawing, but of the frame, which was
just as good, in pen-and-ink round Italian letters, hardly distinguishable now from the discoloured wood, we
traced—
’It is very odd I should not have been told or remembered who it was. I think if I had ever been told I should
have remembered it. I do recollect this picture, though, I am nearly certain. What a singular child’s face!’
And my cousin leaned over it with a candle on each side, and her hand shading her eyes, as if seeking by aid
of these fair and half-formed lineaments to read an enigma.
The childish features defied her, I suppose; their secret was unfathomable, for after a good while she raised
her head, still looking at the portrait, and sighed.
’A very singular face,’ she said, softly, as a person might who was looking into a coffin. ’Had not we better
replace it?’
- 64 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So the pretty oval, containing the fair golden hair and large eyes, the pale, unfathomable sphinx, remounted
to its nail, and the funeste and beautiful child seemed to smile down oracularly on our conjectures.
’So is the face in the large portrait—very singular—more, I think, than that—handsomer too. This is a sickly
child, I think; but the full-length is so manly, though so slender, and so handsome too. I always think him a
hero and a mystery, and they won’t tell me about him, and I can only dream and wonder.’
’He has made more people than you dream and wonder, my dear Maud. I don’t know what to make of him.
He is a sort of idol, you know, of your father’s, and yet I don’t think he helps him much. His abilities were
singular; so has been his misfortune; for the rest, my dear, he is neither a hero nor a wonder. So far as I
know, there are very few sublime men going about the world.’
’You really must tell me all you know about him, Cousin Monica. Now don’t refuse.’
’But why should you care to hear? There is really nothing pleasant to tell.’
[pg 57]
’That is just the reason I wish it. If it were at all pleasant, it would be quite commonplace. I like to hear of
adventures, dangers, and misfortunes; and above all, I love a mystery. You know, papa will never tell me,
and I dare not ask him; not that he is ever unkind, but, somehow, I am afraid; and neither Mrs. Rusk nor
Mary Quince will tell me anything, although I suspect they know a good deal.’
’I don’t see any good in telling you, dear, nor, to say the truth, any great harm either.’
’No—now that’s quite true—no harm. There can’t be, for I must know it all some day, you know, and better
now, and from you, than perhaps from a stranger, and in a less favourable way.’
’Upon my word, it is a wise little woman; and really, that’s not such bad sense after all.’
So we poured out another cup of tea each, and sipped it very comfortably by the fire, while Lady Knollys
talked on, and her animated face helped the strange story.
’It is not very much, after all. Your uncle Silas, you know, is living?’
- 65 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’So I see you do know something of him, sly girl! but no matter. You know how very rich your father is; but
Silas was the younger brother, and had little more than a thousand a year. If he had not played, and did not
care to marry, it would have been quite enough—ever so much more than younger sons of dukes often have;
but he was—well, a mauvais sujet—you know what that is. I don’t want to say any ill of him—more than I
really know—but he was fond of his pleasures, I suppose, like other young men, and he played, and was
always losing, and your father for a long time paid great sums for him. I believe he was really a most
expensive and vicious young man; and I fancy he does not deny that now, for they say he would change the
past if he could.
I was looking at the pensive little boy in the oval frame—aged eight years—who was, a few springs later, ’a
most expensive and vicious young man,’ and was now a suffering and outcast old one, and wondering from
what a small seed the hemlock or the wallflower grows, and how microscopic are the beginnings of [pg 58]
the kingdom of God or of the mystery of iniquity in a human being’s heart.
’Austin—your papa—was very kind to him—very; but then, you know, he’s an oddity, dear—he is an
oddity, though no one may have told you before—and he never forgave him for his marriage. Your father, I
suppose, knew more about the lady than I did—I was young then—but there were various reports, none of
them pleasant, and she was not visited, and for some time there was a complete estrangement between your
father and your uncle Silas; and it was made up, rather oddly, on the very occasion which some people said
ought to have totally separated them. Did you ever hear anything—anything very remarkable—about your
uncle?’
’No, never, they would not tell me, though I am sure they know. Pray go on.’
’Well, Maud, as I have begun, I’ll complete the story, though perhaps it might have been better untold. It
was something rather shocking—indeed, very shocking; in fact, they insisted on suspecting him of having
committed a murder.’
I stared at my cousin for some time, and then at the little boy, so refined, so beautiful, so funeste, in the oval
frame.
’Yes, dear,’ said she, her eyes following mine; ’who’d have supposed he could ever have—have fallen
under so horrible a suspicion?’
- 66 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’The wretches! Of course, Uncle Silas—of course, he’s innocent?’ I said at last.
’Of course, my dear,’ said Cousin Monica, with an odd look; ’but you know there are some things as bad
almost to be suspected of as to have done, and the country gentlemen chose to suspect him. They did not
like him, you see. His politics vexed them; and he resented their treatment of his wife—though I really
think, poor Silas, he did not care a pin about her—and he annoyed them whenever he could. Your papa, you
know, is very proud of his family—he never had the slightest suspicion of your uncle.’
’That’s right, Maud Ruthyn,’ said Cousin Monica, with a sad little smile and a nod. ’And your papa was,
you may suppose, very angry.’
[pg 59]
’You have no idea, my dear, how angry. He directed his attorney to prosecute, by wholesale, all who had
said a word affecting your uncle’s character. But the lawyers were against it, and then your uncle tried to
fight his way through it, but the men would not meet him. He was quite slurred. Your father went up and
saw the Minister. He wanted to have him a Deputy-Lieutenant, or something, in his county. Your papa, you
know, had a very great influence with the Government. Beside his county influence, he had two boroughs
then. But the Minister was afraid, the feeling was so very strong. They offered him something in the
Colonies, but your father would not hear of it—that would have been a banishment, you know. They would
have given your father a peerage to make it up, but he would not accept it, and broke with the party. Except
in that way—which, you know, was connected with the reputation of the family—I don’t think, considering
his great wealth, he has done very much for Silas. To say truth, however, he was very liberal before his
marriage. Old Mrs. Aylmer says he made a vow then that Silas should never have more than five hundred a
year, which he still allows him, I believe, and he permits him to live in the place. But they say it is in a very
wild, neglected state.’
’You live in the same county—have you seen it lately, Cousin Monica?’
’No, not very lately,’ said Cousin Monica, and began to hum an air abstractedly.
- 67 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XIII
Next morning early I visited my favourite full-length portrait in the chocolate coat and top-boots. Scanty as
had been my cousin Monica’s notes upon this dark and eccentric biography, they were everything to me. A
soul had entered that enchanted [pg 60] form. Truth had passed by with her torch, and a sad light shone for a
moment on that enigmatic face.
There stood the roué—the duellist—and, with all his faults, the hero too! In that dark large eye lurked the
profound and fiery enthusiasm of his ill-starred passion. In the thin but exquisite lip I read the courage of the
paladin, who would have ’fought his way,’ though single-handed, against all the magnates of his county,
and by ordeal of battle have purged the honour of the Ruthyns. There in that delicate half-sarcastic tracery
of the nostril I detected the intellectual defiance which had politically isolated Silas Ruthyn and opposed
him to the landed oligarchy of his county, whose retaliation had been a hideous slander. There, too, and on
his brows and lip, I traced the patience of a cold disdain. I could now see him as he was—the prodigal, the
hero, and the martyr. I stood gazing on him with a girlish interest and admiration. There was indignation,
there was pity, there was hope. Some day it might come to pass that I, girl as I was, might contribute by
word or deed towards the vindication of that long-suffering, gallant, and romantic prodigal. It was a flicker
of the Joan of Arc inspiration, common, I fancy, to many girls. I little then imagined how profoundly and
strangely involved my uncle’s fate would one day become with mine.
I was interrupted by Captain Oakley’s voice at the window. He was leaning on the window-sill, and looking
in with a smile—the window being open, the morning sunny, and his cap lifted in his hand.
’Good-morning, Miss Ruthyn. What a charming old place! quite the setting for a romance; such timber, and
this really beautiful house. I do so like these white and black houses—wonderful old things. By-the-by, you
treated us very badly last night—you did, indeed; upon my word, now, it really was too bad—running away,
- 68 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
and drinking tea with Lady Knollys—so she says. I really—I should not like to tell you how very savage I
felt, particularly considering how very short my time is.’
I was a shy, but not a giggling country miss. I knew I was an heiress; I knew I was somebody. I was not the
least bit in the world conceited, but I think this knowledge helped to give me a certain sense of security and
self-possession, which might have been mistaken for dignity or simplicity. I am sure I looked at him with a
fearless enquiry, for he answered my thoughts.
[pg 61]
’I do really assure you, Miss Ruthyn, I am quite serious; you have no idea how very much we have missed
you.’
There was a little pause, and, like a fool, I lowered my eyes, and blushed.
’I—I was thinking of leaving to-day; I am so unfortunate—my leave is just out—it is so unlucky; but I don’t
quite know whether my aunt Knollys will allow me to go.’
’I?—certainly, my dear Charlie, I don’t want you at all,’ exclaimed a voice—Lady Knollys’s—briskly, from
an open window close by; ’what could put that in your head, dear?’
’She is such an oddity, poor dear Aunt Knollys,’ murmured the young man, ever so little put out, and he
laughed. ’I never know quite what she wishes, or how to please her; but she’s so good-natured; and when
she goes to town for the season—she does not always, you know—her house is really very gay—you can’t
think——’
Here again he was interrupted, for the door opened, and Lady Knollys entered. ’And you know, Charles,’
she continued, ’it would not do to forget your visit to Snodhurst; you wrote, you know, and you have only
to-night and to-morrow. You are thinking of nothing but that moor; I heard you talking to the gamekeeper; I
know he is—is not he, Maud, the brown man with great whiskers, and leggings? I’m very sorry, you know,
but I really must spoil your shooting, for they do expect you at Snodhurst, Charlie; and do not you think this
window a little too much for Miss Ruthyn? Maud, my dear, the air is very sharp; shut it down, Charles, and
you’d better tell them to get a fly for you from the town after luncheon. Come, dear,’ she said to me. ’Was
- 69 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
not that the breakfast bell? Why does not your papa get a gong?—it is so hard to know one bell from
another.’
I saw that Captain Oakley lingered for a last look, but I did not give it, and went out smiling with Cousin
Knollys, and wondering why old ladies are so uniformly disagreeable.
’Don’t allow any of his love-making, my dear. Charles Oakley has not a guinea, and an heiress would be
very convenient. Of course he has his eyes about him. Charles is not by any means foolish; and I should not
be at all sorry to see him well married, for I don’t think he will do much good any other way; [pg 62] but
there are degrees, and his ideas are sometimes very impertinent.’
I was an admiring reader of the Albums, the Souvenirs, the Keepsakes, and all that flood of
Christmas-present lore which yearly irrigated England, with pretty covers and engravings; and floods of
elegant twaddle—the milk, not destitute of water, on which the babes of literature were then fed. On this,
my genius throve. I had a little album, enriched with many gems of original thought and observation, which
I jotted down in suitable language. Lately, turning over these faded leaves of rhyme and prose, I lighted,
under this day’s date, upon the following sage reflection, with my name appended:—
’Is there not in the female heart an ineradicable jealousy, which, if it sways the passions of the young, rules
also the advice of the aged? Do they not grudge to youth the sentiments (though Heaven knows how
shadowed with sorrow) which they can no longer inspire, perhaps even experience; and does not youth, in
turn, sigh over the envy which has power to blight?
’He has not been making love to me,’ I said rather tartly, ’and he does not seem to me at all impertinent, and
I really don’t care the least whether he goes or stays.’
Cousin Monica looked in my face with her old waggish smile, and laughed.
- 70 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You’ll understand those London dandies better some day, dear Maud; they are very well, but they like
money—not to keep, of course—but still they like it and know its value.’
At breakfast my father told Captain Oakley where he might have shooting, or if he preferred going to
Dilsford, only half an hour’s ride, he might have his choice of hunters, and find the dogs there that morning.
The Captain smiled archly at me, and looked at his aunt. There was a suspense. I hope I did not show how
much I was interested—but it would not do. Cousin Monica was inexorable.
’Hunting, hawking, fishing, fiddle-de-dee! You know, Charlie, my dear, it is quite out of the question. He is
going to Snodhurst this afternoon, and without quite a rudeness, in which [pg 63] I should be involved too,
he really can’t—you know you can’t, Charles! and—and he must go and keep his engagement.’
’Oh, leave all that to me. When you want him, only write me a note, and I’ll send him or bring him if you let
me. I always know where to find him—don’t I, Charlie?—and we shall be only too happy.’
Aunt Monica’s influence with her nephew was special, for she ’tipped’ him handsomely every now and
then, and he had formed for himself agreeable expectations, besides, respecting her will. I felt rather angry
at his submitting to this sort of tutelage, knowing nothing of its motive; I was also disgusted by Cousin
Monica’s tyranny.
So soon as he had left the room, Lady Knollys, not minding me, said briskly to papa, ’Never let that young
man into your house again. I found him making speeches, this morning, to little Maud here; and he really
has not two pence in the world—it is amazing impudence—and you know such absurd things do happen.’
I was vexed, and therefore spoke courageously. ’His compliments were not to me; they were all to the
house,’ I said, drily.
’Quite as it should be—the house, of course; it is that he’s in love with,’ said Cousin Knollys.
- 71 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Therefore the literal widow in this case can have no interest in view but one, and that is yours and Maud’s.
I wish him well, but he shan’t put my little cousin and her expectations into his empty pocket—not a bit of
it. And there’s another reason, Austin, why you should marry—you have no eye for these things, whereas a
clever woman would see at a glance and prevent mischief.’
[pg 64]
’So she would,’ acquiesced my father, in his gloomy, amused way. ’Maud, you must try to be a clever
woman.’
’So she will in her time, but that is not come yet; and I tell you, Austin Ruthyn, if you won’t look about and
marry somebody, somebody may possibly marry you.’
’You were always an oracle, Monica; but here I am lost in total perplexity,’ said my father.
’Yes; sharks sailing round you, with keen eyes and large throats; and you have come to the age precisely
when men are swallowed up alive like Jonah.’
’Thank you for the parallel, but you know that was not a happy union, even for the fish, and there was a
separation in a few days; not that I mean to trust to that; but there’s no one to throw me into the jaws of the
monster, and I’ve no notion of jumping there; and the fact is, Monica, there’s no monster at all.’
’But I’m quite sure,’ said my father, a little drily. ’You forget how old I am, and how long I’ve lived
alone—I and little Maud;’ and he smiled and smoothed my hair, and, I thought, sighed.
’No one is ever too old to do a foolish thing,’ began Lady Knollys.
- 72 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Nor to say a foolish thing, Monica. This has gone on too long. Don’t you see that little Maud here is silly
enough to be frightened at your fun.’
’And well or ill, wisely or madly, I’ll never marry; so put that out of your head.’
This was addressed rather to me, I think, than to Lady Knollys, who smiled a little waggishly on me, and
said—
’To be sure, Maud; maybe you are right; a stepdame is a risk, and I ought to have asked you first what you
thought of it; and upon my honour,’ she continued merrily but kindly, observing that my eyes, I know not
exactly from what feeling, filled with tears, ’I’ll never again advise your papa to marry, unless you first tell
me you wish it.’
This was a great deal from Lady Knollys, who had a taste for advising her friends and managing their
affairs.
’I’ve a great respect for instinct. I believe, Austin, it is truer [pg 65] than reason, and yours and Maud’s are
both against me, though I know I have reason on my side.’
My father’s brief wintry smile answered, and Cousin Monica kissed me, and said—
’I’ve been so long my own mistress that I sometimes forget there are such things as fear and jealousy; and
are you going to your governess, Maud?’
CHAPTER XIV
ANGRY WORDS
- 73 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I was going to my governess, as Lady Knollys said; and so I went. The undefinable sense of danger that
smote me whenever I beheld that woman had deepened since last night’s occurrence, and was taken out of
the region of instinct or prepossession by the strange though slight indications of recognition and
abhorrence which I had witnessed in Lady Knollys on that occasion.
The tone in which Cousin Monica had asked, ’are you going to your governess?’ and the curious, grave, and
anxious look that accompanied the question, disturbed me; and there was something odd and cold in the
tone as if a remembrance had suddenly chilled her. The accent remained in my ear, and the sharp brooding
look was fixed before me as I glided up the broad dark stairs to Madame de la Rougierre’s chamber.
She had not come down to the school-room, as the scene of my studies was called. She had decided on
having a relapse, and accordingly had not made her appearance down-stairs that morning. The gallery
leading to her room was dark and lonely, and I grew more nervous as I approached; I paused at the door,
making up my mind to knock.
But the door opened suddenly, and, like a magic-lantern figure, presented with a snap, appeared close before
my eyes the great muffled face, with the forbidding smirk, of Madame de la Rougierre.
[pg 66]
’Wat you mean, my dear cheaile?’ she inquired with a malevolent shrewdness in her eyes, and her hollow
smile all the time disconcerting me more even than the suddenness of her appearance; ’wat for you
approach so softly? I do not sleep, you see, but you feared, perhaps, to have the misfortune of wakening me,
and so you came—is it not so?—to leesten, and looke in very gentily; you want to know how I was. Vous
êtes bien aimable d’avoir pensé à moi. Bah!’ she cried, suddenly bursting through her irony. ’Wy could not
Lady Knollys come herself and leesten to the keyhole to make her report? Fi donc! wat is there to conceal?
Nothing. Enter, if you please. Every one they are welcome!’ and she flung the door wide, turned her back
upon me, and, with an ejaculation which I did not understand, strode into the room.
’I did not come with any intention, Madame, to pry or to intrude—you don’t think so—you can’t think
so—you can’t possibly mean to insinuate anything so insulting!’
- 74 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No, not for you, dear cheaile; I was thinking to miladi Knollys, who, without cause, is my enemy. Every
one has enemy; you will learn all that so soon as you are little older, and without cause she is mine. Come,
Maud, speak a the truth—was it not miladi Knollys who sent you here doucement, doucement, so quaite to
my door—is it not so, little rogue?’
Madame had confronted me again, and we were now standing in the middle of her floor.
I indignantly repelled the charge, and searching me for a moment with her oddly-shaped, cunning eyes, she
said—
’That is good cheaile, you speak a so direct—I like that, and am glad to hear; but, my dear Maud, that
woman——’
’She does hate a me so, you av no idea. She as tryed to injure me several times, and would employ the most
innocent person, unconsciously you know, my dear, to assist her malice.’
Here Madame wept a little. I had already discovered that she could shed tears whenever she pleased. I have
heard of such persons, but I never met another before or since.
Madame was unusually frank—no one ever knew better when to be candid. At present I suppose she
concluded that Lady Knollys would certainly relate whatever she knew concerning [pg 67] her before she
left Knowl; and so Madame’s reserves, whatever they might be, were dissolving, and she growing childlike
and confiding.
’Eh bien, my dear cheaile, I find myself better this morning, and we must return to our lessons. Je veux
m’habiller, ma chère Maud; you will wait me in the school-room.’
- 75 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
By this time Madame, who, though lazy, could make an effort, and was capable of getting into a sudden
hurry, had placed herself before her dressing-table, and was ogling her discoloured and bony countenance in
the glass.
’Wat horror! I am so pale. Quel ennui! wat bore! Ow weak av I grow in two three days!’
And she practised some plaintive, invalid glances into the mirror. But on a sudden there came a little sharp
inquisitive frown as she looked over the frame of the glass, upon the terrace beneath. It was only a glance,
and she sat down languidly in her arm-chair to prepare, I suppose, for the fatigues of the toilet.
’But why, Madame, do you fancy that Lady Knollys dislikes you?’
’’Tis not fancy, my dear Maud. Ah ha, no! Mais c’est toute une histoire—too tedious to tell now—some
time maybe—and you will learn when you are little older, the most violent hatreds often they are the most
without cause. But, my dear cheaile, the hours they are running from us, and I must dress. Vite, vite! so you
run away to the school-room, and I will come after.’
Madame had her dressing-case and her mysteries, and palpably stood in need of repairs; so away I went to
my studies. The room which we called the school-room was partly beneath the floor of Madame’s
bed-chamber, and commanded the same view; so, remembering my governess’s peering glance from her
windows, I looked out, and saw Cousin Monica making a brisk promenade up and down the terrace-walk.
Well, that was quite enough to account for it. I had grown very curious, and I resolved when our lessons
were over to join her and make another attempt to discover the mystery.
[pg 68]
As I sat over my books, I fancied I heard a movement outside the door. I suspected that Madame was
listening. I waited for a time, expecting to see the door open, but she did not come; so I opened it suddenly
myself, but Madame was not on the threshold nor on the lobby. I heard a rustling, however, and on the
staircase over the banister I saw the folds of her silk dress as she descended.
She is going, I thought, to seek an interview with Lady Knollys. She intends to propitiate that dangerous
lady; so I amused some eight or ten minutes in watching Cousin Monica’s quick march and right-about face
- 76 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’She is certainly talking to papa,’ was my next and more probable conjecture. Having the profoundest
distrust of Madame, I was naturally extremely jealous of the confidential interviews in which deceit and
malice might make their representations plausibly and without answer.
’Yes, I’ll run down and see—see papa; she shan’t tell lies behind my back, horrid woman!’
At the study-door I knocked, and forthwith entered. My father was sitting near the window, his open book
before him, Madame standing at the other side of the table, her cunning eyes bathed in tears, and her
pocket-handkerchief pressed to her mouth. Her eyes glittered stealthily on me for an instant: she was
sobbing—désolée, in fact—that grim grenadier lady, and her attitude was exquisitely dejected and timid.
But she was, notwithstanding, reading closely and craftily my father’s face. He was not looking at her, but
rather upward toward the ceiling, reflectively leaning on his hand, with an expression, not angry, but rather
surly and annoyed.
’I ought to have heard of this before, Madame,’ my father was saying as I came in; ’not that it would have
made any difference—not the least; mind that. But it was the kind of thing that I ought to have heard, and
the omission was not strictly right.’
Madame, in a shrill and lamentable key, opened her voluble reply, but was arrested by a nod from my
father, who asked me if I wanted anything.
’Only—only that I was waiting in the school-room for Madame, and did not know where she was.’
[pg 69]
’Well, she is here, you see, and will join you up-stairs in a few minutes.’
So back I went again, huffed, angry, and curious, and sat back in my chair with a clouded countenance,
thinking very little about lessons.
’Good cheaile! reading,’ said she, as she approached briskly and reassured.
- 77 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No,’ I answered tartly; ’not good, nor a child either; I’m not reading, I’ve been thinking.’
’Très-bien!’ she said, with an insufferable smile, ’thinking is very good also; but you look unhappy—very,
poor cheaile. Take care you are not grow jealous for poor Madame talking sometime to your papa; you must
not, little fool. It is only for a your good, my dear Maud, and I had no objection you should stay.’
’You! Madame!’ I said loftily. I was very angry, and showed it through my dignity, to Madame’s evident
satisfaction.
’No—it was your papa, Mr. Ruthyn, who weesh to speak alone; for me I do not care; there was something I
weesh to tell him. I don’t care who know, but Mr. Ruthyn he is deeferent.’
I made no remark.
’Come, leetle Maud, you are not to be so cross; it will be much better you and I to be good friends together.
Why should a we quarrel?—wat nonsense! Do you imagine I would anywhere undertake a the education of
a young person unless I could speak with her parent?—wat folly! I would like to be your friend, however,
my poor Maud, if you would allow—you and I together—wat you say?’
’People grow to be friends by liking, Madame, and liking comes of itself, not by bargain; I like every one
who is kind to me.’
’And so I. You are like me in so many things, my dear Maud! Are you quaite well to-day? I think you look
fateague; so I feel, too, vary tire. I think we weel put off the lessons to to-morrow. Eh? and we will come to
play la grace in the garden.’
Madame was plainly in a high state of exultation. Her audience had evidently been satisfactory, and, like
other people, when things went well, her soul lighted up into a sulphureous [pg 70] good-humour, not very
genuine nor pleasant, but still it was better than other moods.
I was glad when our calisthenics were ended, and Madame had returned to her apartment, so that I had a
pleasant little walk with Cousin Monica.
We women are persevering when once our curiosity is roused, but she gaily foiled mine, and, I think, had a
mischievous pleasure in doing so. As we were going in to dress for dinner, however, she said, quite
gravely—
- 78 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I am sorry, Maud, I allowed you to see that I have any unpleasant impressions about that governess lady. I
shall be at liberty some day to explain all about it, and, indeed, it will be enough to tell your father, whom I
have not been able to find all day; but really we are, perhaps, making too much of the matter, and I cannot
say that I know anything against Madame that is conclusive, or—or, indeed, at all; but that there are
reasons, and—you must not ask any more—no, you must not.’
That evening, while I was playing the overture to Cenerentola, for the entertainment of my cousin, there
arose from the tea-table, where she and my father were sitting, a spirited and rather angry harangue from
Lady Knollys’ lips; I turned my eyes from the music towards the speakers; the overture swooned away with
a little hesitating babble into silence, and I listened.
Their conversation had begun under cover of the music which I was making, and now they were too much
engrossed to perceive its discontinuance. The first sentence I heard seized my attention; my father had
closed the book he was reading, upon his finger, and was leaning back in his chair, as he used to do when at
all angry; his face was a little flushed, and I knew the fierce and glassy stare which expressed pride,
surprise, and wrath.
’Yes, Lady Knollys, there’s an animus; I know the spirit you speak in—it does you no honour,’ said my
father.
’And I know the spirit you speak in, the spirit of madness,’ retorted Cousin Monica, just as much in earnest.
’I can’t conceive how you can be so demented, Austin. What has perverted you? are you blind?’
’You are, Monica; your own unnatural prejudice—unnatural prejudice, blinds you. What is it all?—nothing.
Were I to act as you say, I should be a coward and a traitor. I see, I do see, [pg 71] all that’s real. I’m no
Quixote, to draw my sword on illusions.’
’There should be no halting here. How can you—do you ever think? I wonder if you can breathe. I feel as if
the evil one were in the house.’
A stern, momentary frown was my father’s only answer, as he looked fixedly at her.
’People need not nail up horseshoes and mark their door-stones with charms to keep the evil spirit out,’ ran
on Lady Knollys, who looked pale and angry, in her way, ’but you open your door in the dark and invoke
unknown danger. How can you look at that child that’s—she’s not playing,’ said Knollys, abruptly stopping.
- 79 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My father rose, muttering to himself, and cast a lurid glance at me, as he went in high displeasure to the
door. Cousin Monica, now flushed a little, glanced also silently at me, biting the tip of her slender gold
cross, and doubtful how much I had heard.
My father opened the door suddenly, which he had just closed, and looking in, said, in a calmer tone—
’Perhaps, Monica, you would come for a moment to the study; I’m sure you have none but kindly feelings
towards me and little Maud, there; and I thank you for your good-will; but you must see other things more
reasonably, and I think you will.’
Cousin Monica got up silently and followed him, only throwing up her eyes and hands as she did so, and I
was left alone, wondering and curious more than ever.
CHAPTER XV
A WARNING
I sat still, listening and wondering, and wondering and listening; but I ought to have known that no sound
could reach me where I was from my father’s study. Five minutes passed and they did not return. Ten,
fifteen. I drew near the fire and made [pg 72] myself comfortable in a great arm-chair, looking on the
embers, but not seeing all the scenery and dramatis personae of my past life or future fortunes, in their
shifting glow, as people in romances usually do; but fanciful castles and caverns in blood-red and golden
glare, suggestive of dreamy fairy-land, salamanders, sunsets, and palaces of fire-kings, and all this partly
shaping and partly shaped by my fancy, and leading my closing eyes and drowsy senses off into dream-land.
So I nodded and dozed, and sank into a deep slumber, from which I was roused by the voice of my cousin
Monica. On opening my eyes, I saw nothing but Lady Knollys’ face looking steadily into mine, and
expanding into a good-natured laugh as she watched the vacant and lack-lustre stare with which I returned
her gaze.
- 80 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Come, dear Maud, it is late; you ought to have been in your bed an hour ago.’
Up I stood, and so soon as I had begun to hear and see aright, it struck me that Cousin Monica was more
grave and subdued than I had seen her.
Holding hands, we ascended, I sleepy, she silent; and not a word was spoken until we reached my room.
Mary Quince was in waiting, and tea made.
’Tell her to come back in a few minutes; I wish to say a word to you,’ said Lady Knollys.
Lady Knollys’ eyes followed her till she closed the door behind her.
’So soon!’
’Yes, dear; I could not stay; in fact, I should have gone to-*night, but it was too late, and I leave instead in
the morning.’
’I am so sorry—so very sorry,’ I exclaimed, in honest disappointment, and the walls seemed to darken round
me, and the monotony of the old routine loomed more terrible in prospect.
’No, Maud; I’m vexed with Austin—very much vexed with your father; in short, I can’t conceive anything
so entirely preposterous, and dangerous, and insane as his conduct, now that his eyes are quite opened, and I
must say a word to you before [pg 73] I go, and it is just this:—you must cease to be a mere child, you must
try and be a woman, Maud: now don’t be frightened or foolish, but hear me out. That woman—what does
she call herself—Rougierre? I have reason to believe is—in fact, from circumstances, must be your enemy;
you will find her very deep, daring, and unscrupulous, I venture to say, and you can’t be too much on your
guard. Do you quite understand me, Maud?’
- 81 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I do,’ said I, with a gasp, and my eyes fixed on her with a terrified interest, as if on a warning ghost.
’You must bridle your tongue, mind, and govern your conduct, and command even your features. It is hard
to practise reserve; but you must—you must be secret and vigilant. Try and be in appearance just as usual;
don’t quarrel; tell her nothing, if you do happen to know anything, of your father’s business; be always on
your guard when with her, and keep your eye upon her everywhere. Observe everything, disclose
nothing—do you see?’
’You have good, honest servants about you, and, thank God, they don’t like her. But you must not repeat to
them one word I am now saying to you. Servants are fond of dropping hints, and letting things ooze out in
that way, and in their quarrels with her would compromise you—you understand me?’
I could only stare at her; and under my breath I uttered an ejaculation of terror.
’Don’t be so frightened; you must not be foolish; I only wish you to be upon your guard. I have my
suspicions, but I may be quite wrong; your father thinks I am a fool; perhaps I am—perhaps not; maybe he
may come to think as I do. But you must not speak to him on the subject; he’s an odd man, and never did
and never will act wisely, when his passions and prejudices are engaged.’
’Has she ever committed any great crime?’ I asked, feeling as if I were on the point of fainting.
’No, dear Maud, I never said anything of the kind; don’t be so frightened: I only said I have formed, from
something I know, an ill opinion of her; and an unprincipled person, under [pg 74] temptation, is capable of
a great deal. But no matter how wicked she may be, you may defy her, simply by assuming her to be so, and
acting with caution; she is cunning and selfish, and she’ll do nothing desperate. But I would give her no
opportunity.’
- 82 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’My dear, I can’t stay; your papa and I—we’ve had a quarrel. I know I’m right, and he’s wrong, and he’ll
come to see it soon, if he’s left to himself, and then all will be right. But just now he misunderstands me,
and we’ve not been civil to one another. I could not think of staying, and he would not allow you to come
away with me for a short visit, which I wished. It won’t last, though; and I do assure you, my dear Maud, I
am quite happy about you now that you are quite on your guard. Just act respecting that person as if she
were capable of any treachery, without showing distrust or dislike in your manner, and nothing will remain
in her power; and write to me whenever you wish to hear from me, and if I can be of any real use, I don’t
care, I’ll come: so there’s a wise little woman; do as I’ve said, and depend upon it everything will go well,
and I’ll contrive before long to get that nasty creature away.’
Except a kiss and a few hurried words in the morning when she was leaving, and a pencilled farewell for
papa, there was nothing more from Cousin Monica for some time.
Knowl was dark again—darker than ever. My father, gentle always to me, was now—perhaps it was
contrast with his fitful return to something like the world’s ways, during Lady Knollys’ stay—more silent,
sad, and isolated than before. Of Madame de la Rougierre I had nothing at first particular to remark. Only,
reader, if you happen to be a rather nervous and very young girl, I ask you to conceive my fears and
imaginings, and the kind of misery which I was suffering. Its intensity I cannot now even myself recall. But
it overshadowed me perpetually—a care, an alarm. It lay down with me at night and got up with me in the
morning, tinting and disturbing my dreams, and making my daily life terrible. I wonder now that I lived
through the ordeal. The torment was secret and incessant, and kept my mind in unintermitting activity.
Externally things went on at Knowl for some weeks in the usual routine. Madame was, so far as her
unpleasant ways were concerned, less tormenting than before, and constantly reminded [pg 75] me of ’our
leetle vow of friendship, you remember, dearest Maud!’ and she would stand beside me, and looked from
the window with her bony arm round my waist, and my reluctant hand drawn round in hers; and thus she
would smile, and talk affectionately and even playfully; for at times she would grow quite girlish, and smile
with her great carious teeth, and begin to quiz and babble about the young ’faylows,’ and tell bragging tales
of her lovers, all of which were dreadful to me.
- 83 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
She was perpetually recurring, too, to the charming walk we had had together to Church Scarsdale, and
proposing a repetition of that delightful excursion, which, you may be sure, I evaded, having by no means
so agreeable a recollection of our visit.
One day, as I was dressing to go out for a walk, in came good Mrs. Rusk, the housekeeper, to my room.
’Miss Maud, dear, is not that too far for you? It is a long walk to Church Scarsdale, and you are not looking
very well.’
’To Church Scarsdale?’ I repeated; ’I’m not going to Church Scarsdale; who said I was going to Church
Scarsdale? There is nothing I should so much dislike.’
’Well, I never!’ exclaimed she. ’Why, there’s old Madame’s been down-stairs with me for fruit and
sandwiches, telling me you were longing to go to Church Scarsdale——’
’She does?’ said Mrs. Rusk, quietly; ’and you did not tell her nothing about the basket? Well—if there isn’t
a story! Now what may she be after—what is it—what is she driving at?’
’No, of course, dear, you won’t go. But you may be sure there’s some scheme in her old head. Tom Fowkes
says she’s bin two or three times to drink tea at Farmer Gray’s—now, could it be she’s thinking to marry
him?’ And Mrs. Rusk sat down and laughed heartily, ending with a crow of derision.
’To think of a young fellow like that, and his wife, poor thing, not dead a year—maybe she’s got money?’
’I don’t know—I don’t care—perhaps, Mrs. Rusk, you mistook Madame. I will go down; I am going out.’
Madame had a basket in her hand. She held it quietly by her capacious skirt, at the far side, and made no
allusion to the preparation, neither to the direction in which she proposed [pg 76] walking, and prattling
artlessly and affectionately she marched by my side.
- 84 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Now, Madame, have not we gone far enough in this direction?—suppose we visit the pigeon-house in the
park?’
’And wy not a this way? We ave not walk enough, and Mr. Ruthyn he will not be pleased if you do not take
proper exercise. Let us walk on by the path, and stop when you like.’
’A yes indeed! wat sweet place! bote we need not a walk all the way to there.’
’Come, Maud, you shall not be fool—wat you mean, Mademoiselle?’ said the stalworth lady, growing
yellow and greenish with an angry mottling, and accosting me very gruffly.
’I don’t care to cross the stile, thank you, Madame. I shall remain at this side.’
She had griped my arm very firmly in her great bony hand, and seemed preparing to drag me over by main
force.
’La!’ she cried with a smile of rage and a laugh, letting me go and shoving me backward at the same time,
so that I had a rather dangerous tumble.
- 85 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I stood up, a good deal hurt, and very angry, notwithstanding my fear of her.
’Wat av I done?’ cried Madame, laughing grimly from her hollow jaws; I did all I could to help you
over—’ow could I prevent you to pull back and tumble if you would do so? That is the way wen you petites
Mademoiselles are naughty and hurt yourself they always try to make blame other people. Tell a wat you
like—you think I care?’
[pg 77]
’No.’
She looked steadily in my face and very wickedly. I gazed at her as with dazzled eyes—I suppose as the
feathered prey do at the owl that glares on them by night. I neither moved back nor forward, but stared at
her quite helplessly.
’You are nice pupil—charming young person! So polite, so obedient, so amiable! I will walk towards
Church Scarsdale,’ she continued, suddenly breaking through the conventionalism of her irony, and
accosting me in savage accents. ’You weel stay behind if you dare. I tell you to accompany—do you hear?’
More than ever resolved against following her, I remained where I was, watching her as she marched
fiercely away, swinging her basket as though in imagination knocking my head off with it.
She soon cooled, however, and looking over her shoulder, and seeing me still at the other side of the stile,
she paused, and beckoned me grimly to follow her. Seeing me resolutely maintain my position, she faced
about, tossed her head, like an angry beast, and seemed uncertain for a while what course to take with me.
She stamped and beckoned furiously again. I stood firm. I was very much frightened, and could not tell to
what violence she might resort in her exasperation. She walked towards me with an inflamed countenance,
and a slight angry wagging of the head; my heart fluttered, and I awaited the crisis in extreme trepidation.
She came close, the stile only separating us, and stopped short, glaring and grinning at me like a French
- 86 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 78]
CHAPTER XVI
What had I done to excite this ungovernable fury? We had often before had such small differences, and she
had contented herself with being sarcastic, teasing, and impertinent.
’So, for future you are gouvernante and I the cheaile for you to command—is not so?—and you must direct
where we shall walk. Très-bien! we shall see; Monsieur Ruthyn he shall know everything. For me I do not
care—not at all—I shall be rather pleased, on the contrary. Let him decide. If I shall be responsible for the
conduct and the health of Mademoiselle his daughter, it must be that I shall have authority to direct her wat
she must do—it must be that she or I shall obey. I ask only witch shall command for the future—voilà tout!’
I was frightened, but resolute—I dare say I looked sullen and uncomfortable. At all events, she seemed to
think she might possibly succeed by wheedling; so she tried coaxing and cajoling, and patted my cheek, and
predicted that I would be ’a good cheaile,’ and not ’vex poor Madame,’ but do for the future ’wat she tell a
me.’
She smiled her wide wet grin, smoothed my hand, and patted my cheek, and would in the excess of her
conciliatory paroxysm have kissed me; but I withdrew, and she commented only with a little laugh, and a
’Foolish little thing! but you will be quite amiable just now.’
’Why, Madame,’ I asked, suddenly raising my head and looking her straight in the face, ’do you wish me to
walk to Church Scarsdale so particularly to-day?’
- 87 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
She answered my steady look with a contracted gaze and an unpleasant frown.
’Wy do I?—I do not understand a you; there is no particular day—wat folly! Wy I like Church Scarsdale?
Well, it is such [pg 79] pretty place. There is all! Wat leetle fool! I suppose you think I want to keel a you
and bury you in the churchyard?’
And she laughed, and it would not have been a bad laugh for a ghoul.
’Come, my dearest Maud, you are not a such fool to say, if you tell me me go thees a way, I weel go that;
and if you say, go that a way, I weel go thees—you are rasonable leetle girl—come along—alons donc—we
shall av soche agreeable walk—weel a you?’
But I was immovable. It was neither obstinacy nor caprice, but a profound fear that governed me. I was then
afraid—yes, afraid. Afraid of what? Well, of going with Madame de la Rougierre to Church Scarsdale that
day. That was all. And I believe that instinct was true.
She turned a bitter glance toward Church Scarsdale, and bit her lip. She saw that she must give it up. A
shadow hung upon her drab features. A little scowl—a little sneer—wide lips compressed with a false smile,
and a leaden shadow mottling all. Such was the countenance of the lady who only a minute or two before
had been smiling and murmuring over the stile so amiably with her idiomatic ’blarney,’ as the Irish call that
kind of blandishment.
There was no mistaking the malignant disappointment that hooked and warped her features—my heart
sank—a tremendous fear overpowered me. Had she intended poisoning me? What was in that basket? I
looked in her dreadful face. I felt for a minute quite frantic. A feeling of rage with my father, with my
Cousin Monica, for abandoning me to this dreadful rogue, took possession of me, and I cried, helplessly
wringing my hands—
The countenance of the gouvernante relaxed. I think she in turn was frightened at my extreme agitation. It
might have worked unfavourably with my father.
’Come, Maud, it is time you should try to control your temper. You shall not walk to Church Scarsdale if
you do not like—I only invite. There! It is quite as you please, where we shall walk then? Here to the
- 88 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
peegeon-house? I think you say. Tout bien! Remember I concede you everything. Let us go.’
We went, therefore, towards the pigeon-house, through the forest trees; I not speaking as the children in the
wood did [pg 80] with their sinister conductor, but utterly silent and scared; she silent also, meditating, and
sometimes with a sharp side-glance gauging my progress towards equanimity. Her own was rapid; for
Madame was a philosopher, and speedily accommodated herself to circumstances. We had not walked a
quarter of an hour when every trace of gloom had left her face, which had assumed its customary
brightness, and she began to sing with a spiteful hilarity as we walked forward, and indeed seemed to be
approaching one of her waggish, frolicsome moods. But her fun in these moods was solitary. The joke,
whatever it was, remained in her own keeping. When we approached the ruined brick tower—in old times a
pigeon-house—she grew quite frisky, and twirled her basket in the air, and capered to her own singing.
Under the shadow of the broken wall, and its ivy, she sat down with a frolicsome plump, and opened her
basket, inviting me to partake, which I declined. I must do her justice, however, upon the suspicion of
poison, which she quite disposed of by gobbling up, to her own share, everything which the basket
contained.
The reader is not to suppose that Madame’s cheerful demeanour indicated that I was forgiven. Nothing of
the kind. One syllable more, on our walk home, she addressed not to me. And when we reached the terrace,
she said—
’You will please, Maud, remain for two—three minutes in the Dutch garden, while I speak with Mr. Ruthyn
in the study.’
This was spoken with a high head and an insufferable smile; and I more haughtily, but quite gravely, turned
without disputing, and descended the steps to the quaint little garden she had indicated.
I was surprised and very glad to see my father there. I ran to him, and began, ’Oh! papa!’ and then stopped
short, adding only, ’may I speak to you now?’
- 89 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, sir, it is only this: I entreat that our walks, mine and Madame’s may be confined to the grounds.’
’And why?’
’Afraid!’ he repeated, looking hard at me. ’Have you lately had a letter from Lady Knollys?’
[pg 81]
’She brought me one day to Church Scarsdale; you know what a solitary place it is, sir; and she frightened
me so that I was afraid to go with her into the churchyard. But she went and left me alone at the other side
of the stream, and an impudent man passing by stopped and spoke to me, and seemed inclined to laugh at
me, and altogether frightened me very much, and he did not go till Madame happened to return.’
’A young man; he looked like a farmer’s son, but very impudent, and stood there talking to me whether I
would or not; and Madame did not care at all, and laughed at me for being frightened; and, indeed, I am
very uncomfortable with her.’
He gave me another shrewd look, and then looked down cloudily and thought.
’You say you are uncomfortable and frightened. How is this—what causes these feelings?’
’I don’t know, sir; she likes frightening me; I am afraid of her—we are all afraid of her, I think. The
servants, I mean, as well as I.’
My father nodded his head contemptuously, twice or thrice, and muttered, ’A pack of fools!’
’And she was so very angry to-day with me, because I would not walk again with her to Church Scarsdale. I
am very much afraid of her. I—’ and quite unpremeditatedly I burst into tears.
- 90 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’There, there, little Maud, you must not cry. She is here only for your good. If you are afraid—even
foolishly afraid—it is enough. Be it as you say; your walks are henceforward confined to the grounds; I’ll
tell her so.’
’But, Maud, beware of prejudice; women are unjust and violent in their judgments. Your family has
suffered in some of its members by such injustice. It behoves us to be careful not to practise it.’
That evening in the drawing-room my father said, in his usual abrupt way—
’About my departure, Maud: I’ve had a letter from London this morning, and I think I shall be called away
sooner than I [pg 82] at first supposed, and for a little time we must manage apart from one another. Do not
be alarmed. You shall not be in Madame de la Rougierre’s charge, but under the care of a relation; but even
so, little Maud will miss her old father, I think.’
His tone was very tender, so were his looks; he was looking down on me with a smile, and tears were in his
eyes. This softening was new to me. I felt a strange thrill of surprise, delight, and love, and springing up, I
threw my arms about his neck and wept in silence. He, I think, shed tears also.
’You said a visitor was coming; some one, you mean, to go away with. Ah, yes, you love him better than
me.’
’No, dear, no; but I fear him; and I am sorry to leave you, little Maud.’
I was tempted almost to question him more closely on the subject, but he seemed to divine what was in my
mind, for he said—
’Let us speak no more of it, but only bear in mind, Maud, what I told you about the oak cabinet, the key of
which is here,’ and he held it up as formerly: ’you remember what you are to do in case Doctor Bryerly
should come while I am away?’
- 91 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Yes, sir.’
It was only a few days later that Dr. Bryerly actually did arrive at Knowl, quite unexpectedly, except, I
suppose, by my father. He was to stay only one night.
He was twice closeted in the little study up-stairs with my father, who seemed to me, even for him,
unusually dejected, and Mrs. Rusk inveighing against ’them rubbitch,’ as she always termed the
Swedenborgians, told me ’they were making him quite shaky-like, and he would not last no time, if that
lanky, lean ghost of a fellow in black was to keep prowling in and out of his room like a tame cat.’
I lay awake that night, wondering what the mystery might be that connected my father and Dr. Bryerly.
There was something more than the convictions of their strange religion could account for. There was
something that profoundly agitated my father. [pg 83] It may not be reasonable, but so it is. The person
whose presence, though we know nothing of the cause of that effect, is palpably attended with pain to
anyone who is dear to us, grows odious, and I began to detest Doctor Bryerly.
It was a grey, dark morning, and in a dark pass in the gallery, near the staircase, I came full upon the
ungainly Doctor, in his glossy black suit.
I think, if my mind had been less anxiously excited on the subject of his visit, or if I had not disliked him so
much, I should not have found courage to accost him as I did. There was something sly, I thought, in his
dark, lean face; and he looked so low, so like a Scotch artisan in his Sunday clothes, that I felt a sudden
pang of indignation, at the thought that a great gentleman, like my father, should have suffered under his
influence, and I stopped suddenly, instead of passing him by with a mere salutation, as he expected, ’May I
ask a question, Doctor Bryerly?’
’Certainly’
’The friend, I mean, with whom he is to make an expedition to some distance, I think, and for some little
time?’
- 92 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The Doctor looked into my troubled face with inquiring and darkened eyes, like one who half reads
another’s meaning; and then he said a little briskly, but not sharply—
’Well, I don’t know, I’m sure, Miss; no, indeed, you must have mistaken; there’s nothing that I know.’
’No. He never mentioned any friend to me.’ I fancied that he was made uncomfortable by my question, and
wanted to hide the truth. Perhaps I was partly right.
’Oh! Doctor Bryerly, pray, pray who is the friend, and where is he going?’
[pg 84]
’I do assure you,’ he said, with a strange sort of impatience, ’I don’t know; it is all nonsense.’
’Doctor, one word,’ I said, I believe, quite wildly. ’Do you—do you think his mind is at all affected?’
’Insane?’ he said, looking at me with a sudden, sharp inquisitiveness, that brightened into a smile. ’Pooh,
pooh! Heaven forbid! not a saner man in England.’
Then with a little nod he walked on, carrying, as I believed, notwithstanding his disclaimer, the secret with
him. In the afternoon Doctor Bryerly went away.
- 93 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XVII
AN ADVENTURE
For many days after our quarrel, Madame hardly spoke to me. As for lessons, I was not much troubled with
them. It was plain, too, that my father had spoken to her, for she never after that day proposed our extending
our walks beyond the precincts of Knowl.
Knowl, however, was a very considerable territory, and it was possible for a much better pedestrian than I to
tire herself effectually, without passing its limits. So we took occasionally long walks.
After some weeks of sullenness, during which for days at a time she hardly spoke to me, and seemed lost in
dark and evil abstraction, she once more, and somewhat suddenly, recovered her spirits, and grew quite
friendly. Her gaieties and friendliness were not reassuring, and in my mind presaged approaching mischief
and treachery. The days were shortening to the wintry span. The edge of the red sun had already touched the
horizon [pg 85] as Madame and I, overtaken at the warren by his last beams, were hastening homeward.
A narrow carriage-road traverses this wild region of the park, to which a distant gate gives entrance. On
descending into this unfrequented road, I was surprised to see a carriage standing there. A thin, sly postilion,
with that pert, turned-up nose which the old caricaturist Woodward used to attribute to the gentlemen of
Tewkesbury, was leaning on his horses, and looked hard at me as I passed. A lady who sat within looked
out, with an extra-fashionable bonnet on, and also treated us to a stare. Very pink and white cheeks she had,
very black glossy hair and bright eyes—fat, bold, and rather cross, she looked—and in her bold way she
examined us curiously as we passed.
I mistook the situation. It had once happened before that an intending visitor at Knowl had entered the place
by that park-road, and lost several hours in a vain search for the house.
- 94 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Ask him, Madame, whether they want to go to the house; I dare say they have missed their way,’
whispered I.
’Eh bien, they will find again. I do not choose to talk to post-boys; allons!’
But I asked the man as we passed, ’Do you want to reach the house?’
’Noa,’ he said in a surly tone, smiling oddly on the winkers, but, recollecting his politeness, he added, ’Noa,
thankee, misses, it’s what they calls a picnic; we’ll be takin’ the road now.’
’Come—nonsense!’ whispered Madame sharply in my ear, and she whisked me by the arm, so we crossed
the little stile at the other side.
Our path lay across the warren, which undulates in little hillocks. The sun was down by this time, blue
shadows were stretching round us, colder in the splendid contrast of the burnished sunset sky.
Descending over these hillocks we saw three figures a little in advance of us, not far from the path we were
tracing. Two were standing smoking and chatting at intervals: one tall and slim, with a high chimney-pot,
worn a little on one side, and a white [pg 86] great-coat buttoned up to the chin; the other shorter and
stouter, with a dark-coloured wrapper. These gentlemen were facing rather our way as we came over the
edge of the eminence, but turned their backs on perceiving our approach. As they did so, I remember so well
each lowered his cigar suddenly with the simultaneousness of a drill. The third figure sustained the picnic
character of the group, for he was repacking a hamper. He stood suddenly erect as we drew near, and a very
ill-looking person he was, low-browed, square-chinned, and with a broad, broken nose. He wore gaiters, and
was a little bandy, very broad, and had a closely-cropped bullet head, and deep-set little eyes. The moment I
saw him, I beheld the living type of the burglars and bruisers whom I had so often beheld with a kind of
scepticism in Punch. He stood over his hamper and scowled sharply at us for a moment; then with the point
of his foot he jerked a little fur cap that lay on the ground into his hand, drew it tight over his lowering
brows, and called to his companions, just as we passed him—’Hallo! mister. How’s this?’
- 95 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’All right,’ said the tall person in the white great-coat, who, as he answered, shook his shorter companion by
the arm, I thought angrily.
This shorter companion turned about. He had a muffler loose about his neck and chin. I thought he seemed
shy and irresolute, and the tall man gave him a great jolt with his elbow, which made him stagger, and I
fancied a little angry, for he said, as it seemed, a sulky word or two.
The gentleman in the white surtout, however, standing direct in our way, raised his hat with a mock
salutation, placing his hand on his breast, and forthwith began to advance with an insolent grin and an air of
tipsy frolic.
’Jist in time, ladies; five minutes more and we’d a bin off. Thankee, Mrs. Mouser, ma’am, for the honour of
the meetin’, and more particular for the pleasure of making your young lady’s acquaintance—niece,
ma’am? daughter, ma’am? granddaughter, by Jove, is it? Hallo! there, mild ’n, I say, stop packin’.’ This was
to the ill-favoured person with the broken nose. ’Bring us a couple o’ glasses and a bottle o’ curaçoa; what
are you fear’d on, my dear? this is Lord Lollipop, here, a reg’lar charmer, wouldn’t hurt a fly, hey Lolly?
Isn’t he pretty, Miss? and I’m Sir Simon Sugarstick—so called after old Sir Simon, [pg 87] ma’am; and I’m
so tall and straight, Miss, and slim—ain’t I? and ever so sweet, my honey, when you come to know me, just
like a sugarstick; ain’t I, Lolly, boy?’
’I’m Miss Ruthyn, tell them, Madame,’ I said, stamping on the ground, and very much frightened.
’Be quaite, Maud. If you are angry, they will hurt us; leave me to speak,’ whispered the gouvernante.
All this time they were approaching from separate points. I glanced back, and saw the ruffianly-looking man
within a yard or two, with his arm raised and one finger up, telegraphing, as it seemed, to the gentlemen in
front.
’Be quaite, Maud,’ whispered Madame, with an awful adjuration, which I do not care to set down. ’They are
teepsy; don’t seem ’fraid.’
I was afraid—terrified. The circle had now so narrowed that they might have placed their hands on my
shoulders.
- 96 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Pray, gentlemen, wat you want? weel a you ’av the goodness to permit us to go on?’
I now observed for the first time, with a kind of shock, that the shorter of the two men, who prevented our
advance, was the person who had accosted me so offensively at Church Scarsdale. I pulled Madame by the
arm, whispering, ’Let us run.’
’I tell you what,’ said the tall man, who had replaced his high hat more jauntily than before on the side of
his head, ’We’ve caught you now, fair game, and we’ll let you off on conditions. You must not be
frightened, Miss. Upon my honour and soul, I mean no mischief; do I, Lollipop? I call him Lord Lollipop;
it’s only chaff, though; his name’s Smith. Now, Lolly, I vote we let the prisoners go, when we just introduce
them to Mrs. Smith; she’s sitting in the carriage, and keeps Mr. S. here in precious good order, I promise
you. There’s easy terms for you, eh, and we’ll have a glass o’ curaçoa round, and so part friends. Is it a
bargain? Come!’
’You’ll go with Ma’am, young ’un, won’t you?’ said Mr. Smith, as his companion called him.
Madame was holding my arm, but I snatched it from her, and [pg 88] would have run; the tall man,
however, placed his arms round me and held me fast with an affectation of playfulness, but his grip was
hard enough to hurt me a good deal. Being now thoroughly frightened, after an ineffectual struggle, during
which I heard Madame say, ’You fool, Maud, weel you come with me? see wat you are doing,’ I began to
scream, shriek after shriek, which the man attempted to drown with loud hooting, peals of laughter, forcing
his handkerchief against my mouth, while Madame continued to bawl her exhortations to ’be quaite’ in my
ear.
But at this instant, wild with terror, I distinctly heard other voices shouting. The men who surrounded me
were instantly silent, and all looked in the direction of the sound, now very near, and I screamed with
redoubled energy. The ruffian behind me thrust his great hand over my mouth.
- 97 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’It is the gamekeeper,’ cried Madame. ’Two gamekeepers—we are safe—thank Heaven!’ and she began to
call on Dykes by name.
I only remember, feeling myself at liberty—running a few steps—seeing Dykes’ white furious
face—clinging to his arm, with which he was bringing his gun to a level, and saying, ’Don’t fire—they’ll
murder us if you do.’
’Run on to the gate and lock it—I’ll be wi’ ye in a minute,’ cried he to the other gamekeeper; who started
instantly on this mission, for the three ruffians were already in full retreat for the carriage.
’Now, Madame Rogers—s’pose you take young Misses on—I must run and len’ Bill a hand.’
’No, no; you moste not,’ cried Madame. ’I am fainting myself, and more villains they may be near to us.’
But at this moment we heard a shot, and, muttering to himself and grasping his gun, Dykes ran at his utmost
speed in the direction of the sound.
With many exhortations to speed, and ejaculations of alarm, Madame hurried me on toward the house,
which at length we reached without further adventure.
As it happened, my father met us in the hall. He was perfectly [pg 89] transported with fury on hearing from
Madame what had happened, and set out at once, with some of the servants, in the hope of intercepting the
party at the park-gate.
Here was a new agitation; for my father did not return for nearly three hours, and I could not conjecture
what might be occurring during the period of his absence. My alarm was greatly increased by the arrival in
the interval of poor Bill, the under-gamekeeper, very much injured.
Seeing that he was determined to intercept their retreat, the three men had set upon him, wrested his gun,
which exploded in the struggle, from him, and beat him savagely. I mention these particulars, because they
convinced everybody that there was something specially determined and ferocious in the spirit of the party,
and that the fracas was no mere frolic, but the result of a predetermined plan.
- 98 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My father had not succeeded in overtaking them. He traced them to the Lugton Station, where they had
taken the railway, and no one could tell him in what direction the carriage and posthorses had driven.
Madame was, or affected to be, very much shattered by what had occurred. Her recollection and mine, when
my father questioned us closely, differed very materially respecting many details of the personnel of the
villanous party. She was obstinate and clear; and although the gamekeeper corroborated my description of
them, still my father was puzzled. Perhaps he was not sorry that some hesitation was forced upon him,
because although at first he would have gone almost any length to detect the persons, on reflection he was
pleased that there was not evidence to bring them into a court of justice, the publicity and annoyance of
which would have been inconceivably distressing to me.
Madame was in a strange state—tempestuous in temper, talking incessantly—every now and then in floods
of tears, and perpetually on her knees pouring forth torrents of thanksgiving to Heaven for our joint
deliverance from the hands of those villains. Notwithstanding our community of danger and her
thankfulness on my behalf, however, she broke forth into wrath and railing whenever we were alone
together.
’Wat fool you were! so disobedient and obstinate; if you ’ad done wat I say, then we should av been quaite
safe; those persons [pg 90] they were tipsy, and there is nothing so dangerous as to quarrel with tipsy
persons; I would ’av brought you quaite safe—the lady she seem so nice and quaite, and we should ’av been
safe with her—there would ’av been nothing absolutely; but instead you would scream and pooshe, and so
they grow quite wild, and all the impertinence and violence follow of course; and that a poor Bill—all his
beating and danger to his life it is cause entairely by you.’
And she spoke with more real virulence than that kind of upbraiding generally exhibits.
’The beast!’ exclaimed Mrs. Rusk, when she, I, and Mary Quince were in my room together, ’with all her
crying and praying, I’d like to know as much as she does, maybe, about them rascals. There never was sich
like about the place, long as I remember it, till she came to Knowl, old witch! with them unmerciful big
bones of hers, and her great bald head, grinning here, and crying there, and her nose everywhere. The old
French hypocrite!’
Mary Quince threw in an observation, and I believe Mrs. Rusk rejoined, but I heard neither. For whether the
housekeeper spoke with reflection or not, what she said affected me strangely. Through the smallest
- 99 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
aperture, for a moment, I had had a peep into Pandemonium. Were not peculiarities of Madame’s
demeanour and advice during the adventure partly accounted for by the suggestion? Could the proposed
excursion to Church Scarsdale have had any purpose of the same sort? What was proposed? How was
Madame interested in it? Were such immeasurable treason and hypocrisy possible? I could not explain nor
quite believe in the shapeless suspicion that with these light and bitter words of the old housekeeper had
stolen so horribly into my mind.
After Mrs. Rusk was gone I awoke from my dismal abstraction with something like a moan and a shudder,
with a dreadful sense of danger.
’Oh! Mary Quince,’ I cried, ’do you think she really knew?’
’Do you think Madame knew of those dreadful people? Oh, no—say you don’t—you don’t believe it—tell
me she did not. I’m distracted, Mary Quince, I’m frightened out of my life.’
’There now, Miss Maud, dear—there now, don’t take on so—why [pg 91] should she?—no sich a thing.
Mrs. Rusk, law bless you, she’s no more meaning in what she says than the child unborn.’
But I was really frightened. I was in a horrible state of uncertainty as to Madame de la Rougierre’s
complicity with the party who had beset us at the warren, and afterwards so murderously beat our poor
gamekeeper. How was I ever to get rid of that horrible woman? How long was she to enjoy her continual
opportunities of affrighting and injuring me?
’She hates me—she hates me, Mary Quince; and she will never stop until she has done me some dreadful
injury. Oh! will no one relieve me—will no one take her away? Oh, papa, papa, papa! you will be sorry
when it is too late.’
I was crying and wringing my hands, and turning from side to side, at my wits’ ends, and honest Mary
Quince in vain endevoured to quiet and comfort me.
- 100 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XVIII
A MIDNIGHT VISITOR
The frightful warnings of Lady Knollys haunted me too. Was there no escape from the dreadful companion
whom fate had assigned me? I made up my mind again and again to speak to my father and urge her
removal. In other things he indulged me; here, however, he met me drily and sternly, and it was plain that he
fancied I was under my cousin Monica’s influence, and also that he had secret reasons for persisting in an
opposite course. Just then I had a gay, odd letter from Lady Knollys, from some country house in
Shropshire. Not a word about Captain Oakley. My eye skimmed its pages in search of that charmed name.
With a peevish feeling I tossed the sheet upon the table. Inwardly I thought how ill-natured and unwomanly
it was.
After a time, however, I read it, and found the letter very good-natured. She had received a note from papa.
He had ’had [pg 92] the impudence to forgive her for his impertinence.’ But for my sake she meant,
notwithstanding this aggravation, really to pardon him; and whenever she had a disengaged week, to accept
his invitation to Knowl, from whence she was resolved to whisk me off to London, where, though I was too
young to be presented at Court and come out, I might yet—besides having the best masters and a good
excuse for getting rid of Medusa—see a great deal that would amuse and surprise me.
’Great news, I suppose, from Lady Knollys?’ said Madame, who always knew who in the house received
letters by the post, and by an intuition from whom they came.
Some fishing questions, dropped from time to time, fared no better. And as usual, when she was foiled even
in a trifle, she became sullen and malignant.
That night, when my father and I were alone, he suddenly closed the book he had been reading, and said—
- 101 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I heard from Monica Knollys to-day. I always liked poor Monnie; and though she’s no witch, and very
wrong-headed at times, yet now and then she does say a thing that’s worth weighing. Did she ever talk to
you of a time, Maud, when you are to be your own mistress?’
’No,’ I answered, a little puzzled, and looking straight in his rugged, kindly face.
’Well, I thought she might—she’s a rattle, you know—always was a rattle, and that sort of people say
whatever comes uppermost. But that’s a subject for me, and more than once, Maud, it has puzzled me.’
He sighed.
So, he carrying a candle, we crossed the lobby, and marched together through the passage, which at night
always seemed a little awesome, darkly wainscoted, uncheered by the cross-light from the hall, which was
lost at the turn, leading us away from the frequented parts of the house to that misshapen and lonely room
about which the traditions of the nursery and the servants’ hall had had so many fearful stories to recount.
I think my father had intended making some disclosure to me [pg 93] on reaching this room. If so, he
changed his mind, or at least postponed his intention.
He had paused before the cabinet, respecting the key of which he had given me so strict a charge, and I
think he was going to explain himself more fully than he had done. But he went on, instead, to the table
where his desk, always jealously locked, was placed, and having lighted the candles which stood by it, he
glanced at me, and said—
’You must wait a little, Maud; I shall have something to say to you. Take this candle and amuse yourself
with a book meanwhile.’
I was accustomed to obey in silence. I chose a volume of engravings, and ensconced myself in a favourite
nook in which I had often passed a half-hour similarly. This was a deep recess by the fireplace, fenced on
the other side by a great old escritoir. Into this I drew a stool, and, with candle and book, I placed myself
snugly in the narrow chamber. Every now and then I raised my eyes and saw my father either writing or
ruminating, as it seemed to me, very anxiously at his desk.
- 102 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Time wore on—a longer time than he had intended, and still he continued absorbed at his desk. Gradually I
grew sleepy, and as I nodded, the book and room faded away, and pleasant little dreams began to gather
round me, and so I went off into a deep slumber.
It must have lasted long, for when I wakened my candle had burnt out; my father, having quite forgotten
me, was gone, and the room was dark and deserted. I felt cold and a little stiff, and for some seconds did not
know where I was.
I had been wakened, I suppose, by a sound which I now distinctly heard, to my great terror, approaching.
There was a rustling; there was a breathing. I heard a creaking upon the plank that always creaked when
walked upon in the passage. I held my breath and listened, and coiled myself up in the innermost recess of
my little chamber.
Sudden and sharp, a light shone in from the nearly-closed study door. It shone angularly on the ceiling like a
letter L reversed. There was a pause. Then some one knocked softly at the door, which after another pause
was slowly pushed open. I expected, I think, to see the dreaded figure of the linkman. I was scarcely less
frightened to see that of Madame de la Rougierre. [pg 94] She was dressed in a sort of grey silk, which she
called her Chinese silk—precisely as she had been in the daytime. In fact, I do not think she had undressed.
She had no shoes on. Otherwise her toilet was deficient in nothing. Her wide mouth was grimly closed, and
she stood scowling into the room with a searching and pallid scrutiny, the candle held high above her head
at the full stretch of her arm.
Placed as I was in a deep recess, and in a seat hardly raised above the level of the floor, I escaped her,
although it seemed to me for some seconds, as I gazed on this spectre, that our eyes actually met.
I sat without breathing or winking, staring upon the formidable image which with upstretched arm, and the
sharp lights and hard shadows thrown upon her corrugated features, looked like a sorceress watching for the
effect of a spell.
She was plainly listening intensely. Unconsciously she had drawn her lower lip altogether between her
teeth, and I well remember what a deathlike and idiotic look the contortion gave her. My terror lest she
should discover me amounted to positive agony. She rolled her eyes stealthily from corner to corner of the
room, and listened with her neck awry at the door.
- 103 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Then to my father’s desk she went. To my great relief, her back was towards me. She stooped over it, with
the candle close by; I saw her try a key—it could be nothing else—and I heard her blow through the wards
to clear them.
Then, again, she listened at the door, candle in hand, and then with long tiptoe steps came back, and papa’s
desk in another moment was open, and Madame cautiously turning over the papers it contained.
Twice or thrice she paused, glided to the door, and listened again intently with her head near the ground,
and then returned and continued her search, peeping into papers one after another, tolerably methodically,
and reading some quite through.
While this felonious business was going on, I was freezing with fear lest she should accidentally look round
and her eyes light on me; for I could not say what she might not do rather than have her crime discovered.
Sometimes she would read a paper twice over; sometimes a whisper no louder than the ticking of a watch,
sometimes a brief [pg 95] chuckle under her breath, bespoke the interest with which here and there a letter
or a memorandum was read.
For about half an hour, I think, this went on; but at the time it seemed to me all but interminable. On a
sudden she raised her head and listened for a moment, replaced the papers deftly, closed the desk without
noise, except for the tiny click of the lock, extinguished the candle, and rustled stealthily out of the room,
leaving in the darkness the malign and hag-like face on which the candle had just shone still floating filmy
in the dark.
Why did I remain silent and motionless while such an outrage was being committed? If, instead of being a
very nervous girl, preoccupied with an undefinable terror of that wicked woman, I had possessed courage
and presence of mind, I dare say I might have given an alarm, and escaped from the room without the
slightest risk. But so it was; I could no more stir than the bird who, cowering under its ivy, sees the white
owl sailing back and forward under its predatory cruise.
Not only during her presence, but for more than an hour after, I remained cowering in my hiding-place, and
afraid to stir, lest she might either be lurking in the neighborhood, or return and surprise me.
You will not be astonished, that after a night so passed I was ill and feverish in the morning. To my horror,
Madame de la Rougierre came to visit me at my bedside. Not a trace of guilty consciousness of what had
- 104 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
passed during the night was legible in her face. She had no sign of late watching, and her toilet was
exemplary.
As she sat smiling by me, full of anxious and affectionate enquiry, and smoothed the coverlet with her great
felonious hand, I could quite comprehend the dreadful feeling with which the deceived husband in the
’Arabian Nights’ met his ghoul wife, after his nocturnal discovery.
Ill as I was, I got up and found my father in that room which adjoined his bedchamber. He perceived, I am
sure, by my looks, that something unusual had happened. I shut the door, and came close beside his chair.
’Oh, papa, I have such a thing to tell you!’ I forgot to call him ’Sir.’ ’A secret; and you won’t say who told
you? Will you come down to the study?’
He looked hard at me, got up, and kissing my forehead, said—’Don’t [pg 96] be frightened, Maud; I venture
to say it is a mare’s nest; at all events, my child, we will take care that no danger reaches you; come, child.’
And by the hand he led me to the study. When the door was shut, and we had reached the far end of the
room next the window, I said, but in a low tone, and holding his arm fast—
’Oh, sir, you don’t know what a dreadful person we have living with us—Madame de la Rougierre, I mean.
Don’t let her in if she comes; she would guess what I am telling you, and one way or another I am sure she
would kill me.’
’Tut, tut, child. You must know that’s nonsense,’ he said, looking pale and stern.
’Oh no, papa. I am horribly frightened, and Lady Knollys thinks so too.’
’Ha! I dare say; one fool makes many. We all know what Monica thinks.’
’But I saw it, papa. She stole your key last night, and opened your desk, and read all your papers.’
’Stole my key!’ said my father, staring at me perplexed, but at the same instant producing it. ’Stole it! Why
here it is!’
’She unlocked your desk; she read your papers for ever so long. Open it now, and see whether they have not
been stirred.’
- 105 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
He looked at me this time in silence, with a puzzled air; but he did unlock the desk, and lifted the papers
curiously and suspiciously. As he did so he uttered a few of those inarticulate interjections which are made
with closed lips, and not always intelligible; but he made no remark.
Then he placed me on a chair beside him, and sitting down himself, told me to recollect myself, and tell him
distinctly all I had seen. This accordingly I did, he listening with deep attention.
’Did she remove any paper?’ asked my father, at the same time making a little search, I suppose, for that
which he fancied might have been stolen.
’Well, you are a good girl, Maud. Act discreetly. Say nothing to anyone—not even to your cousin Monica.’
Directions which, coming from another person would have had no great weight, were spoken by my father
with an earnest look and a weight of emphasis that made them irresistibly impressive, [pg 97] and I went
away with the seal of silence upon my lips.
’Sit down, Maud, there. You have not been very happy with Madame de la Rougierre. It is time you were
relieved. This occurrence decides it.’
’Tell Madame de la Rougierre that I request the honour of seeing her for a few minutes here.’
My father’s communications to her were always equally ceremonious. In a few minutes there was a knock
at the door, and the same figure, smiling, courtesying, that had scared me on the threshold last night, like the
spirit of evil, presented itself.
My father rose, and Madame having at his request taken a chair opposite, looking, as usual in his presence,
all amiability, he proceeded at once to the point.
’Madame de la Rougierre, I have to request you that you will give me the key now in your possession,
which unlocks this desk of mine.’
- 106 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Madame, who had expected something very different, became instantly so pale, with a dull purplish hue
upon her forehead, that, especially when she had twice essayed with her white lips, in vain, to answer, I
expected to see her fall in a fit.
She was not looking in his face; her eyes were fixed lower, and her mouth and cheek sucked in, with a
strange distortion at one side.
She stood up suddenly, and staring straight in his face, she succeeded in saying, after twice clearing her
throat—
’It won’t do, Madame; I must have that false key. I give you the opportunity of surrendering it quietly here
and now.’
’But who dares to say I possess such thing?’ demanded Madame, who, having rallied from her momentary
paralysis, was now fierce and voluble as I had often seen her before.
’You know, Madame, that you can rely on what I say, and I tell you that you were seen last night visiting
this room, and with a key in your possession, opening this desk, and reading my letters and papers contained
in it. Unless you forthwith give me that key, and any other false keys in your possession—in [pg 98] which
case I shall rest content with dismissing you summarily—I will take a different course. You know I am a
magistrate;—and I shall have you, your boxes, and places up-stairs, searched forthwith, and I will prosecute
you criminally. The thing is clear; you aggravate by denying; you must give me that key, if you please,
instantly, otherwise I ring this bell, and you shall see that I mean what I say.’
There was a little pause. He rose and extended his hand towards the bell-rope. Madame glided round the
table, extended her hand to arrest his.
And with these words Madame de la Rougierre broke down altogether. She sobbed, she wept, she gabbled
piteously, all manner of incomprehensible roulades of lamentation and entreaty; coyly, penitently, in a most
interesting agitation, she produced the very key from her breast, with a string tied to it. My father was little
moved by this piteous tempest. He coolly took the key and tried it in the desk, which it locked and unlocked
- 107 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
quite freely, though the wards were complicated. He shook his head and looked her in the face.
’Pray, who made this key? It is a new one, and made expressly to pick this lock.’
But Madame was not going to tell any more than she had expressly bargained for; so she only fell once
more into her old paroxysm of sorrow, self-reproach, extenuation, and entreaty.
’Well,’ said my father,’ I promised that on surrendering the key you should go. It is enough. I keep my
word. You shall have an hour and a half to prepare in. You must then be ready to depart. I will send your
money to you by Mrs. Rusk; and if you look for another situation, you had better not refer to me. Now be so
good as to leave me.’
Madame seemed to be in a strange perplexity. She bridled up, dried her eyes fiercely, and dropped a great
courtesy, and then sailed away towards the door. Before reaching it she stopped on the way, turning half
round, with a peaked, pallid glance at my father, and she bit her lip viciously as she eyed him. At the door
the same repulsive pantomime was repeated, as she stood for a moment with her hand upon the handle. But
she changed her bearing again with a sniff, and with a look of scorn, almost heightened [pg 99] to a sneer,
she made another very low courtesy and a disdainful toss of her head, and so disappeared, shutting the door
rather sharply behind her.
CHAPTER XIX
AU REVOIR
Mrs. Rusk was fond of assuring me that Madame ’did not like a bone in my skin.’ Instinctively I knew that
she bore me no good-will, although I really believe it was her wish to make me think quite the reverse. At
all events I had no desire to see Madame again before her departure, especially as she had thrown upon me
one momentary glance in the study, which seemed to me charged with very peculiar feelings.
- 108 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
You may be very sure, therefore, that I had no desire for a formal leave-taking at her departure. I took my
hat and cloak, therefore, and stole out quietly.
My ramble was a sequestered one, and well screened, even at this late season, with foliage; the pathway
devious among the stems of old trees, and its flooring interlaced and groined with their knotted roots.
Though near the house, it was a sylvan solitude; a little brook ran darkling and glimmering through it, wild
strawberries and other woodland plants strewed the ground, and the sweet notes and flutter of small birds
made the shadow of the boughs cheery.
I had been fully an hour in this picturesque solitude when I heard in the distance the ring of carriage-wheels,
announcing to me that Madame de la Rougierre had fairly set out upon her travels. I thanked heaven; I could
have danced and sung with delight; I heaved a great sigh and looked up through the branches to the clear
blue sky.
But things are oddly timed. Just at this moment I heard Madame’s voice close at my ear, and her large bony
hand was [pg 100] laid on my shoulder. We were instantly face to face—I recoiling, and for a moment
speechless with fright.
In very early youth we do not appreciate the restraints which act upon malignity, or know how effectually
fear protects us where conscience is wanting. Quite alone, in this solitary spot, detected and overtaken with
an awful instinct by my enemy, what might not be about to happen to me at that moment?
’Frightened as usual, Maud,’ she said quietly, and eyeing me with a sinister smile, ’and with cause you
think, no doubt. Wat ’av you done to injure poor Madame? Well, I think I know, little girl, and have quite
discover the cleverness of my sweet little Maud. Eh—is not so? Petite carogne—ah, ha, ha!’
’You see, my dear cheaile,’ she said, shaking her uplifted finger with a hideous archness at me, ’you could
not hide what you ’av done from poor Madame. You cannot look so innocent but I can see your pretty little
villany quite plain—you dear little diablesse.
’Wat I ’av done I ’av no reproach of myself for it. If I could explain, your papa would say I ’av done right,
and you should thank me on your knees; but I cannot explain yet.’
- 109 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
She was speaking, as it were, in little paragraphs, with a momentary pause between each, to allow its
meaning to impress itself.
’If I were to choose to explain, your papa he would implore me to remain. But no—I would
not—notwithstanding your so cheerful house, your charming servants, your papa’s amusing society, and
your affectionate and sincere heart, my sweet little maraude.
’I am to go to London first, where I ’av, oh, so good friends! next I will go abroad for some time; but be
sure, my sweetest Maud, wherever I may ’appen to be, I will remember you—ah, ha! Yes; most certainly, I
will remember you.
’And although I shall not be always near, yet I shall know everything about my charming little Maud; you
will not know how, but I shall indeed, everything. And be sure, my dearest cheaile, I will some time be able
to give you the sensible proofs of my gratitude and affection—you understand.
’The carriage is waiting at the yew-tree stile, and I must go on. You did not expect to see me—here; I will
appear, perhaps, [pg 101] as suddenly another time. It is great pleasure to us both—this opportunity to make
our adieux. Farewell! my dearest little Maud. I will never cease to think of you, and of some way to
recompense the kindness you ’av shown for poor Madame.’
My hand hung by my side, and she took, not it, but my thumb, and shook it, folded in her broad palm, and
looking on me as she held it, as if meditating mischief. Then suddenly she said—
’You will always remember Madame, I think, and I will remind you of me beside; and for the present
farewell, and I hope you may be as ’appy as you deserve.’
The large sinister face looked on me for a second with its latent sneer, and then, with a sharp nod and a
spasmodic shake of my imprisoned thumb, she turned, and holding her dress together, and showing her
great bony ankles, she strode rapidly away over the gnarled roots into the perspective of the trees, and I did
not awake, as it were, until she had quite disappeared in the distance.
Events of this kind made no difference with my father; but every other face in Knowl was gladdened by the
removal. My energies had returned, my spirits were come again. The sunlight was happy, the flowers
innocent, the songs and flutter of the birds once more gay, and all nature delightful and rejoicing.
- 110 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
After the first elation of relief, now and then a filmy shadow of Madame de la Rougierre would glide across
the sunlight, and the remembrance of her menace return with an unexpected pang of fear.
’Well, if there isn’t impittens!’ cried Mrs. Rusk. ’But never you trouble your head about it, Miss. Them
sort’s all alike—you never saw a rogue yet that was found out and didn’t threaten the honest folk as he was
leaving behind with all sorts; there was Martin the gamekeeper, and Jervis the footman, I mind well how
hard they swore all they would not do when they was a-going, and who ever heard of them since? They
always threatens that way—them sort always does, and none ever the worse—not but she would if she
could, mind ye, but there it is; she can’t do nothing but bite her nails and cuss us—not she—ha, ha, ha!’
So I was comforted. But Madame’s evil smile, nevertheless, from time to time, would sail across my vision
with a silent [pg 102] menace, and my spirits sank, and a Fate, draped in black, whose face I could not see,
took me by the hand, and led me away, in the spirit, silently, on an awful exploration from which I would
rouse myself with a start, and Madame was gone for a while.
She had, however, judged her little parting well. She contrived to leave her glamour over me, and in my
dreams she troubled me.
I was, however, indescribably relieved. I wrote in high spirits to Cousin Monica; and wondered what plans
my father might have formed about me, and whether we were to stay at home, or go to London, or go
abroad. Of the last—the pleasantest arrangement, in some respects—I had nevertheless an occult horror. A
secret conviction haunted me that were we to go abroad, we should there meet Madame, which to me was
like meeting my evil genius.
I have said more than once that my father was an odd man; and the reader will, by this time, have seen that
there was much about him not easily understood. I often wonder whether, if he had been franker, I should
have found him less odd than I supposed, or more odd still. Things that moved me profoundly did not
apparently affect him at all. The departure of Madame, under the circumstances which attended it, appeared
to my childish mind an event of the vastest importance. No one was indifferent to the occurrence in the
house but its master. He never alluded again to Madame de la Rougierre. But whether connected with her
exposure and dismissal, I could not say, there did appear to be some new care or trouble now at work in my
father’s mind.
- 111 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I have been thinking a great deal about you, Maud. I am anxious. I have not been so troubled for years.
Why has not Monica Knollys a little more sense?’
This oracular sentence he spoke, having stopped me in the hall; and then saying, ’We shall see,’ he left me
as abruptly as he appeared.
A day or two afterwards, as I was in the Dutch garden, I saw him on the terrace steps. He beckoned to me,
and came to meet me as I approached.
’You must be very solitary, little Maud; it is not good. I [pg 103] have written to Monica: in a matter of
detail she is competent to advise; perhaps she will come here for a short visit.’
’You are more interested than for my time I can be, in vindicating his character.’
’Whose character, sir?’ I ventured to enquire during the pause that followed.
One trick which my father had acquired from his habits of solitude and silence was this of assuming that the
context of his thoughts was legible to others, forgetting that they had not been spoken.
’Whose?—your uncle Silas’s. In the course of nature he must survive me. He will then represent the family
name. Would you make some sacrifice to clear that name, Maud?’
He turned on me such an approving smile as you might fancy lighting up the rugged features of a pale old
Rembrandt.
’I can tell you, Maud; if my life could have done it, it should not have been undone—ubi lapsus, quid feci.
But I had almost made up my mind to change my plan, and leave all to time—edax rerum—to illuminate or
to consume. But I think little Maud would like to contribute to the restitution of her family name. It may cost
you something—are you willing to buy it at a sacrifice? Is there—I don’t speak of fortune, that is not
involved—but is there any other honourable sacrifice you would shrink from to dispel the disgrace under
which our most ancient and honourable name must otherwise continue to languish?’
- 112 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, Maud, I am sure there is no risk; but you are to suppose there is. Are you still willing to accept it?’
Again I assented.
’You are worthy of your blood, Maud Ruthyn. It will come soon, and it won’t last long. But you must not let
people like Monica Knollys frighten you.’
’If you allow them to possess you with their follies, you had better recede in time—they may make the
ordeal as terrible as hell itself. You have zeal—have you nerve?’
[pg 104]
’Well, Maud, in the course of a few months—and it may be sooner—there must be a change. I have had a
letter from London this morning that assures me of that. I must then leave you for a time; in my absence be
faithful to the duties that will arise. To whom much is committed, of him will much be required. You shall
promise me not to mention this conversation to Monica Knollys. If you are a talking girl, and cannot trust
yourself, say so, and we will not ask her to come. Also, don’t invite her to talk about your uncle Silas—I
have reasons. Do you quite understand my conditions?’
’Yes, sir.’
’Your uncle Silas,’ he said, speaking suddenly in loud and fierce tones that sounded from so old a man
almost terrible, ’lies under an intolerable slander. I don’t correspond with him; I don’t sympathise with him;
I never quite did. He has grown religious, and that’s well; but there are things in which even religion should
not bring a man to acquiesce; and from what I can learn, he, the person primarily affected—the cause,
though the innocent cause—of this great calamity—bears it with an easy apathy which is mistaken, and
liable easily to be mistaken, and such as no Ruthyn, under the circumstances, ought to exhibit. I told him
what he ought to do, and offered to open my purse for the purpose; but he would not, or did not; indeed, he
- 113 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
never took my advice; he followed his own, and a foul and dismal shoal he has drifted on. It is not for his
sake—why should I?-that I have longed and laboured to remove the disgraceful slur under which his
ill-fortune has thrown us. He troubles himself little about it, I believe—he’s meek, meeker than I. He cares
less about his children than I about you, Maud; he is selfishly sunk in futurity—a feeble visionary. I am not
so. I believe it to be a duty to take care of others beside myself. The character and influence of an ancient
family is a peculiar heritage—sacred but destructible; and woe to him who either destroys or suffers it to
perish!’
This was the longest speech I ever heard my father speak before or after. He abruptly resumed—
’Yes, we will, Maud—you and I—we’ll leave one proof on record, which, fairly read, will go far to
convince the world.’
He looked round, but we were alone. The garden was nearly [pg 105] always solitary, and few visitors ever
approached the house from that side.
’I have talked too long, I believe; we are children to the last. Leave me, Maud. I think I know you better
than I did, and I am pleased with you. Go, child—I’ll sit here.’
If he had acquired new ideas of me, so had I of him from that interview. I had no idea till then how much
passion still burned in that aged frame, nor how full of energy and fire that face, generally so stern and
ashen, could appear. As I left him seated on the rustic chair, by the steps, the traces of that storm were still
discernible on his features. His gathered brows, glowing eyes, and strangely hectic face, and the grim
compression of his mouth, still showed the agitation which, somehow, in grey old age, shocks and alarms
the young.
CHAPTER XX
- 114 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The Rev. William Fairfield, Doctor Clay’s somewhat bald curate, a mild, thin man, with a high and thin
nose, who was preparing me for confirmation, came next day; and when our catechetical conference was
ended, and before lunch was announced, my father sent for him to the study, where he remained until the
bell rang out its summons.
’We have had some interesting—I may say very interesting—conversation, your papa and I, Miss Ruthyn,’
said my reverend vis-à-vis, so soon as nature was refreshed, smiling and shining, as he leaned back in his
chair, his hand upon the table, and his finger curled gently upon the stem of his wine-glass. ’It never was
your privilege, I believe, to see your uncle, Mr. Silas Ruthyn, of Bartram-Haugh?’
’Oh, no,—of course, no; but I was going to remark a likeness—I [pg 106] mean, of course, a family
likeness—only that sort of thing—you understand—between him and the profile of Lady Margaret in the
drawing-room—is not it Lady Margaret?—which you were so good as to show me on Wednesday last.
There certainly is a likeness. I think you would agree with me, if you had the pleasure of seeing your uncle.’
’Oh dear, yes—I am happy to say, I know him very well. I have that privilege. I was for three years curate
of Feltram, and I had the honour of being a pretty constant visitor at Bartram-Haugh during that, I may say,
protracted period; and I think it really never has been my privilege and happiness, I may say, to enjoy the
acquaintance and society of so very experienced a Christian, as my admirable friend, I may call him, Mr.
Ruthyn, of Bartram-Haugh. I look upon him, I do assure you, quite in the light of a saint; not, of course, in
the Popish sense, but in the very highest, you will understand me, which our Church allows,—a man built
up in faith—full of faith—faith and grace—altogether exemplary; and I often ventured to regret, Miss
Ruthyn, that Providence in its mysterious dispensations should have placed him so far apart from his
brother, your respected father. His influence and opportunities would, no doubt, we may venture to hope, at
least have been blessed; and, perhaps, we—my valued rector and I—might possibly have seen more of him
at church, than, I deeply regret, we have done.’ He shook his head a little, as he smiled with a sad
- 115 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
complacency on me through his blue steel spectacles, and then sipped a little meditative sherry.
’Well, a good deal, Miss Ruthyn—I may say a good deal—principally at his own house. His health is
wretched—miserable health—a sadly afflicted man he has been, as, no doubt, you are aware. But
afflictions, my dear Miss Ruthyn, as you remember Doctor Clay so well remarked on Sunday last, though
birds of ill omen, yet spiritually resemble the ravens who supplied the prophet; and when they visit the
faithful, come charged with nourishment for the soul.
’He is a good deal embarrassed pecuniarily, I should say,’ continued the curate, who was rather a good man
than a very well-bred one. ’He found a difficulty—in fact it was not in his power—to subscribe generally to
our little funds, and—and [pg 107] objects, and I used to say to him, and I really felt it, that it was more
gratifying, such were his feeling and his power of expression, to be refused by him than assisted by others.’
’Did papa wish you to speak to me about my uncle?’ I enquired, as a sudden thought struck me; and then I
felt half ashamed of my question.
He looked surprised.
’No, Miss Ruthyn, certainly not. Oh dear, no. It was merely a conversation between Mr. Ruthyn and me. He
never suggested my opening that, or indeed any other point in my interview with you, Miss Ruthyn—not the
least.’
He smiled tranquilly, not quite up to the ceiling, but gently upward, and shook his head in pity for my
previous ignorance, as he lowered his eyes—
’I don’t say that there may not be some little matters in a few points of doctrine which we could, perhaps,
wish otherwise. But these, you know, are speculative, and in all essentials he is Church—not in the
perverted modern sense; far from it—unexceptionably Church, strictly so. Would there were more among
us of the same mind that is in him! Ay, Miss Ruthyn, even in the highest places of the Church herself.’
The Rev. William Fairfield, while fighting against the Dissenters with his right hand, was, with his left,
hotly engaged with the Tractarians. A good man I am sure he was, and I dare say sound in doctrine, though
- 116 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
naturally, I think, not very wise. This conversation with him gave me new ideas about my uncle Silas. It
quite agreed with what my father had said. These principles and his increasing years would necessarily quiet
the turbulence of his resistance to injustice, and teach him to acquiesce in his fate.
You would have fancied that one so young as I, born to wealth so vast, and living a life of such entire
seclusion, would have been exempt from care. But you have seen how troubled my life was with fear and
anxiety during the residence of Madame de la Rougierre, and now there rested upon my mind a vague and
awful anticipation of the trial which my father had announced, without defining it.
An ’ordeal’ he called it, requiring not only zeal but nerve, which might possibly, were my courage to fail,
become frightful, [pg 108] and even intolerable. What, and of what nature, could it be? Not designed to
vindicate the fair fame of the meek and submissive old man—who, it seemed, had ceased to care for his
bygone wrongs, and was looking to futurity—but the reputation of our ancient family.
Sometimes I repented my temerity in having undertaken it. I distrusted my courage. Had I not better retreat,
while it was yet time? But there was shame and even difficulty in the thought. How should I appear before
my father? Was it not important—had I not deliberately undertaken it—and was I not bound in conscience?
Perhaps he had already taken steps in the matter which committed him. Besides, was I sure that, even were I
free again, I would not once more devote myself to the trial, be it what it might? You perceive I had more
spirit than courage. I think I had the mental attributes of courage; but then I was but a hysterical girl, and in
so far neither more nor less than a coward.
No wonder I distrusted myself; no wonder also my will stood out against my timidity. It was a struggle,
then; a proud, wild resolve against constitutional cowardice.
Those who have ever had cast upon them more than their strength seemed framed to bear—the weak, the
aspiring, the adventurous and self-sacrificing in will, and the faltering in nerve—will understand the kind of
agony which I sometimes endured.
But, again, consolation would come, and it seemed to me that I must be exaggerating my risk in the coming
crisis; and certain at least, if my father believed it attended with real peril, he would never have wished to
see me involved in it. But the silence under which I was bound was terrifying—double so when the danger
was so shapeless and undivulged.
- 117 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I was soon to understand it all—soon, too, to know all about my father’s impending journey, whither, with
what visitor, and why guarded from me with so awful a mystery.
That day there came a lively and goodnatured letter from Lady Knollys. She was to arrive at Knowl in two
or three days’ time. I thought my father would have been pleased, but he seemed apathetic and dejected.
’One does not always feel quite equal to Monica. But for you—yes, thank God. I wish she could only stay,
Maud, for a month or two; I may be going then, and would be glad—provided [pg 109] she talks about
suitable things—very glad, Maud, to leave her with you for a week or so.’
There was something, I thought, agitating my father secretly that day. He had the strange hectic flush I had
observed when he grew excited in our interview in the garden about Uncle Silas. There was something
painful, perhaps even terrible, in the circumstances of the journey he was about to make, and from my heart
I wished the suspense were over, the annoyance past, and he returned.
That night my father bid me good-night early and went up-stairs. After I had been in bed some little time, I
heard his hand-bell ring. This was not usual. Shortly after I heard his man, Ridley, talking with Mrs. Rusk in
the gallery. I could not be mistaken in their voices. I knew not why I was startled and excited, and had
raised myself to listen on my elbow. But they were talking quietly, like persons giving or taking an ordinary
direction, and not in the haste of an unusual emergency.
Then I heard the man bid Mrs. Rusk good-night and walk down the gallery to the stairs, so that I concluded
he was wanted no more, and all must therefore be well. So I laid myself down again, though with a
throbbing at my heart, and an ominous feeling of expectation, listening and fancying footsteps.
I was going to sleep when I heard the bell ring again; and, in a few minutes, Mrs. Rusk’s energetic step
passed along the gallery; and, listening intently, I heard, or fancied, my father’s voice and hers in dialogue.
All this was very unusual, and again I was, with a beating heart, leaning with my elbow on my pillow.
Mrs. Rusk came along the gallery in a minute or so after, and stopping at my door, began to open it gently. I
was startled, and challenged my visitor with—
’Who’s there?’
- 118 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’It’s only Rusk, Miss. Dearie me! and are you awake still?’
’Ill! not a bit ill, thank God. Only there’s a little black book as I took for your prayer-book, and brought in
here; ay, here it is, sure enough, and he wants it. And then I must go down to the study, and look out this
one, "C, 15;" but I can’t read the name, noways; and I was afraid to ask him again; if you be so kind to read
it, Miss—I suspeck my eyes is a-going.’
[pg 110]
I read the name; and Mrs. Rusk was tolerably expert at finding out books, as she had often been employed
in that way before. So she departed.
I suppose that this particular volume was hard to find, for she must have been a long time away, and I had
actually fallen into a doze when I was roused in an instant by a dreadful crash and a piercing scream from
Mrs. Rusk. Scream followed scream, wilder and more terror-stricken. I shrieked to Mary Quince, who was
sleeping in the room with me:—’Mary, do you hear? what is it? It is something dreadful.’
The crash was so tremendous that the solid flooring even of my room trembled under it, and to me it seemed
as if some heavy man had burst through the top of the window, and shook the whole house with his descent.
I found myself standing at my own door, crying, ’Help, help! murder! murder!’ and Mary Quince,
frightened half out of her wits, by my side.
I could not think what was going on. It was plainly something most horrible, for Mrs. Rusk’s screams
pealed one after the other unabated, though with a muffled sound, as if the door was shut upon her; and by
this time the bells of my father’s room were ringing madly.
’They are trying to murder him!’ I cried, and I ran along the gallery to his door, followed by Mary Quince,
whose white face I shall never forget, though her entreaties only sounded like unmeaning noises in my ears.
’Here! help, help, help!’ I cried, trying to force open the door.
’Shove it, shove it, for God’s sake! he’s across it,’ cried Mrs. Rusk’s voice from within; ’drive it in. I can’t
move him.’
- 119 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I strained all I could at the door, but ineffectually. We heard steps approaching. The men were running to
the spot, and shouting as they did so—
’Never mind; hold on a bit; here we are; all right;’ and the like.
We drew back, as they came up. We were in no condition to be seen. We listened, however, at my open
door.
Then came the straining and bumping at the door. Mrs. Rusk’s voice subsided to a sort of wailing; the men
were talking all together, and I suppose the door opened, for I heard some of the voices, on a sudden, as if in
the room; and then came a [pg 111] strange lull, and talking in very low tones, and not much even of that.
’What is it, Mary? what can it be?’ I ejaculated, not knowing what horror to suppose. And now, with a
counterpane about my shoulders, I called loudly and imploringly, in my horror, to know what had happened.
But I heard only the subdued and eager talk of men engaged in some absorbing task, and the dull sounds of
some heavy body being moved.
Mrs. Rusk came towards us looking half wild, and pale as a spectre, and putting her thin hands to my
shoulders, she said—’Now, Miss Maud, darling, you must go back again; ’tisn’t no place for you; you’ll see
all, my darling, time enough—you will. There now, there, like a dear, do get into your room.’
What was that dreadful sound? Who had entered my father’s chamber? It was the visitor whom we had so
long expected, with whom he was to make the unknown journey, leaving me alone. The intruder was Death!
CHAPTER XXI
ARRIVALS
- 120 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My father was dead—as suddenly as if he had been murdered. One of those fearful aneurisms that lie close
to the heart, showing no outward sign of giving way in a moment, had been detected a good time since by
Dr. Bryerly. My father knew what must happen, and that it could not be long deferred. He feared to tell me
that he was soon to die. He hinted it only in the allegory of his journey, and left in that sad enigma some
words of true consolation that remained with me ever after. Under his rugged ways was hidden a wonderful
tenderness. I could not believe that he was actually dead. Most people for a minute or two, in the wild
tumult of such a shock, have experienced the [pg 112] same skepticism. I insisted that the doctor should be
instantly sent for from the village.
’Well, Miss Maud, dear, I will send to please you, but it is all to no use. If only you saw him yourself you’d
know that. Mary Quince, run you down and tell Thomas, Miss Maud desires he’ll go down this minute to
the village for Dr. Elweys.’
Every minute of the interval seemed to me like an hour. I don’t know what I said, but I fancied that if he
were not already dead, he would lose his life by the delay. I suppose I was speaking very wildly, for Mrs.
Rusk said—
’My dear child, you ought to come in and see him; indeed but you should, Miss Maud. He’s quite dead an
hour ago. You’d wonder all the blood that’s come from him—you would indeed; it’s soaked through the
bed already.’
’Well, then, my dear, don’t of course, if you don’t like; there’s no need. Would not you like to lie down,
Miss Maud? Mary Quince, attend to her. I must go into the room for a minute or two.’
I was walking up and down the room in distraction. It was a cool night; but I did not feel it. I could only
cry:—’Oh, Mary, Mary! what shall I do? Oh, Mary Quince! what shall I do?’
It seemed to me it must be near daylight by the time the Doctor arrived. I had dressed myself. I dared not go
into the room where my beloved father lay.
- 121 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I had gone out of my room to the gallery, where I awaited Dr. Elweys, when I saw him walking briskly after
the servant, his coat buttoned up to his chin, his hat in his hand, and his bald head shining. I felt myself grow
cold as ice, and colder and colder, and with a sudden sten my heart seemed to stand still.
I heard him ask the maid who stood at the door, in that low, decisive, mysterious tone which doctors
cultivate—
’In here?’
’Would not you like to see the Doctor, Miss Maud?’ asked Mary Quince.
[pg 113]
And so, in a few minutes, I did. He was very respectful, very sad, semi-undertakerlike, in air and
countenance, but quite explicit. I heard that my dear father ’had died palpably from the rupture of some
great vessel near the heart.’ The disease had, no doubt, been ’long established, and is in its nature incurable.’
It is ’consolatory in these cases that in the act of dissolution, which is instantaneous, there can be no
suffering.’ These, and a few more remarks, were all he had to offer; and having had his fee from Mrs. Rusk,
he, with a respectful melancholy, vanished.
I returned to my room, and broke into paroxysms of grief, and after an hour or more grew more tranquil.
From Mrs. Rusk I learned that he had seemed very well—better than usual, indeed—that night, and that on
her return from the study with the book he required, he was noting down, after his wont, some passages
which illustrated the text on which he was employing himself. He took the book, detaining her in the room,
and then mounting on a chair to take down another book from a shelf, he had fallen, with the dreadful crash
I had heard, dead upon the floor. He fell across the door, which caused the difficulty in opening it. Mrs.
Rusk found she had not strength to force it open. No wonder she had given way to terror. I think I should
have almost lost my reason.
- 122 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Everyone knows the reserved aspect and the taciturn mood of the house, one of whose rooms is tenanted by
that mysterious guest.
I do not know how those awful days, and more awful nights, passed over. The remembrance is repulsive. I
hate to think of them. I was soon draped in the conventional black, with its heavy folds of crape. Lady
Knollys came, and was very kind. She undertook the direction of all those details which were to me so
inexpressibly dreadful. She wrote letters for me beside, and was really most kind and useful, and her society
supported me indescribably. She was odd, but her eccentricity was leavened with strong common sense; and
I have often thought since with admiration and gratitude of the tact with which she managed my grief.
There is no dealing with great sorrow as if it were under the control of our wills. It is a terrible phenomenon,
whose laws we must study, and to whose conditions we must submit, if we [pg 114] would mitigate it.
Cousin Monica talked a great deal of my father. This was easy to her, for her early recollections were full of
him.
One of the terrible dislocations of our habits of mind respecting the dead is that our earthly future is robbed
of them, and we thrown exclusively upon retrospect. From the long look forward they are removed, and
every plan, imagination, and hope henceforth a silent and empty perspective. But in the past they are all they
ever were. Now let me advise all who would comfort people in a new bereavement to talk to them, very
freely, all they can, in this way of the dead. They will engage in it with interest, they will talk of their own
recollections of the dead, and listen to yours, though they become sometimes pleasant, sometimes even
laughable. I found it so. It robbed the calamity of something of its supernatural and horrible abruptness; it
prevented that monotony of object which is to the mind what it is to the eye, and prepared the faculty for
those mesmeric illusions that derange its sense.
Cousin Monica, I am sure, cheered me wonderfully. I grow to love her more and more, as I think of all her
trouble, care, and kindness.
I had not forgotten my promise to dear papa about the key, concerning which he had evinced so great an
anxiety. It was found in the pocket where he had desired me to remember he always kept it, except when it
was placed, while he slept, under his pillow.
’And so, my dear, that wicked woman was actually found picking the lock of your poor papa’s desk. I
wonder he did not punish her—you know that is burglary.’
- 123 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, Lady Knollys, you know she is gone, and so I care no more about her—that is, I mean, I need not
fear her.’
’No, my dear, but you must call me Monica—do you mind—I’m your cousin, and you call me Monica,
unless you wish to vex me. No, of course, you need not be afraid of her. And she’s gone. But I’m an old
thing, you know, and not so tender-hearted as you; and I confess I should have been very glad to hear that
the wicked old witch had been sent to prison and hard labour—I should. And what do you suppose she was
looking for—what did she want to steal? I think I can guess—what do you think?’
[pg 115]
’To read the papers; maybe to take bank-notes—I’m not sure,’ I answered.
’Well, I think most likely she wanted to get at your poor papa’s will—that’s my idea.
’There is nothing surprising in the supposition, dear,’ she resumed. ’Did not you read the curious trial at
York, the other day? There is nothing so valuable to steal as a will, when a great deal of property is to be
disposed of by it. Why, you would have given her ever so much money to get it back again. Suppose you go
down, dear—I’ll go with you, and open the cabinet in the study.’
’I don’t think I can, for I promised to give the key to Dr. Bryerly, and the meaning was that he only should
open it.’
’Not know his address! come, that is curious,’ said Knollys, a little testily.
I could not—no one now living in the house could furnish even a conjecture. There was even a dispute as to
which train he had gone by—north or south—they crossed the station at an interval of five minutes. If Dr.
Bryerly had been an evil spirit, evoked by a secret incantation, there could not have been more complete
darkness as to the immediate process of his approach.
- 124 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And how long do you mean to wait, my dear? No matter; at all events you may open the desk; you may
find papers to direct you—you may find Dr. Bryerly’s address—you may find, heaven knows what.’
So down we went—I assenting—and we opened the desk. How dreadful the desecration seems—all privacy
abrogated—the shocking compensation for the silence of death!
Henceforward all is circumstantial evidence—all conjectural—except the litera scripta, and to this evidence
every note-book, and every scrap of paper and private letter, must contribute—ransacked, bare in the light
of day—what it can.
At the top of the desk lay two notes sealed, one to Cousin Monica, the other to me. Mine was a gentle and
loving little farewell—nothing more—which opened afresh the fountains of my sorrow, and I cried and
sobbed over it bitterly and long.
[pg 116]
The other was for ’Lady Knollys.’ I did not see how she received it, for I was already absorbed in mine. But
in awhile she came and kissed me in her girlish, goodnatured way. Her eyes used to fill with tears at sight of
my paroxysms of grief. Then she would begin, ’I remember it was a saying of his,’ and so she would repeat
it—something maybe wise, maybe playful, at all events consolatory—and the circumstances in which she
had heard him say it, and then would follow the recollections suggested by these; and so I was stolen away
half by him, and half by Cousin Monica, from my despair and lamentation.
Along with these lay a large envelope, inscribed with the words ’Directions to be complied with
immediately on my death.’ One of which was, ’Let the event be forthwith published in the county and
principal London papers.’ This step had been already taken. We found no record of Dr. Bryerly’s address.
We made search everywhere, except in the cabinet, which I would on no account permit to be opened
except, according to his direction, by Dr. Bryerly’s hand. But nowhere was a will, or any document
resembling one, to be found. I had now, therefore, no doubt that his will was placed in the cabinet.
In the search among my dear father’s papers we found two sheafs of letters, neatly tied up and
labelled—these were from my uncle Silas.
- 125 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My cousin Monica looked down upon these papers with a strange smile; was it satire—was it that
indescribable smile with which a mystery which covers a long reach of years is sometimes approached?
These were odd letters. If here and there occurred passages that were querulous and even abject, there were
also long passages of manly and altogether noble sentiment, and the strangest rodomontade and
maunderings about religion. Here and there a letter would gradually transform itself into a prayer, and end
with a doxology and no signature; and some of them expressed such wild and disordered views respecting
religion, as I imagine he can never have disclosed to good Mr. Fairfield, and which approached more nearly
to the Swedenborg visions than to anything in the Church of England.
I read these with a solemn interest, but my cousin Monica was not similarly moved. She read them with the
same smile—faint, [pg 117] serenely contemptuous, I thought—with which she had first looked down upon
them. It was the countenance of a person who amusedly traces the working of a character that is well
understood.
’Uncle Silas is very religious?’ I said, not quite liking Lady Knollys’ looks.
’Very,’ she said, without raising her eyes or abating her old bitter smile, as she glanced over a passage in
one of his letters.
’You don’t think he is, Cousin Monica?’ said I. She raised her head and looked straight at me.
’Do I?’ said she; ’I was not thinking—it was quite an accident. The fact is, Maud, your poor papa quite
mistook me. I had no prejudice respecting him—no theory. I never knew what to think about him. I do not
think Silas a product of nature, but a child of the Sphinx, and I never could understand him—that’s all.’
’I always felt so too; but that was because I was left to speculation, and to glean conjectures as I might from
his portrait, or anywhere. Except what you told me, I never heard more than a few sentences; poor papa did
not like me to ask questions about him, and I think he ordered the servants to be silent.’
’And much the same injunction this little note lays upon me—not quite, but something like it; and I don’t
know the meaning of it.’
- 126 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You are not to be alarmed about your uncle Silas, because your being afraid would unfit you for an
important service which you have undertaken for your family, the nature of which I shall soon understand,
and which, although it is quite passive, would be made very sad if illusory fears were allowed to steal into
your mind.’
She was looking into the letter in poor papa’s handwriting, which she had found addressed to her in his
desk, and emphasised the words, I suppose, which she quoted from it.
’Have you any idea, Maud, darling, what this service may be?’ she enquired, with a grave and anxious
curiosity in her countenance.
’None, Cousin Monica; but I have thought long over my undertaking [pg 118] to do it, or submit to it, be it
what it may; and I will keep the promise I voluntarily made, although I know what a coward I am, and often
distrust my courage.’
’How could you? Why should I be afraid? Is there anything frightful to be disclosed? Do tell me—you must
tell me.’
’No, darling, I did not mean that—I don’t mean that;—I could, if I would; I—I don’t know exactly what I
meant. But your poor papa knew him better than I—in fact, I did not know him at all—that is, ever quite
understood him—which your poor papa, I see, had ample opportunities of doing.’ And after a little pause,
she added—’So you do not know what you are expected to do or to undergo.’
’Oh! Cousin Monica, I know you think he committed that murder,’ I cried, starting up, I don’t know why,
and I felt that I grew deadly pale.
’I don’t believe any such thing, you little fool; you must not say such horrible things, Maud,’ she said, rising
also, and looking both pale and angry. ’Shall we go out for a little walk? Come, lock up these papers, dear,
and get your things on; and if that Dr. Bryerly does not turn up to-morrow, you must send for the Rector,
good Doctor Clay, and let him make search for the will—there may be directions about many things, you
know; and, my dear Maud, you are to remember that Silas is my cousin as well as your uncle. Come, dear,
- 127 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXII
When we returned, a ’young’ gentleman had arrived. We saw him in the parlour as we passed the window.
It was simply a glance, but such a one as suffices to make a photograph, which [pg 119] we can study
afterwards, at our leisure. I remember him at this moment—a man of six-and-thirty—dressed in a grey
travelling suit, not over-well made; light-haired, fat-faced, and clumsy; and he looked both dull and
cunning, and not at all like a gentleman.
Branston met us, announced the arrival, and handed me the stranger’s credentials. My cousin and I stopped
in the passage to read them.
’That’s your uncle Silas’s,’ said Lady Knollys, touching one of the two letters with the tip of her finger.
’Read it with me, Cousin Monica,’ I said. And a very curious letter it was. It spoke as follows:—
’How can I thank my beloved niece for remembering her aged and forlorn kinsman at such a moment of
anguish?’
- 128 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I had written a note of a few, I dare say, incoherent words by the next post after my dear father’s death.
’It is, however, in the hour of bereavement that we most value the ties that are broken, and yearn for the
sympathy of kindred.’
Here came a little distich of French verse, of which I could only read ciel and l’amour.
’Our quiet household here is clouded with a new sorrow. How inscrutable are the ways of Providence!
I—though a few years younger—how much the more infirm—how shattered in energy and in mind—how
mere a burden—how entirely de trop—am spared to my sad place in a world where I can be no longer
useful, where I have but one business—prayer, but one hope—the tomb; and he—apparently so robust—the
centre of so much good—so necessary to you—so necessary, alas! to me—is taken! He is gone to his
rest—for us, what remains but to bow our heads, and murmur, "His will be done"? I trace these lines with a
trembling hand, while tears dim my old eyes. I did not think that any earthly event could have moved me so
profoundly. From the world I have long stood aloof. I once led a life of pleasure—alas! of wickedness—as I
now do one of austerity; but as I never was rich, so my worst enemy will allow I never was avaricious. My
sins, I thank my Maker, have been of [pg 120] a more reducible kind, and have succumbed to the discipline
which Heaven has provided. To earth and its interests, as well as to its pleasures, I have long been dead. For
the few remaining years of my life I ask but quiet—an exemption from the agitations and distractions of
struggle and care, and I trust to the Giver of all Good for my deliverance—well knowing, at the same time,
that whatever befalls will, under His direction, prove best. Happy shall I be, my dearest niece, if in your
most interesting and, in some respects, forlorn situation, I can be of any use to you. My present religious
adviser—of whom I ventured to ask counsel on your behalf—states that I ought to send some one to
represent me at the melancholy ceremony of reading the will which my beloved and now happy brother has,
no doubt, left behind; and the idea that the experience and professional knowledge possessed by the
gentleman whom I have selected may possibly be of use to you, my dearest niece, determines me to place
him at your disposal. He is the junior partner in the firm of Archer and Sleigh, who conduct any little
business which I may have from time to time; may I entreat your hospitality for him during a brief stay at
Knowl? I write, even for a moment, upon these small matters of business with an effort—a painful one, but
necessary. Alas! my brother! The cup of bitterness is now full. Few and evil must the remainder of my old
days be. Yet, while they last, I remain always for my beloved niece, that which all her wealth and splendour
cannot purchase—a loving and faithful kinsman and friend,
- 129 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
SILAS RUTHYN.’
’Oh! kind, very kind,’ she answered in the same tone, ’and perhaps a little cunning.’
’Cunning!—how?’
’Well, you know I’m a peevish old Tabby, and of course I scratch now and then, and see in the dark. I dare
say Silas is sorry, but I don’t think he is in sackcloth and ashes. He has reason to be sorry and anxious, and I
say I think he is both; and you know he pities you very much, and also himself a good deal; and he wants
money, and you—his beloved niece—have a [pg 121] great deal—and altogether it is an affectionate and
prudent letter: and he has sent his attorney here to make a note of the will; and you are to give the gentleman
his meals and lodging; and Silas, very thoughtfully, invites you to confide your difficulties and troubles to
his solicitor. It is very kind, but not imprudent.’
’Oh, Cousin Monica, don’t you think at such a moment it is hardly natural that he should form such petty
schemes, even were he capable at other times of practising so low? Is it not judging him hardly? and you,
you know, so little acquainted with him.’
’I told you, dear, I’m a cross old thing—and there’s an end; and I really don’t care two pence about him; and
of the two I’d much rather he were no relation of ours.’
Now, was not this prejudice? I dare say in part it was. So, too, was my vehement predisposition in his
favour. I am afraid we women are factionists; we always take a side, and nature has formed us for advocates
rather than judges; and I think the function, if less dignified, is more amiable.
I sat alone at the drawing-room window, at nightfall, awaiting my cousin Monica’s entrance.
Feverish and frightened I felt that night. It was a sympathy, I fancy, with the weather. The sun had set
stormily. Though the air was still, the sky looked wild and storm-swept. The crowding clouds, slanting in
- 130 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
the attitude of flight, reflected their own sacred aspect upon my spirits. My grief darkened with a wild
presaging of danger, and a sense of the supernatural fell upon me. It was the saddest and most awful evening
that had come since my beloved father’s death.
All kinds of shapeless fears environed me in silence. For the first time, dire misgivings about the form of
faith affrighted me. Who were these Swedenborgians who had got about him—no one could tell how—and
held him so fast to the close of his life? Who was this bilious, bewigged, black-eyed Doctor Bryerly, whom
none of us quite liked and all a little feared; who seemed to rise out of the ground, and came and went, no
one knew whence or whither, exercising, as I imagined, a mysterious authority over him? Was it all good
and true, or a heresy and a witchcraft? Oh, my beloved father! was it all well with you?
When Lady Knollys entered, she found me in floods of tears, [pg 122] walking distractedly up and down the
room. She kissed me in silence; she walked back and forward with me, and did her best to console me.
’I think, Cousin Monica, I would wish to see him once more. Shall we go up?’
’Unless you really wish it very much, I think, darling, you had better not mind it. It is happier to recollect
them as they were; there’s a change, you know, darling, and there is seldom any comfort in the sight.’
’But I do wish it very much. Oh! won’t you come with me?’
And so I persuaded her, and up we went hand in hand, in the deepening twilight; and we halted at the end of
the dark gallery, and I called Mrs. Rusk, growing frightened.
’She wishes to see him, my lady—does she?’ enquired Mrs. Rusk, in an under-tone, and with a mysterious
glance at me, as she softly fitted the key to the lock.
’Yes, yes.’
But when Mrs. Rusk entered bearing the candle, whose beam mixed dismally with the expiring twilight,
disclosing a great black coffin standing upon trestles, near the foot of which she took her stand, gazing
sternly into it, I lost heart again altogether and drew back.
- 131 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No, Mrs. Rusk, she won’t; and I am very glad, dear,’ she added to me. ’Come, Mrs. Rusk, come away. Yes,
darling,’ she continued to me, ’it is much better for you;’ and she hurried me away, and down-stairs again.
But the awful outlines of that large black coffin remained upon my imagination with a new and terrible
sense of death.
I had no more any wish to see him. I felt a horror even of the room, and for more than an hour after a kind
of despair and terror, such as I have never experienced before or since at the idea of death.
Cousin Monica had had her bed placed in my room, and Mary Quince’s moved to the dressing-room
adjoining it. For the first time the superstitious awe that follows death, but not immediately, visited me. The
idea of seeing my father enter the room, or open the door and look in, haunted me. After Lady Knollys and I
were in bed, I could not sleep. The wind sounded mournfully [pg 123] outside, and the small sounds, the
rattlings, and strainings that responded from within, constantly startled me, and simulated the sounds of
steps, of doors opening, of knockings, and so forth, rousing me with a palpitating heart as often as I fell into
a doze.
At length the wind subsided, and these ambiguous noises abated, and I, fatigued, dropped into a quiet sleep.
I was awakened by a sound in the gallery—which I could not define. A considerable time had passed, for
the wind was now quite lulled. I sat up in my bed a good deal scared, listening breathlessly for I knew not
what.
I heard a step moving stealthily along the gallery. I called my cousin Monica softly; and we both heard the
door of the room in which my father’s body lay unlocked, some one furtively enter, and the door shut.
’What can it be? Good Heavens, Cousin Monica, do you hear it?’
Everyone at Knowl was in bed at eleven. We knew very well that Mrs. Rusk was rather nervous, and would
not, for worlds, go alone, and at such an hour, to the room. We called Mary Quince. We all three listened,
but we heard no other sound. I set these things down here because they made so terrible an impression upon
me at the time.
It ended by our peeping out, all three in a body, upon the gallery. Through each window in the perspective
came its blue sheet of moonshine; but the door on which our attention was fixed was in the shade, and we
- 132 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
thought we could discern the glare of a candle through the key-hole. While in whispers we were debating
this point together, the door opened, the dusky light of a candle emerged, the shadow of a figure crossed it
within, and in another moment the mysterious Doctor Bryerly—angular, ungainly, in the black cloth coat
that fitted little better than a coffin—issued from the chamber, candle in hand; murmuring, I suppose, a
prayer—it sounded like a farewell—as much frightened as if I had just seen a sorcerer stealing stepped
cautiously upon the gallery floor, shutting and locking the door upon the dead; and then having listened for
a second, the saturnine figure, casting a gigantic and distorted shadow [pg 124] upon the ceiling and
side-wall from the lowered candle, strode lightly down the long dark passage, away from us.
I can only speak for myself, and I can honestly say that I felt as much frightened as if I had just seen a
sorcerer stealing from his unhallowed business. I think Cousin Monica was also affected in the same way,
for she turned the key on the inside of the door when we entered. I do not think one of us believed at the
moment that what we had seen was a Doctor Bryerly of flesh and blood, and yet the first thing we spoke of
in the morning was Doctor Bryerly’s arrival. The mind is a different organ by night and by day.
CHAPTER XXIII
Doctor Bryerly had, indeed, arrived at half-past twelve o’clock at night. His summons at the hall-door was
little heard at our remote side of the old house of Knowl; and when the sleepy, half-dressed servant opened
the door, the lank Doctor, in glossy black clothing, was standing alone, his portmanteau on its end upon the
steps, and his vehicle disappearing in the shadows of the old trees.
’I’ve been expected? I’m Doctor Bryerly. Haven’t I? So, let whoever is in charge of the body be called. I
must visit it forthwith.’
- 133 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So the Doctor sat in the back drawing-room, with a solitary candle; and Mrs. Rusk was called up, and,
grumbling much and very peevish, dressed and went down, her ill-temper subsiding in a sort of fear as she
approached the visitor.
’How do you do, Madam? A sad visit this. Is anyone watching in the room where the remains of your late
master are laid?’
’No.’
[pg 125]
’So much the better; it is a foolish custom. Will you please conduct me to the room? I must pray where he
lies—no longer he! And be good enough to show me my bedroom, and so no one need wait up, and I shall
find my way.’
Accompanied by the man who carried his valise, Mrs. Rusk showed him to his apartment; but he only
looked in, and then glanced rapidly about to take ’the bearings’ of the door.
’Thank you—yes. Now we’ll proceed, here, along here? Let me see. A turn to the right and another to the
left—yes. He has been dead some days. Is he yet in his coffin?’
Mrs. Rusk was growing more and more afraid of this lean figure sheathed in shining black cloth, whose
eyes glittered with a horrible sort of cunning, and whose long brown fingers groped before him, as if
indicating the way by guess.
’But, of course, the lid’s not on; you’ve not screwed him down, hey?’
’No, sir.’
’That’s well. I must look on the face as I pray. He is in his place; I here on earth. He in the spirit; I in the
flesh. The neutral ground lies there. So are carried the vibrations, and so the light of earth and heaven
reflected back and forward—apaugasma, a wonderful though helpless engine, the ladder of Jacob, and
behold the angels of God ascending and descending on it. Thanks, I’ll take the key. Mysteries to those who
will live altogether in houses of clay, no mystery to such as will use their eyes and read what is revealed.
- 134 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
This candle, it is the longer, please; no—no need of a pair, thanks; just this, to hold in my hand. And
remember, all depends upon the willing mind. Why do you look frightened? Where is your faith? Don’t you
know that spirits are about us at all times? Why should you fear to be near the body? The spirit is
everything; the flesh profiteth nothing.’
’Yes, sir,’ said Mrs. Rusk, making him a great courtesy in the threshold.
She was frightened by his eerie talk, which grew, she fancied, more voluble and energetic as they
approached the corpse.
’Remember, then, that when you fancy yourself alone and wrapt in darkness, you stand, in fact, in the centre
of a theatre, as wide as the starry floor of heaven, with an audience, whom [pg 126] no man can number,
beholding you under a flood of light. Therefore, though your body be in solitude and your mortal sense in
darkness, remember to walk as being in the light, surrounded with a cloud of witnesses. Thus walk; and
when the hour comes, and you pass forth unprisoned from the tabernacle of the flesh, although it still has its
relations and its rights’—and saying this, as he held the solitary candle aloft in the doorway, he nodded
towards the coffin, whose large black form was faintly traceable against the shadows beyond—’you will
rejoice; and being clothed upon with your house from on high, you will not be found naked. On the other
hand, he that loveth corruption shall have enough thereof. Think upon these things. Good-night.’
And the Swedenborgian Doctor stepped into the room, taking the candle with him, and closed the door upon
the shadowy still-life there, and on his own sharp and swarthy visage, leaving Mrs. Rusk in a sort of panic in
the dark alone, to find her way to her room the best way she could.
Early in the morning Mrs. Rusk came to my room to tell me that Doctor Bryerly was in the parlour, and
begged to know whether I had not a message for him. I was already dressed, so, though it was dreadful
seeing a stranger in my then mood, taking the key of the cabinet in my hand, I followed Mrs. Rusk
downstairs.
Opening the parlour door, she stepped in, and with a little courtesy said,—
Draped in black and very pale, tall and slight, ’the young mistress’ was; and as I entered I heard a
newspaper rustle, and the sound of steps approaching to meet me.
- 135 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Face to face we met, near the door; and, without speaking, I made him a deep courtesy.
He took my hand, without the least indication on my part, in his hard lean grasp, and shook it kindly, but
familiarly, peering with a stern sort of curiosity into my face as he continued to hold it. His ill-fitting, glossy
black cloth, ungainly presence, and sharp, dark, vulpine features had in them, as I said before, the vulgarity
of a Glasgow artisan in his Sabbath suit. I made an instantaneous motion to withdraw my hand, but he held
it firmly.
[pg 127]
Though there was a grim sort of familiarity, there was also decision, shrewdness, and, above all, kindness,
in his dark face—a gleam on the whole of the masterly and the honest—that along with a certain paleness,
betraying, I thought, restrained emotion, indicated sympathy and invited confidence.
’I hope, Miss, you are pretty well?’ He pronounced ’pretty’ as it is spelt. ’I have come in consequence of a
solemn promise exacted more than a year since by your deceased father, the late Mr. Austin Ruthyn of
Knowl, for whom I cherished a warm esteem, being knit besides with him in spiritual bonds. It has been a
shock to you, Miss?’
’I’ve a doctor’s degree, I have—Doctor of Medicine, Miss. Like St. Luke, preacher and doctor. I was in
business once, but this is better. As one footing fails, the Lord provides another. The stream of life is black
and angry; how so many of us get across without drowning, I often wonder. The best way is not to look too
far before—just from one stepping-stone to another; and though you may wet your feet, He won’t let you
drown—He has not allowed me.’
’You are born to this world’s wealth; in its way a great blessing, though a great trial, Miss, and a great trust;
but don’t suppose you are destined to exemption from trouble on that account, any more than poor
Emmanuel Bryerly. As the sparks fly upwards, Miss Ruthyn! Your cushioned carriage may overturn on the
highroad, as I may stumble and fall upon the footpath. There are other troubles than debt and privation.
Who can tell how long health may last, or when an accident may happen the brain; what mortifications may
await you in your own high sphere; what unknown enemies may rise up in your path; or what slanders may
- 136 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
asperse your name—ha, ha! It is a wonderful equilibrium—a marvellous dispensation—ha, ha!’ and he
laughed with a shake of his head, I thought a little sarcastically, as if he was not sorry my money could not
avail to buy immunity from the general curse.
’But what money can’t do, prayer can—bear that in mind, Miss Ruthyn. We can all pray; and though thorns
and snares, and stones of fire lie strewn in our way, we need not fear them. He [pg 128] will give His angels
charge over us, and in their hands they will bear us up, for He hears and sees everywhere, and His angels are
innumerable.’
He was now speaking gently and solemnly, and paused. But another vein of thought he had unconsciously
opened in my mind, and I said—
He looked at me sharply, and flushed a little under his dark tint. His medical skill was, perhaps, the point on
which his human vanity vaunted itself, and I dare say there was something very disparaging in my tone.
’And if he had no other, he might have done worse. I’ve had many critical cases in my hands, Miss Ruthyn.
I can’t charge myself with any miscarriage through ignorance. My diagnosis in Mr. Ruthyn’s case has been
verified by the result. But I was not alone; Sir Clayton Barrow saw him, and took my view; a note will reach
him in London. But this, excuse me, is not to the present purpose. The late Mr. Ruthyn told me I was to
receive a key from you, which would open a cabinet where he had placed his will—ha! thanks,—in his
study. And, I think, as there may be directions about the funeral, it had better be read forthwith. Is there any
gentleman—a relative or man of business—near here, whom you would wish sent for?’
I think I spoke and looked frankly, for he smiled very kindly, though with closed lips.
’And you may be sure, Miss Ruthyn, your confidence shall not be disappointed.’ Here was a long pause.
’But you are very young, and you must have some one by in your interest, who has some experience in
business. Let me see. Is not the Rector, Dr. Clay, at hand? In the town?—very good; and Mr. Danvers, who
manages the estate, he must come. And get Grimston—you see I know all the names—Grimston, the
attorney; for though he was not employed about this will, he has been Mr. Ruthyn’s solicitor a great many
years: we must have Grimston; for, as I suppose you know, though it is a short will, it is a very strange one.
- 137 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I expostulated, but you know he was very decided when he took a view. He read it to you, eh?’
’No, sir.’
[pg 129]
’Oh, but he told you so much as relates to you and your uncle, Mr. Silas Ruthyn, of Bartram-Haugh?’
’H’m? Odder and odder! But he’s a good man, isn’t he?’
Doctor Bryerly was watching my countenance as I spoke, with a sharp and anxious eye; and then he looked
down, and read the pattern of the carpet like bad news, for a while, and looking again in my face, askance,
he said—
’He was very near joining us—on the point. He got into correspondence with Henry Voerst, one of our best
men. They call us Swedenborgians, you know; but I dare say that won’t go much further, now. I suppose,
Miss Ruthyn, one o’clock would be a good hour, and I am sure, under the circumstances, the gentlemen will
make a point of attending.’
’Yes, Dr. Bryerly, the notes shall be sent, and my cousin, Lady Knollys, would I am sure attend with me
while the will is being read—there would be no objection to her presence?’
- 138 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’None in the world. I can’t be quite sure who are joined with me as executors. I’m almost sorry I did not
decline; but it is too late regretting. One thing you must believe Miss Ruthyn: in framing the provisions of
the will I was never consulted—although I expostulated against the only very unusual one it contains when I
heard it. I did so strenuously, but in vain. There was one other against which I protested—having a right to
do so—with better effect. In no other way does the will in any respect owe anything to my advice or
dissuasion. You will please believe this; also that I am your friend. Yes, indeed, it is my duty.’
The latter words he spoke looking down again, as it were in soliloquy; and thanking him, I withdrew.
When I reached the hall, I regretted that I had not asked him to state distinctly what arrangements the will
made so nearly affecting, as it seemed, my relations with my uncle Silas, and [pg 130] for a moment I
thought of returning and requesting an explanation. But then, I bethought me, it was not very long to wait
till one o’clock—so he, at least, would think. I went up-stairs, therefore, to the ’school-room,’ which we
used at present as a sitting-room, and there I found Cousin Monica awaiting me.
’Are you quite well, dear?’ asked Lady Knollys, as she came to meet and kiss me.
’No nonsense, Maud! you’re as white as that handkerchief—what’s the matter? Are you ill—are you
frightened? Yes, you’re trembling—you’re terrified, child.’
’I believe I am afraid. There is something in poor papa’s will about Uncle Silas—about me. I don’t
know—Doctor Bryerly says, and he seems so uncomfortable and frightened himself, I am sure it is
something very bad. I am very much frightened—I am—I am. Oh, Cousin Monica! you won’t leave me?’
So I threw my arms about her neck, clasping her very close, and we kissed one another, I crying like a
frightened child—and indeed in experience of the world I was no more.
- 139 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXIV
It was Doctor Bryerly’s countenance and manner in alluding to a particular provision in my father’s will
that instinctively awed me. I have seen faces in a nightmare that haunted me with an indescribable horror,
and yet I could not say wherein lay [pg 131] the fascination. And so it was with his—an omen, a menace,
lurked in its sallow and dismal glance.
’You must not be so frightened, darling,’ said Cousin Monica. ’It is foolish; it is, really; they can’t cut off
your head, you know: they can’t really harm you in any essential way. If it involved a risk of a little money,
you would not mind it; but men are such odd creatures—they measure all sacrifices by money. Doctor
Bryerly would look just as you describe, if you were doomed to lose 500l., and yet it would not kill you.’
A companion like Lady Knollys is reassuring; but I could not take her comfort altogether to heart, for I felt
that she had no great confidence in it herself.
There was a little French clock over the mantelpiece in the school-room, which I consulted nearly every
minute. It wanted now but ten minutes of one.
’Shall we go down to the drawing-room, dear?’ said Cousin Knollys, who was growing restless like me.
So down-stairs we went, pausing by mutual consent at the great window at the stair-head, which looks out
on the avenue. Mr. Danvers was riding his tall, grey horse at a walk, under the wide branches toward the
house, and we waited to see him get off at the door. In his turn he loitered there, for the good Rector’s gig,
driven by the Curate, was approaching at a smart ecclesiastical trot.
Doctor Clay got down, and shook hands with Mr. Danvers; and after a word or two, away drove the Curate
with that upward glance at the windows from which so few can refrain.
- 140 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I watched the Rector and Mr. Danvers loitering on the steps as a patient might the gathering of surgeons
who are to perform some unknown operation. They, too, glanced up at the window as they turned to enter
the house, and I drew back. Cousin Monica looked at her watch.
Waiting for a moment to let the gentlemen get by on the way to the study, we, accordingly, went down, and
I heard the Rector talk of the dangerous state of Grindleston bridge, and wondered how he could think of
such things at a time of sorrow. Everything about those few minutes of suspense remains fresh in my
recollection. I remember how they loitered and came to a halt at the corner of the oak passage leading to the
study, and [pg 132] how the Rector patted the marble head and smoothed the inflexible tresses of William
Pitt, as he listened to Mr. Danvers’ details about the presentment; and then, as they went on, I recollect the
boisterous nose-blowing that suddenly resounded from the passage, and which I then referred, and still
refer, intuitively to the Rector.
We had not been five minutes in the drawing-room when Branston entered, to say that the gentlemen I had
mentioned were all assembled in the study.
’Come, dear,’ said Cousin Monica; and leaning on her arm I reached the study door. I entered, followed by
her. The gentlemen arrested their talk and stood up, those who were sitting, and the Rector came forward
very gravely, and in low tones, and very kindly, greeted me. There was nothing emotional in this salutation,
for though my father never quarrelled, yet an immense distance separated him from all his neighbours, and I
do not think there lived a human being who knew him at more than perhaps a point or two of his character.
Considering how entirely he secluded himself, my father was, as many people living remember,
wonderfully popular in his county. He was neighbourly in everything except in seeing company and mixing
in society. He had magnificent shooting, of which he was extremely liberal. He kept a pack of hounds at
Dollerton, with which all his side of the county hunted through the season. He never refused any claim upon
his purse which had the slightest show of reason. He subscribed to every fund, social, charitable, sporting,
agricultural, no matter what, provided the honest people of his county took an interest in it, and always with
a princely hand; and although he shut himself up, no one could say that he was inaccessible, for he devoted
hours daily to answering letters, and his checque-book contributed largely in those replies. He had taken his
turn long ago as High Sheriff; so there was an end of that claim before his oddity and shyness had quite
secluded him. He refused the Lord-Lieutenancy of his county; he declined every post of personal distinction
- 141 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
connected with it. He could write an able as well as a genial letter when he pleased; and his appearances at
public meetings, dinners, and so forth were made in this epistolary fashion, and, when occasion presented,
by magnificent contributions from his purse.
[pg 133]
If my father had been less goodnatured in the sporting relations of his vast estates, or less magnificent in
dealing with his fortune, or even if he had failed to exhibit the intellectual force which always characterised
his letters on public matters, I dare say that his oddities would have condemned him to ridicule, and possibly
to dislike. But every one of the principal gentlemen of his county, whose judgment was valuable, has told
me that he was a remarkably able man, and that his failure in public life was due to his eccentricities, and in
no respect to deficiency in those peculiar mental qualities which make men feared and useful in Parliament.
I could not forbear placing on record this testimony to the high mental and the kindly qualities of my
beloved father, who might have passed for a misanthrope or a fool. He was a man of generous nature and
powerful intellect, but given up to the oddities of a shyness which grew with years and indulgence, and
became inflexible with his disappointments and affliction.
There was something even in the Rector’s kind and ceremonious greeting which oddly enough reflected the
mixed feelings in which awe was not without a place, with which his neighbours had regarded my dear
father.
Having done the honours—I am sure looking woefully pale—I had time to glance quietly at the only figure
there with which I was not tolerably familiar. This was the junior partner in the firm of Archer and Sleigh
who represented my uncle Silas—a fat and pallid man of six-and-thirty, with a sly and evil countenance, and
it has always seemed to me, that ill dispositions show more repulsively in a pale fat face than in any other.
Doctor Bryerly, standing near the window, was talking in a low tone to Mr. Grimston, our attorney.
’Is not that Doctor Bryerly—the person with the black—the black—it’s a wig, I think—in the window,
talking to Abel Grimston?’
- 142 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Odd-looking person—one of the Swedenborg people, is not he?’ continued the Rector.
’So I am told.’
’Yes,’ said the Rector, quietly; and he crossed one gaitered leg over the other, and, with fingers interlaced,
twiddled his [pg 134] thumbs, as he eyed the monstrous sectary under his orthodox old brows with a stern
inquisitiveness. I thought he was meditating theologic battle.
But Dr. Bryerly and Mr. Grimston, still talking together, began to walk slowly from the window, and the
former said in his peculiar grim tones—
’I beg pardon, Miss Ruthyn; perhaps you would be so good as to show us which of the cabinets in this room
your late lamented father pointed out as that to which this key belongs.’
’Very good, ma’am—very good,’ said Doctor Bryerly, as he fumbled the key into the lock.
The junior partner, with his dumpy hands in his pocket, poked his fat face over Mr. Grimston’s shoulder,
and peered into the cabinet as the door opened.
The search was not long. A handsome white paper enclosure, neatly tied up in pink tape, and sealed with
large red seals, was inscribed in my dear father’s hand:—’Will of Austin R. Ruthyn, of Knowl.’ Then, in
smaller characters, the date, and in the corner a note—’This will was drawn from my instructions by Gaunt,
Hogg, and Hatchett, Solicitors, Great Woburn Street, London, A.R.R.’
’Let me have a squint at that indorsement, please, gentlemen,’ half whispered the unpleasant person who
represented my uncle Silas.
’’Tisn’t an indorsement. There, look—a memorandum on an envelope,’ said Abel Grimston, gruffly.
- 143 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Thanks—all right—that will do,’ he responded, himself making a pencil-note of it, in a long clasp-book
which he drew from his coat-pocket.
The tape was carefully cut, and the envelope removed without tearing the writing, and forth came the will,
at sight of which my heart swelled and fluttered up to my lips, and then dropped down dead as it seemed
into its place.
’Mr. Grimston, you will please to read it,’ said Doctor Bryerly, who took the direction of the process. ’I will
sit beside you, and as we go along you will be good enough to help us to understand technicalities, and give
us a lift where we want it.’
[pg 135]
’It’s a short will,’ said Mr. Grimston, turning over the sheets ’very—considering. Here’s a codicil.’
’Oh!’ said Doctor Bryerly, putting on his spectacles. Uncle Silas’s ambassador, sitting close behind, had
insinuated his face between Doctor Bryerly’s and the reader’s of the will.
’On behalf of the surviving brother of the testator,’ interposed the delegate, just as Abel Grimston had
cleared his voice to begin, ’I take leave to apply for a copy of this instrument. It will save a deal of trouble,
if the young lady as represents the testator here has no objection.’
’You can have as many copies as you like when the will is proved,’ said Mr. Grimston.
’Just the objection there always is to acting irregular,’ replied Mr. Grimston.
- 144 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And the reading of the will proceeded, while he made elaborate notes of its contents in his capacious
pocket-book.
’I, Austin Alymer Ruthyn Ruthyn, being, I thank God, of sound mind and perfect recollection,’ &c, &c.; and
then came a bequest of all his estates real, chattels real, copyrights, leases, chattels, money, rights, interests,
reversions, powers, plate, pictures, and estates and possessions whatsoever, to four persons—Lord Ilbury,
Mr. Penrose Creswell of Creswell, Sir William Aylmer, Bart., and Hans Emmanuel Bryerly, Doctor of
Medicine, ’to have and to hold,’ &c. &c. Whereupon my Cousin Monica ejaculated ’Eh?’ and Doctor
Bryerly interposed—
Then it came out that all this multifarious splendour was bequeathed in trust for me, subject to a bequest of
15,000l. to his only brother, Silas Aylmer Ruthyn, and 3,500l. each to the two children of his said brother;
and lest any doubt should arise by reason of his, the testator’s decease as to the continuance of the
arrangement by way of lease under which he enjoyed his [pg 136] present habitation and farm, he left him
the use of the mansion-house and lands of Bartram-Haugh, in the county of Derbyshire, and of the lands of
so-and-so and so-and-so, adjoining thereto, in the said county, for the term of his natural life, on payment of
a rent of 5s. per annum, and subject to the like conditions as to waste, &c., as are expressed in the said lease.
’By your leave, may I ask is them dispositions all the devises to my client, which is his only brother, as it
seems to me you’ve seen the will before?’ enquired Mr. Sleigh.
’Nothing more, unless there is something in the codicil,’ answered Dr. Bryerly.
Mr. Sleigh threw himself back in his chair, and sneered, with the end of his pencil between his teeth. I hope
his disappointment was altogether for his client. Mr. Danvers fancied, he afterwards said, that he had
probably expected legacies which might have involved litigation, or, at all events, law costs, and perhaps a
stewardship; but this was very barren; and Mr. Danvers also remarked, that the man was a very low
practitioner, and wondered how my uncle Silas could have commissioned such a person to represent him.
- 145 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So far the will contained nothing of which my most partial friend could have complained. The codicil, too,
devised only legacies to servants, and a sum of 1,000l., with a few kind words, to Monica, Lady Knollys,
and a further sum of 3,000l. to Dr. Bryerly, stating that the legatee had prevailed upon him to erase from the
draft of his will a bequest to him to that amount, but that, in consideration of all the trouble devolving upon
him as trustee, he made that bequest by his codicil; and with these arrangements the permanent disposition
of his property was completed.
But that direction to which he and Doctor Bryerly had darkly alluded, was now to come, and certainly it was
a strange one. It appointed my uncle Silas my sole guardian, with full parental authority over me until I
should have reached the age of twenty-one, up to which time I was to reside under his care at
Bartram-Haugh, and it directed the trustees to pay over to him yearly a sum of 2,000l. during the
continuance of the guardianship for my suitable maintenance, education, and expenses.
You have now a sufficient outline of my father’s will. The only [pg 137] thing I painfully felt in this
arrangement was, the break-up—the dismay that accompanies the disappearance of home. Otherwise, there
was something rather pleasurable in the idea. As long as I could remember, I had always cherished the same
mysterious curiosity about my uncle, and the same longing to behold him. This was about to be gratified.
Then there was my cousin Milicent, about my own age. My life had been so lonely, that I had acquired none
of those artificial habits that induce the fine-lady nature—a second, and not always a very amiable one. She
had lived a solitary life, like me. What rambles and readings we should have together! what confidences and
castle-buildings! and then there was a new country and a fine old place, and the sense of interest and
adventure that always accompanies change in our early youth.
There were four letters all alike with large, red seals, addressed respectively to each of the trustees named in
the will. There was also one addressed to Silas Alymer Ruthyn, Esq., Bartram-Haugh Manor, &c. &c.,
which Mr. Sleigh offered to deliver. But Doctor Bryerly thought the post-office was the more regular
channel. Uncle Silas’s representative was questioning Doctor Bryerly in an under-tone.
- 146 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
generous, and frank. It was the unexpected character of her countenance that scared me, and for a moment
the shock called up corresponding moral images.
Lady Knollys, starting up, raised her head, so as to see over Mr. Sleigh’s shoulder, and biting her pale lip,
she cleared her voice and demanded—
’Concluded? Quite. Yes, nothing more,’ he answered with a nod, and continued his talk with Mr. Danvers
and Abel Grimston.
’And to whom,’ said Lady Knollys, with an effort, ’will the [pg 138] property belong, in case—in case my
little cousin here should die before she comes of age?’
’Eh? Well—wouldn’t it go to the heir-at-law and next of kin?’ said Doctor Bryerly, turning to Abel
Grimston.
’Well, her uncle, Mr. Silas Ruthyn. He’s both heir-at-law and next of kin,’ pursued Abel Grimston.
Doctor Clay came forward, bowing very low, in his standing collar and single-breasted coat, and graciously
folded my hand in his soft wrinkled grasp—
’Allow me, my dear Miss Ruthyn, while expressing my regret that we are to lose you from among our little
flock—though I trust but for a short, a very short time—to say how I rejoice at the particular arrangement
indicated by the will we have just heard read. My curate, William Fairfield, resided for some years in the
same spiritual capacity in the neighbourhood of your, I will say, admirable uncle, with occasional
intercourse with whom he was favoured—may I not say blessed?—a true Christian Churchman—a
Christian gentleman. Can I say more? A most happy, happy choice.’ A very low bow here, with eyes nearly
closed, and a shake of the head. ’Mrs. Clay will do herself the honour of waiting upon you, to pay her
respects, before you leave Knowl for your temporary sojourn in another sphere.’
- 147 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So, with another deep bow—for I had become a great personage all at once—he let go my hand cautiously
and delicately, as if he were setting down a curious china tea-cup. And I courtesied low to him, not knowing
what to say, and then to the assembly generally, who all bowed. And Cousin Monica whispered, briskly,
’Come away,’ and took my hand with a very cold and rather damp one, and led me from the room.
[pg 139]
CHAPTER XXV
Without saying a word, Cousin Monica accompanied me to the school-room, and on entering she shut the
door, not with a spirited clang, but quietly and determinedly.
’Well, dear,’ she said, with the same pale, excited countenance, ’that certainly is a sensible and charitable
arrangement. I could not have believed it possible, had I not heard it with my ears.’
’Yes, exactly so, under Silas Ruthyn’s guardianship, to spend two—three—of the most important years of
your education and your life under that roof. Is that, my dear, what was in your mind when you were so
alarmed about what you were to be called upon to do, or undergo?’
’No, no, indeed. I had no notion what it might be. I was afraid of something serious,’ I answered.
’And, my dear Maud, did not your poor father speak to you as if it was something serious?’ said she. ’And
so it is, I can tell you, something serious, and very serious; and I think it ought to be prevented, and I
certainly will prevent it if I possibly can.’
- 148 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I was puzzled utterly by the intensity of Lady Knollys’ protest. I looked at her, expecting an explanation of
her meaning; but she was silent, looking steadfastly on the jewels on her right-hand fingers, with which she
was drumming a staccato march on the table, very pale, with gleaming eyes, evidently thinking deeply. I
began to think she had a prejudice against my uncle Silas.
[pg 140]
’But then, how very highly Doctor Clay spoke of him!’ I pursued.
’Don’t talk of Doctor Clay. I do think that man is the greatest goose I ever heard talk. I have no patience
with such men,’ she replied.
I tried to remember what particular nonsense Doctor Clay had uttered, and I could recollect nothing, unless
his eulogy upon my uncle were to be classed with that sort of declamation.
’Danvers is a very proper man and a good accountant, I dare say; but he is either a very deep person, or a
fool—I believe a fool. As for your attorney, I suppose he knows his business, and also his interest, and I
have no doubt he will consult it. I begin to think he best man among them, the shrewdest and the most
reliable, is that vulgar visionary in the black wig. I saw him look at you, Maud, and I liked his face, though
it is abominably ugly and vulgar, and cunning, too; but I think he’s a just man, and I dare say with right
feelings—I’m sure he has.’
’I’ll have some talk with Dr. Bryerly; I feel convinced he takes my view, and we must really think what had
best be done.’
’Is there anything in the will, Cousin Monica, that does not appear?’ I asked, for I was growing very uneasy.
’I wish you would tell me. What view do you mean?’
- 149 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No view in particular; the view that a desolate old park, and the house of a neglected old man, who is very
poor, and has been desperately foolish, is not the right place for you, particularly at your years. It is quite
shocking, and I will speak to Doctor Bryerly. May I ring the bell, dear?’
I could not tell. Mrs. Rusk, however, was sent for, and she could tell us that he had announced his intention
of taking the night train from Drackleton, and was to leave Knowl for that station at half-past six o’clock.
’May Rusk give or send him a message from me, dear?’ asked Lady Knollys.
’Then please let him know that I request he will be so good [pg 141] as to allow me a very few minutes, just
to say a word before he goes.’
’You kind cousin!’ I said, placing my two hands on her shoulders, and looking earnestly in her face; ’you
are anxious about me, more than you say. Won’t you tell me why? I am much more unhappy, really, in
ignorance, than if I understood the cause.’
’Well, dear, haven’t I told you? The two or three years of your life which are to form you are destined to be
passed in utter loneliness, and, I am sure, neglect. You can’t estimate the disadvantage of such an
arrangement. It is full of disadvantages. How it could have entered the head of poor Austin—although I
should not say that, for I am sure I do understand it,—but how he could for any purpose have directed such
a measure is quite inconceivable. I never heard of anything so foolish and abominable, and I will prevent it
if I can.’
At that moment Mrs. Rusk announced that Doctor Bryerly would see Lady Knollys at any time she pleased
before his departure.
’It shall be this moment, then,’ said the energetic lady, and up she stood, and made that hasty general
adjustment before the glass, which, no matter under what circumstances, and before what sort of creature
one’s appearance is to be made, is a duty that every woman owes to herself. And I heard her a moment after,
at the stair-head, directing Branston to let Dr. Bryerly know that she awaited him in the drawing-room.
- 150 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And now she was gone, and I began to wonder and speculate. Why should my cousin Monica make all this
fuss about, after all, a very natural arrangement? My uncle, whatever he might have been, was now a good
man—a religious man—perhaps a little severe; and with this thought a dark streak fell across my sky.
A cruel disciplinarian! had I not read of such characters?—lock and key, bread and water, and solitude! To
sit locked up all night in a dark out-of-the-way room, in a great, ghosty, old-fashioned house, with no one
nearer than the other wing. What years of horror in one such night! Would not this explain my poor father’s
hesitation, and my cousin Monica’s apparently disproportioned opposition? When an idea of terror presents
[pg 142] itself to a young person’s mind, it transfixes and fills the vision, without respect of probabilities or
reason.
My uncle was now a terrible old martinet, with long Bible lessons, lectures, pages of catechism, sermons to
be conned by rote, and an awful catalogue of punishments for idleness, and what would seem to him
impiety. I was going, then, to a frightful isolated reformatory, where for the first time in my life I should be
subjected to a rigorous and perhaps barbarous discipline.
All this was an exhalation of fancy, but it quite overcame me. I threw myself, in my solitude, on the floor,
upon my knees, and prayed for deliverance—prayed that Cousin Monica might prevail with Doctor Bryerly,
and both on my behalf with the Lord Chancellor, or the High Sheriff, or whoever else my proper deliverer
might be; and when my cousin returned, she found me quite in an agony.
’Why, you little fool! what fancy has taken possession of you now?’ she cried.
And when my new terror came to light, she actually laughed a little to reassure me, and she said—
’My dear child, your uncle Silas will never put you through your duty to your neighbour; all the time you
are under his roof you’ll have idleness and liberty enough, and too much, I fear. It is neglect, my dear, not
discipline, that I’m afraid of.’
’I think, dear Cousin Monica, you are afraid of something more than neglect,’ I said, relieved, however.
’I am afraid of more than neglect,’ she replied promptly; ’but I hope my fears may turn out illusory, and that
possibly they may be avoided. And now, for a few hours at least, let us think of something else. I rather like
that Doctor Bryerly. I could not get him to say what I wanted. I don’t think he’s Scotch, but he is very
cautious, and I am sure, though he would not say so, that he thinks of the matter exactly as I do. He says that
- 151 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
those fine people, who are named as his co-trustees, won’t take any trouble, and will leave everything to
him, and I am sure he is right. So we must not quarrel with him, Maud, nor call him hard names, although
he certainly is intolerably vulgar and ugly, and at times very nearly impertinent—I suppose without
knowing, or indeed very much caring.’
We had a good deal to think of, and talked incessantly. There [pg 143] were bursts and interruptions of
grief, and my kind cousin’s consolations. I have often since been so lectured for giving way to grief, that I
wonder at the patience exercised by her during this irksome visit. Then there was some reading of that book
whose claims are always felt in the terrible days of affliction. After that we had a walk in the yew garden,
that quaint little cloistered quadrangle—the most solemn, sad, and antiquated of gardens.
’And now, my dear, I must really leave you for two or three hours. I have ever so many letters to write, and
my people must think I’m dead by this time.’
So till tea-time I had poor Mary Quince, with her gushes of simple prattle and her long fits of vacant silence,
for my companion. And such a one, who can con over by rote the old friendly gossip about the dead, talk
about their ways, and looks, and likings, without much psychologic refinement, but with a simple
admiration and liking that never measured them critically, but always with faith and love, is in general about
as comfortable a companion as one can find for the common moods of grief.
It is not easy to recall in calm and happy hours the sensations of an acute sorrow that is past. Nothing, by the
merciful ordinance of God, is more difficult to remember than pain. One or two great agonies of that time I
do remember, and they remain to testify of the rest, and convince me, though I can see it no more, how
terrible all that period was.
Next day was the funeral, that appalling necessity; smuggled away in whispers, by black familiars,
unresisting, the beloved one leaves home, without a farewell, to darken those doors no more; henceforward
to lie outside, far away, and forsaken, through the drowsy heats of summer, through days of snow and nights
of tempest, without light or warmth, without a voice near. Oh, Death, king of terrors! The body quakes and
the spirit faints before thee. It is vain, with hands clasped over our eyes, to scream our reclamation; the
horrible image will not be excluded. We have just the word spoken eighteen hundred years ago, and our
trembling faith. And through the broken vault the gleam of the Star of Bethlehem.
- 152 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I was glad in a sort of agony when it was over. So long as it [pg 144] remained to be done, something of the
catastrophe was still suspended. Now it was all over.
The house so strangely empty. No owner—no master! I with my strange momentary liberty, bereft of that
irreplaceable love, never quite prized until it is lost. Most people have experienced the dismay that underlies
sorrow under such circumstances.
The apartment of the poor outcast from life is now dismantled. Beds and curtains taken down, and furniture
displaced; carpets removed, windows open and doors locked; the bedroom and anteroom were
henceforward, for many a day, uninhabited. Every shocking change smote my heart like a reproach.
I saw that day that Cousin Monica had been crying for the first time, I think, since her arrival at Knowl; and
I loved her more for it, and felt consoled. My tears have often been arrested by the sight of another person
weeping, and I never could explain why. But I believe that many persons experience the same odd reaction.
The funeral was conducted, in obedience to his brief but peremptory direction, very privately and with little
expense. But of course there was an attendance, and the tenants of the Knowl estate also followed the hearse
to the mausoleum, as it is called, in the park, where he was laid beside my dear mother. And so the repulsive
ceremonial of that dreadful day was over. The grief remained, but there was rest from the fatigue of
agitation, and a comparative calm supervened.
It was now the stormy equinoctial weather that sounds the wild dirge of autumn, and marches the winter in.
I love, and always did, that grand undefinable music, threatening and bewailing, with its strange soul of
liberty and desolation.
By this night’s mail, as we sat listening to the storm, in the drawing-room at Knowl, there reached me a
large letter with a great black seal, and a wonderfully deep-black border, like a widow’s crape. I did not
recognise the handwriting; but on opening the funereal missive, it proved to be from my uncle Silas, and
was thus expressed:—
’MY DEAREST NIECE,—This letter will reach you, probably, on the day which consigns the mortal remains
of my beloved brother, Austin, your dear father, to the earth. Sad ceremony, from taking my mournful part
in which I am excluded by years, [pg 145] distance, and broken health. It will, I trust, at this season of
- 153 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
SILAS RUTHYN.’
’P.S.—Pray present my respects to Lady Knollys, who, I understand, is sojourning at Knowl. I would
observe that a lady who cherishes, I have reason to fear, unfriendly feelings against your uncle, is not the
most desirable companion for his ward. But upon the express condition that I am not made the subject of
your discussions—a distinction which could not conduce to your forming a just and respectful estimate of
me—I do not interpose my authority to bring your intercourse to an immediate close.’
As I read this postscript, my cheek tingled as if I had received a box on the ear. Uncle Silas was as yet a
stranger. The menace of authority was new and sudden, and I felt with a pang of mortification the full force
of the position in which my dear father’s will had placed me.
I was silent, and handed the letter to my cousin, who read it with a kind of smile until she came, as I
supposed, to the postscript, when her countenance, on which my eyes were fixed, [pg 146] changed, and
with flushed cheeks she knocked the hand that held the letter on the table before her, and exclaimed—
’Did I ever hear! Well, if this isn’t impertinence! What an old man that is!’
- 154 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
There was a pause, during which Lady Knollys held her head high with a frown, and sniffed a little.
’I did not intend to talk about him, but now I will. I’ll talk away just whatever I like; and I’ll stay here just as
long as you let me, Maud, and you need not be one atom afraid of him. Our intercourse to an "immediate
close," indeed! I only wish he were here. He should hear something!’
And Cousin Monica drank off her entire cup of tea at one draught, and then she said, more in her own
way—
’I’m better!’ and drew a long breath, and then she laughed a little in a waggish defiance. ’I wish we had him
here, Maud, and would not we give him a bit of our minds! And this before the poor will is so much as
proved!’
’I am almost glad he wrote that postscript; for although I don’t think he has any authority in that matter
while I am under my own roof,’ I said, extemporising a legal opinion, ’and, therefore, shan’t obey him, it
has somehow opened my eyes to my real situation.’
I sighed, I believe, very desolately, for Lady Knollys came over and kissed me very gently and
affectionately.
’It really seems, Maud, as if he had a supernatural sense, and heard things through the air over fifty miles of
heath and hill. You remember how, just as he was probably writing that very postscript yesterday, I was
urging you to come and stay with me, and planning to move Dr. Bryerly in our favour. And so I will, Maud,
and to me you shall come—my guest, mind—I should be so delighted; and really if Silas is under a cloud, it
has been his own doing, and I don’t see that it is your business to fight his battle. He can’t live very long.
The suspicion, whatever it is dies with him, and what could poor dear Austin prove by his will but what
everybody knew quite well before—his own strong belief in Silas’s innocence? What an awful storm! The
room trembles. Don’t you like the sound? What they used to call ’wolving’ in the old organ at Dorminster!’
[pg 147]
- 155 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXVI
And so it was like the yelling of phantom hounds and hunters, and the thunder of their coursers in the air—a
furious, grand and supernatural music, which in my fancy made a suitable accompaniment to the discussion
of that enigmatical person—martyr—angel—demon—Uncle Silas—with whom my fate was now so
strangely linked, and whom I had begun to fear.
’The storm blows from that point,’ I said, indicating it with my hand and eye, although the window shutters
and curtains were closed. ’I saw all the trees bend that way this evening. That way stands the great lonely
wood, where my darling father and mother lie. Oh, how dreadful on nights like this, to think of them—a
vault!—damp, and dark, and solitary—under the storm.’
Cousin Monica looked wistfully in the same direction, and with a short sigh she said—
’We think too much of the poor remains, and too little of the spirit which lives for ever. I am sure they are
happy.’ And she sighed again. ’I wish I dare hope as confidently for myself. Yes, Maud, it is sad. We are
such materialists, we can’t help feeling so. We forget how well it is for us that our present bodies are not to
last always. They are constructed for a time and place of trouble—plainly mere temporary machines that
wear out, constantly exhibiting failure and decay, and with such tremendous capacity for pain. The body lies
alone, and so it ought, for it is plainly its good Creator’s will; it is only the tabernacle, not the person, who is
clothed upon after death, Saint Paul says, "with a house which is from heaven." So Maud, darling, although
the thought will trouble us again and again, there is nothing in it; and the poor mortal body is only the cold
ruin of a habitation which they have forsaken before we do. So this great wind, [pg 148] you say, is blowing
toward us from the wood there. If so, Maud, it is blowing from Bartram-Haugh, too, over the trees and
chimneys of that old place, and the mysterious old man, who is quite right in thinking I don’t like him; and I
can fancy him an old enchanter in his castle, waving his familiar spirits on the wind to fetch and carry
tidings of our occupations here.’
I lifted my head and listened to the storm, dying away in the distance sometimes—sometimes swelling and
pealing around and above us—and through the dark and solitude my thoughts sped away to Bartram-Haugh
- 156 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’This letter,’ I said at last, ’makes me feel differently. I think he is a stern old man—is he?’
’It is twenty years, now, since I saw him,’ answered Lady Knollys. ’I did not choose to visit at his house.’
’Yes—before, dear. He was not a reformed rake, but only a ruined one then. Austin was very good to him.
Mr. Danvers says it is quite unaccountable how Silas can have made away with the immense sums he got
from his brother from time to time without benefiting himself in the least. But, my dear, he played; and
trying to help a man who plays, and is unlucky—and some men are, I believe, habitually unlucky—is like
trying to fill a vessel that has no bottom. I think, by-the-by, my hopeful nephew, Charles Oakley, plays.
Then Silas went most unjustifiably into all manner of speculations, and your poor father had to pay
everything. He lost something quite astounding in that bank that ruined so many country gentlemen—poor
Sir Harry Shackleton, in Yorkshire, had to sell half his estate. But your kind father went on helping him, up
to his marriage—I mean in that extravagant way which was really totally useless.’
’Twelve or fifteen years—more, indeed—she died before your poor mamma. She was very unhappy, and I
am sure would have given her right hand she had never married Silas.’
’Coarse and vulgar, and Uncle Silas’s wife!’ I echoed in extreme surprise, for Uncle Silas was a man of
fashion—a beau in his day—and might have married women of good birth and fortune, I had no doubt, and
so I expressed myself.
[pg 149]
’Yes, dear; so he might, and poor dear Austin was very anxious he should, and would have helped him with
a handsome settlement, I dare say, but he chose to marry the daughter of a Denbigh innkeeper.’
- 157 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Not the least incredible, dear—a kind of thing not at all so uncommon as you fancy.’
’A barmaid!—just so,’ said Lady Knollys. ’I think I could count half a dozen men of fashion who, to my
knowledge, have ruined themselves just in a similar way.’
’Well, at all events, it must be allowed that in this he proved himself altogether unworldly.’
’Not a bit unworldly, but very vicious,’ replied Cousin Monica, with a careless little laugh. ’She was very
beautiful, curiously beautiful, for a person in her station. She was very like that Lady Hamilton who was
Nelson’s sorceress—elegantly beautiful, but perfectly low and stupid. I believe, to do him justice, he only
intended to ruin her; but she was cunning enough to insist upon marriage. Men who have never in all their
lives denied themselves the indulgence of a single fancy, cost what it may, will not be baulked even by that
condition if the penchant be only violent enough.’
I did not half understand this piece of worldly psychology, at which Lady Knollys seemed to laugh.
’Poor Silas, certainly he struggled honestly against the consequences, for he tried after the honeymoon to
prove the marriage bad. But the Welsh parson and the innkeeper papa were too strong for him, and the
young lady was able to hold her struggling swain fast in that respectable noose—and a pretty prize he
proved!’
’She died, at all events, about ten years after her marriage; but I really can’t say about her heart. She
certainly had enough ill-usage, I believe, to kill her; but I don’t know that she had feeling enough to die of
it, if it had not been that she drank: I am told that Welsh women often do. There was jealousy, of course,
and brutal quarrelling, and all sorts of horrid stories. I visited at Bartram-Haugh for a year or two, though no
one [pg 150] else would. But when that sort of thing began, of course I gave it up; it was out of the question.
I don’t think poor Austin ever knew how bad it was. And then came that odious business about wretched
Mr. Charke. You know he—he committed suicide at Bartram.’
- 158 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I never heard about that,’ I said; and we both paused, and she looked sternly at the fire, and the storm
roared and ha-ha-ed till the old house shook again.
’He was suspected by some people of having killed him’—she completed the sentence.
There was another long pause here, during which the storm outside bellowed and hooted like an angry mob
roaring at the windows for a victim. An intolerable and sickening sensation overpowered me.
’But you did not suspect him, Cousin Knollys?’ I said, trembling very much.
’No,’ she answered very sharply. ’I told you so before. Of course I did not.’
’I wish, Cousin Monica,’ I said, drawing close to her, ’you had not said that about Uncle Silas being like a
wizard, and sending his spirits on the wind to listen. But I’m very glad you never suspected him.’ I
insinuated my cold hand into hers, and looked into her face I know not with what expression. She looked
down into mine with a hard, haughty stare, I thought.
’Of course I never suspected him; and never ask me that question again, Maud Ruthyn.’
Was it family pride, or what was it, that gleamed so fiercely from her eyes as she said this? I was
frightened—I was wounded—I burst into tears.
’What is my darling crying for? I did not mean to be cross. Was I cross?’ said this momentary phantom of a
grim Lady Knollys, in an instant translated again into kind, pleasant Cousin Monica, with her arms about
my neck.
’No, no, indeed—only I thought I had vexed you; and, I believe, thinking of Uncle Silas makes me nervous,
and I can’t help thinking of him nearly always.’
- 159 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 151]
’Nor can I, although we might both easily find something better to think of. Suppose we try?’ said Lady
Knollys.
’But, first, I must know a little more about that Mr. Charke, and what circumstances enabled Uncle Silas’s
enemies to found on his death that wicked slander, which has done no one any good, and caused some
persons so much misery. There is Uncle Silas, I may say, ruined by it; and we all know how it darkened the
life of my dear father.’
’People will talk, my dear. Your uncle Silas had injured himself before that in the opinion of the people of
his county. He was a black sheep, in fact. Very bad stories were told and believed of him. His marriage
certainly was a disadvantage, you know, and the miserable scenes that went on in his disreputable
house—all that predisposed people to believe ill of him.’
’Oh, a long time; I think before you were born,’ answered she.
’And the injustice still lives—they have not forgotten it yet?’ said I, for such a period appeared to me long
enough to have consigned anything in its nature perishable to oblivion.
’Tell me, like a darling cousin, the whole story as well as you can recollect it. Who was Mr. Charke?’
’Mr. Charke, my dear, was a gentleman on the turf—that is the phrase, I think—one of those London men,
without birth or breeding, who merely in right of their vices and their money are admitted to associate with
young dandies who like hounds and horses, and all that sort of thing. That set knew him very well, but of
course no one else. He was at the Matlock races, and your uncle asked him to Bartram-Haugh; and the
creature, Jew or Gentile, whatever he was, fancied there was more honour than, perhaps, there really was in
a visit to Bartram-Haugh.’
’For the kind of person you describe, it was, I think, a rather unusual honour to be invited to stay in the
house of a man of Uncle Ruthyn’s birth.’
- 160 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, so it was perhaps; for though they knew him very well on the course, and would ask him to their
tavern dinners, they would not, of course, admit him to the houses where ladies were. But Silas’s wife was
not much regarded at Bartram-Haugh. [pg 152] Indeed, she was very little seen, for she was every evening
tipsy in her bedroom, poor woman!’
’I don’t think it troubled Silas very much, for she drank gin, they said, poor thing, and the expense was not
much; and, on the whole, I really think he was glad she drank, for it kept her out of his way, and was likely
to kill her. At this time your poor father, who was thoroughly disgusted at his marriage, had stopped the
supplies, you know, and Silas was very poor, and as hungry as a hawk, and they said he pounced upon this
rich London gamester, intending to win his money. I am telling you now all that was said afterwards. The
races lasted I forget how many days, and Mr. Charke stayed at Bartram-Haugh all this time and for some
days after. It was thought that poor Austin would pay all Silas’s gambling debts, and so this wretched Mr.
Charke made heavy wagers with him on the races, and they played very deep, besides, at Bartram. He and
Silas used to sit up at night at cards. All these particulars, as I told you, came out afterwards, for there was
an inquest, you know, and then Silas published what he called his "statement," and there was a great deal of
most distressing correspondence in the newspapers.’
’Well, I will tell you first what all are agreed about. The second night after the races, your uncle and Mr.
Charke sat up till between two and three o’clock in the morning, quite by themselves, in the parlour. Mr.
Charke’s servant was at the Stag’s Head Inn at Feltram, and therefore could throw no light upon what
occurred at night at Bartram-Haugh; but he was there at six o’clock in the morning, and very early at his
master’s door by his direction. He had locked it, as was his habit, upon the inside, and the key was in the
lock, which turned out afterwards a very important point. On knocking he found that he could not awaken
his master, because, as it appeared when the door was forced open, his master was lying dead at his bedside,
not in a pool, but a perfect pond of blood, as they described it, with his throat cut.’
’So it was. Your uncle Silas was called up, and greatly shocked of course, and he did what I believe was
best. He had everything [pg 153] left as nearly as possible in the exact state in which it had been found, and
- 161 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
he sent his own servant forthwith for the coroner, and, being himself a justice of the peace, he took the
depositions of Mr. Charke’s servant while all the incidents were still fresh in his memory.’
CHAPTER XXVII
So the inquest was held, and Mr. Manwaring, of Wail Forest, was the only juryman who seemed to entertain
the idea during the inquiry that Mr. Charke had died by any hand but his own.
’Well, you will see the result was quite enough to justify them in saying as they did, that he died by his own
hand. The window was found fastened with a screw on the inside, as it had been when the chambermaid had
arranged it at nine o’-clock; no one could have entered through it. Besides, it was on the third story, and the
rooms are lofty, so it stood at a great height from the ground, and there was no ladder long enough to reach
it. The house is built in the form of a hollow square, and Mr. Charke’s room looked into the narrow
court-yard within. There is but one door leading into this, and it did not show any sign of having been open
for years. The door was locked upon the inside, and the key in the lock, so that nobody could have made an
entrance that way either, for it was impossible, you see, to unlock the door from the outside.’
[pg 154]
- 162 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’There did come, nevertheless, a kind of mist over the subject, which gave those who chose to talk
unpleasantly an opportunity of insinuating suspicions, though they could not themselves find the clue of the
mystery. In the first place, it appeared that he had gone to bed very tipsy, and that he was heard sing ing and
noisy in his room while getting to bed—not the mood in which men make away with themselves. Then,
although his own razor was found in that dreadful blood (it is shocking to have to hear all this) near his right
hand, the fingers of his left were cut to the bone. Then the memorandum book in which his bets were noted
was nowhere to be found. That, you know, was very odd. His keys were there attached to a chain. He wore a
great deal of gold and trinkets. I saw him, wretched man, on the course. They had got off their horses. He
and your uncle were walking on the course.’
’Did he look like a gentleman?’ I inquired, as I dare say, other young ladies would.
’He looked like a Jew, my dear. He had a horrid brown coat with a velvet cape, curling black hair over his
collar, and great whiskers, very high shoulders, and he was puffing a cigar straight up into the air. I was
shocked to see Silas in such company.’
’On opening his travelling desk and a small japanned box within it a vast deal less money was found than
was expected—in fact, very little. Your uncle said that he had won some of it the night before at play, and
that Charke complained to him when tipsy of having had severe losses to counterbalance his gains on the
races. Besides, he had been paid but a small part of those gains. About his book it appeared that there were
little notes of bets on the backs of letters, and it was said that he sometimes made no other memorandum of
his wagers—but this was disputed—and among those notes there was not one referring to Silas. But, then,
there was an omission of all allusion to his transactions with two other well-known gentlemen. So that was
not singular.’
’And then came the question,’ continued she, ’what motive [pg 155] could Mr. Charke possibly have had
for making away with himself.’
’But is not that very difficult to make out in many cases?’ I interposed.
- 163 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’It was said that he had some mysterious troubles in London, at which he used to hint. Some people said that
he really was in a scrape, but others that there was no such thing, and that when he talked so he was only
jesting. There was no suspicion during the inquest that your uncle Silas was involved, except those
questions of Mr. Manwaring’s.’
’I really forget; but they greatly offended your uncle, and there was a little scene in the room. Mr.
Manwaring seemed to think that some one had somehow got into the room. Through the door it could not
be, nor down the chimney, for they found an iron bar across the flue, near the top in the masonry. The
window looked into a court-yard no bigger than a ball-room. They went down and examined it, but, though
the ground beneath was moist, they could not discover the slightest trace of a footprint. So far as they could
make out, Mr. Charke had hermetically sealed himself into his room, and then cut his throat with his own
razor.’
’Yes,’ said I, ’for it was all secured—that is, the window and the door—upon the inside, and no sign of any
attempt to get in.’
’Just so; and when the walls were searched, and, as your uncle Silas directed, the wainscoting removed,
some months afterwards, when the scandal grew loudest, then it was evident that there was no concealed
access to the room.’
’So the answer to all those calumnies was simply that the crime was impossible,’ said I. ’How dreadful that
such a slander should have required an answer at all!’
’It was an unpleasant affair even then, although I cannot say that anyone supposed Silas guilty; but you
know the whole thing was disreputable, that Mr. Charke was a discreditable inmate, the occurrence was
horrible, and there was a glare of publicity which brought into relief the scandals of Bartram-Haugh. But in
a little time it became, all on a sudden, a great deal worse.’
[pg 156]
’There were very disagreeable whispers among the sporting people in London. This person, Charke, had
- 164 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
written two letters, Yes—two. They were published about two months after, by the villain to whom they
were written; he wanted to extort money. They were first talked of a great deal among that set in town; but
the moment they were published they produced a sensation in the country, and a storm of newspaper
commentary. The first of these was of no great consequence, but the second was very startling,
embarrassing, and even alarming.’
’I can only tell you in a general way, it is so very long since I read it; but both were written in the same kind
of slang, and parts as hard to understand as a prize fight. I hope you never read those things.’
’I am afraid you hardly hear me, the wind makes such an uproar. Well, listen. The letter said distinctly, that
he, Mr. Charke, had made a very profitable visit to Bartram-Haugh, and mentioned in exact figures for how
much he held your uncle Silas’s I.O.U.’s, for he could not pay him. I can’t say what the sum was. I only
remember that it was quite frightful. It took away my breath when I read it.’
’Yes, and owed it; and had given him those papers called I.O.U.’s promising to pay, which, of course, Mr.
Charke had locked up with his money; and the insinuation was that Silas had made away with him, to get rid
of this debt, and that he had also taken a great deal of his money.
’I just recollect these points which were exactly what made the impression,’ continued Lady Knollys, after a
short pause; ’the letter was written in the evening of the last day of the wretched man’s life, so that there had
not been much time for your uncle Silas to win back his money; and he stoutly alleged that he did not owe
Mr. Charke a guinea. It mentioned an enormous sum as being actually owed by Silas; and it cautioned the
man, an agent, to whom he wrote, not to mention the circumstance, as Silas could only pay by getting the
money from his wealthy brother, who would have the management; and he distinctly said that he had kept
the matter very close at Silas’s [pg 157] request. That, you know, was a very awkward letter, and all the
worse that it was written in brutally high spirits, and not at all like a man meditating an exit from the world.
You can’t imagine what a sensation the publication of these letters produced. In a moment the storm was up,
and certainly Silas did meet it bravely—yes, with great courage and ability. What a pity he did not early
enter upon some career of ambition! Well, well, it is idle regretting. He suggested that the letters were
- 165 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
forgeries. He alleged that Charke was in the habit of boasting, and telling enormous falsehoods about his
gambling transactions, especially in his letters. He reminded the world how often men affect high animal
spirits at the very moment of meditating suicide. He alluded, in a manly and graceful way, to his family and
their character. He took a high and menacing tone with his adversaries, and he insisted that what they dared
to insinuate against him was physically impossible.’
’It was a letter, printed as a pamphlet; everybody admired its ability, ingenuity, and force, and it was written
with immense rapidity.’
My cousin laughed.
’Oh, dear, no! Ever since he avowed himself a religious character, he had written nothing but the most vapid
and nerveless twaddle. Your poor dear father used to send his letters to me to read, and I sometimes really
thought that Silas was losing his faculties; but I believe he was only trying to write in character.’
’I don’t think it was, anywhere; but in his own county it was certainly unanimously against him. There is no
use in asking why; but so it was, and I think it would have been easier for him with his unaided strength to
uproot the Peak than to change the convictions of the Derbyshire gentlemen. They were all against him. Of
course there were predisposing causes. Your uncle published a very bitter attack upon them, describing
himself as the victim of a political conspiracy: and I recollect he mentioned that from the hour of the
shocking catastrophe in his house, he had forsworn the turf and all pursuits and amusements [pg 158]
connected with it. People sneered, and said he might as well go as wait to be kicked out.’
’Everybody expected that there would, for there were very savage things printed on both sides, and I think,
too, that the persons who thought worst of him expected that evidence would yet turn up to convict Silas of
the crime they chose to impute; and so years have glided away, and many of the people who remembered
the tragedy of Bartram-Haugh, and took the strongest part in the denunciation, and ostracism that followed,
- 166 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
are dead, and no new light had been thrown upon the occurrence, and your uncle Silas remains an outcast.
At first he was quite wild with rage, and would have fought the whole county, man by man, if they would
have met him. But he had since changed his habits and, as he says, his aspirations altogether.’
’The only occupation remaining to him. He owes money; he is poor; he is isolated; and he says, sick and
religious. Your poor father, who was very decided and inflexible, never helped him beyond the limit he had
prescribed, after Silas’s mésalliance. He wanted to get him into Parliament, and would have paid his
expenses, and made him an allowance; but either Silas had grown lazy, or he understood his position better
than poor Austin, or he distrusted his powers, or possibly he really is in ill-health; but he objected his
religious scruples. Your poor papa thought self-assertion possible, where an injured man has right to rely
upon, but he had been very long out of the world, and the theory won’t do. Nothing is harder than to get a
person who has once been effectually slurred, received again. Silas, I think, was right. I don’t think it was
practicable.
’Dear child, how late it is!’ exclaimed Lady Knollys suddenly, looking at the Louis Quatorze clock, that
crowned the mantelpiece.
It was near one o’clock. The storm had a little subsided, and I took a less agitated and more confident view
of Uncle Silas than I had at an earlier hour of that evening.
Lady Knollys drummed on the table with her finger points as she looked into the fire.
’I don’t understand metaphysics, my dear, nor witchcraft. I [pg 159] sometimes believe in the supernatural,
and sometimes I don’t. Silas Ruthyn is himself alone, and I can’t define him, because I don’t understand
him. Perhaps other souls than human are sometimes born into the world, and clothed in flesh. It is not only
about that dreadful occurrence, but nearly always throughout his life; early and late he has puzzled me. I
have tried in vain to understand him. But at one time of his life I am sure he was awfully wicked—eccentric
indeed in his wickedness—gay, frivolous, secret, and dangerous. At one time I think he could have made
poor Austin do almost anything; but his influence vanished with his marriage, never to return again. No; I
don’t understand him. He always bewildered me, like a shifting face, sometimes smiling, but always
sinister, in an unpleasant dream.’
- 167 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXVIII
I AM PERSUADED
So now at last I had heard the story of Uncle Silas’s mysterious disgrace. We sat silent for a while, and I,
gazing into vacancy, sent him in a chariot of triumph, chapletted, ringed, and robed through the city of
imagination, crying after him, ’Innocent! innocent! martyr and crowned!’ All the virtues and honesties,
reason and conscience, in myriad shapes—tier above tier of human faces—from the crowded pavement,
crowded windows, crowded roofs, joined in the jubilant acclamation, and trumpeters trumpeted, and drums
rolled, and great organs and choirs through open cathedral gates, rolled anthems of praise and thanksgiving,
and the bells rang out, and cannons sounded, and the air trembled with the roaring harmony; and Silas
Ruthyn, the full-length portrait, stood in the burnished chariot, with a proud, sad, clouded face, that rejoiced
not with the rejoicers, and behind him the slave, thin as a ghost, white-faced, and sneering something in his
ear: while I and all the city went on crying ’Innocent! innocent! martyr and crowned!’ And now [pg 160] the
reverie was ended; and there were only Lady Knollys’ stern, thoughtful face, with the pale light of sarcasm
on it, and the storm outside thundering and lamenting desolately.
It was very good of Cousin Monica to stay with me so long. It must have been unspeakably tiresome. And
now she began to talk of business at home, and plainly to prepare for immediate flight, and my heart sank.
I know that I could not then have defined my feelings and agitations. I am not sure that I even now could.
Any misgiving about Uncle Silas was, in my mind, a questioning the foundations of my faith, and in itself
an impiety. And yet I am not sure that some such misgiving, faint, perhaps, and intermittent, may not have
been at the bottom of my tribulation.
I was not very well. Lady Knollys had gone out for a walk. She was not easily tired, and sometimes made a
long excursion. The sun was setting now, when Mary Quince brought me a letter which had just arrived by
the post. My heart throbbed violently. I was afraid to break the broad black seal. It was from Uncle Silas. I
- 168 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
ran over in my mind all the unpleasant mandates which it might contain, to try and prepare myself for a
shock. At last I opened the letter. It directed me to hold myself in readiness for the journey to
Bartram-Haugh. It stated that I might bring two maids with me if I wished so many, and that his next letter
would give me the details of my route, and the day of my departure for Derbyshire; and he said that I ought
to make arrangements about Knowl during my absence, but that he was hardly the person properly to be
consulted on that matter. Then came a prayer that he might be enabled to acquit himself of his trust to the
full satisfaction of his conscience, and that I might enter upon my new relations in a spirit of prayer.
I looked round my room, so long familiar, and now so endeared by the idea of parting and change. The old
house—dear, dear Knowl, how could I leave you and all your affectionate associations, and kind looks and
voices, for a strange land!
With a great sigh I took Uncle Silas’s letter, and went down stairs to the drawing-room. From the lobby
window, where I loitered for a few moments, I looked out upon the well-known forest-trees. The sun was
down. It was already twilight, and the white vapours of coming night were already filming their thinned and
yellow foliage. Everything looked melancholy. How little did [pg 161] those who envied the young
inheritrex of a princely fortune suspect the load that lay at her heart, or, bating the fear of death, how gladly
at that moment she would have parted with her life!
Lady Knollys had not yet returned, and it was darkening rapidly; a mass of black clouds stood piled in the
west, through the chasms of which was still reflected a pale metallic lustre.
The drawing-room was already very dark; but some streaks of this cold light fell upon a black figure, which
would otherwise have been unseen, leaning beside the curtains against the window frame.
I was startled and surprised, not knowing how he had got there. I stood staring at him in the dusk rather
awkwardly, I am afraid.
’How do you do, Miss Ruthyn?’ said he, extending his hand, long, hard, and brown as a mummy’s, and
stooping a little so as to approach more nearly, for it was not easy to see in the imperfect light. ’You’re
surprised, I dare say, to see me here so soon again?’
- 169 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I did not know you had arrived. I am glad to see you, Doctor Bryerly. Nothing unpleasant, I hope, has
happened?’
’No, nothing unpleasant, Miss. The will has been lodged, and we shall have probate in due course; but there
has been something on my mind, and I’m come to ask you two or three questions which you had better
answer very considerately. Is Miss Knollys still here?’
’I am glad she is here. I think she takes a sound view, and women understand one another better. As for me,
it is plainly my duty to put it before you as it strikes me, and to offer all I can do in accomplishing, should
you wish it, a different arrangement. You don’t know your uncle, you said the other day?’
’You understand your late father’s intention in making you his ward?’
’I suppose he wished to show his high opinion of my uncle’s fitness for such a trust.’
[pg 162]
’That’s quite true; but the nature of the trust in this instance is extraordinary.’
’I don’t understand.’
’Why, if you die before you come to the age of twenty-one, the entire of the property will go to him—do
you see?—and he has the custody of your person in the meantime; you are to live in his house, under his
care and authority. You see now, I think, how it is; and I did not like it when your father read the will to me,
and I said so. Do you?’
’And the more I think of it, the less I like it, Miss,’ said Doctor Bryerly, in a calm, stern tone.
’Merciful Heaven! Doctor Bryerly, you can’t suppose that I should not be as safe in my uncle’s house as in
the Lord Chancellor’s?’ I ejaculated, looking full in his face.
- 170 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’But don’t you see, Miss, it is not a fair position to put your uncle in,’ replied he, after a little hesitation.
’But suppose he does not think so. You know, if he does, he may decline it.’
’Well that’s true—but he won’t. Here is his letter’—and he produced it—’announcing officially that he
means to accept the office; but I think he ought to be told it is not delicate, under all circumstances. You
know, Miss, that your uncle, Mr. Silas Ruthyn, was talked about unpleasantly once.’
’Yes, I have heard that,’ I said; he was speaking with a shocking aplomb.
’We assume, of course, unjustly; but there are many who think quite differently.’
’And possibly, Doctor Bryerly, it was for that very reason that my dear papa made him my guardian.’
’There can be no doubt of that, Miss; it was to purge him of that scandal.’
’And when he has acquitted himself honourably of that trust, don’t you think such a proof of confidence so
honourably fulfilled must go far to silence his traducers?’
’Why, if all goes well, it may do a little; but a great deal less than you fancy. But take it that you happen to
die, Miss, during your minority. We are all mortal, and there are three years and [pg 163] some months to
go; how will it be then? Don’t you see? Just fancy how people will talk.’
’He is—he has suffered intensely,’ I continued. ’He has long retired from the world; he is very religious.
Ask our curate, Mr. Fairfield, if you doubt it.’
’But I am not disputing it, Miss; I’m only supposing what may happen—an accident, we’ll call it small-pox,
diphtheria, that’s going very much. Three years and three months, you know, is a long time. You proceed to
Bartram-Haugh, thinking you have much goods laid up for many years; but your Creator, you know, may
say, "Thou fool, this day is thy soul required of thee." You go—and what pray is thought of your uncle, Mr.
- 171 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Silas Ruthyn, who walks in for the entire inheritance, and who has long been abused like a pickpocket, or
worse, in his own county, I’m told?’
’You are a religious man, Doctor Bryerly, according to your lights?’ I said.
’Well, knowing that he is so too, and having yourself experienced the power of religion, do not you think
him deserving of every confidence? Don’t you think it well that he should have this opportunity of
exhibiting both his own character and the reliance which my dear papa reposed on it, and that we should
leave all consequences and contingencies in the hands of Heaven?’
’It appears to have been the will of Heaven hitherto,’ said Doctor Bryerly—I could not see with what
expression of face, but he was looking down, and drawing little diagrams with his stick on the dark carpet,
and spoke in a very low tone—’that your uncle should suffer under this ill report. In countervailing the
appointment of Providence, we must employ our reason, with conscientious diligence, as to the means, and
if we find that they are as likely to do mischief as good, we have no right to expect a special interposition to
turn our experiment into an ordeal. I think you ought to weigh it well—I am sure there are reasons against it.
If you make up your mind that you would rather be placed under the care, say of Lady Knollys, I will
endeavour all I can to effect it.’
[pg 164]
’That could not be done without his consent, could it?’ said I.
’No, but I don’t despair of getting that—on terms, of course,’ remarked he.
’I mean, for instance, if he were allowed to keep the allowance for your maintenance—eh?’
’I mistake my uncle Silas very much,’ I said, ’if that allowance is any object whatever to him compared with
the moral value of the position. If he were deprived of that, I am sure he would decline the other.’
’We might try him at all events,’ said Doctor Bryerly, on whose dark sinewy features, even in this imperfect
light, I thought I detected a smile.
- 172 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Perhaps,’ said I, ’I appear very foolish in supposing him actuated by any but sordid motives; but he is my
near relation, and I can’t help it, sir.’
’That is a very serious thing, Miss Ruthyn,’ he replied. ’You are very young, and cannot see it at present, as
you will hereafter. He is very religious, you say, and all that, but his house is not a proper place for you. It is
a solitude—its master an outcast, and it has been the repeated scene of all sorts of scandals, and of one great
crime; and Lady Knollys thinks your having been domesticated there will be an injury to you all the days of
your life.’
’So I do, Maud,’ said Lady Knollys, who had just entered the room unperceived,—’How do you do, Doctor
Bryerly?—a serious injury. You have no idea how entirely that house is condemned and avoided, and the
very name of its inmates tabooed.’
’Very unpleasant, my dear, but perfectly natural. You are to recollect that quite independently of the story of
Mr. Charke, the house was talked about, and the county people had cut your uncle Silas long before that
adventure was dreamed of; and as to the circumstance of your being placed in his charge by his brother,
who took, from strong family feeling, a totally one-sided view of the affair from the first, having the
slightest effect in restoring his position in the county, you must quite give that up. Except me, if he will
allow me, and the clergyman, not a soul in the country will visit at Bartram-Haugh. They may pity you, and
think the whole thing the climax of folly and cruelty; but [pg 165] they won’t visit at Bartram, or know
Silas, or have anything to do with his household.’
’They will see, at all events, what my dear papa’s opinion was.’
’They know that already,’ answered she, ’and it has not, and ought not to have, the slightest weight with
them. There are people there who think themselves just as great as the Ruthyns, or greater; and your poor
father’s idea of carrying it by a demonstration was simply the dream of a man who had forgotten the world,
and learned to exaggerate himself in his long seclusion. I know he was beginning himself to hesitate; and I
think if he had been spared another year that provision of his will would have been struck out.’
- 173 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And if he had the power to dictate now, would he insist on that direction? It is a mistake every way,
injurious to you, his child; and should you happen to die during your sojourn under your uncle’s care, it
would woefully defeat the testator’s object, and raise such a storm of surmise and inquiry as would awaken
all England, and send the old scandal on the wing through the world again.’
’Doctor Bryerly will, I have no doubt, arrange it all. In fact, I do not think it would be very difficult to bring
Silas to terms; and if you do not consent to his trying, Maud, mark my words, you will live to repent it.’
Here were two persons viewing the question from totally different points; both perfectly disinterested; both
in their different ways, I believe, shrewd and even wise; and both honourable, urging me against it, and in a
way that undefinably alarmed my imagination, as well as moved my reason. I looked from one to the
other—there was a silence. By this time the candles had come, and we could see one another.
’I only wait your decision, Miss Ruthyn,’ said the trustee, ’to see your uncle. If his advantage was the chief
object contemplated in this arrangement, he will be the best judge whether his interest is really best
consulted by it or no; and I think he will clearly see that it is not so, and will answer accordingly.’
’I cannot answer now—you must allow me to think it over—I will do my best. I am very much obliged, my
dear Cousin Monica, you are so very good, and you too, Doctor Bryerly.’
[pg 166]
Doctor Bryerly by this time was looking into his pocket-book, and did not acknowledge my thanks even by
a nod.
’I must be in London the day after to-morrow. Bartram-Haugh is nearly sixty miles from here, and only
twenty of that by rail, I find. Forty miles of posting over those Derbyshire mountains is slow work; but if
you say try, I’ll see him to-morrow morning.’
’But how can I decide in a moment? Oh, dear Cousin Monica, I am so distracted!’
’But you need not decide at all; the decision rests with him. Come; he is more competent than you. You must
say yes.’
- 174 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Again I looked from her to Doctor Bryerly, and from him to her again. I threw my arms about her neck, and
hugging her closely to me, I cried—
’Oh, Cousin Monica, dear Cousin Monica, advise me. I am a wretched creature. You must advise me.’
I did not know till now how irresolute a character was mine.
I knew somehow by the tone of her voice that she was smiling as she answered—
’Why, dear, I have advised you; I do advise you;’ and then she added, impetuously, ’I entreat and implore, if
you really think I love you, that you will follow my advice. It is your duty to leave your uncle Silas, whom
you believe to be more competent than you are, to decide, after full conference with Doctor Bryerly, who
knows more of your poor father’s views and intentions in making that appointment than either you or I.’
’Shall I say, yes?’ I cried, drawing her close, and kissing her helplessly.’ Oh, tell me—tell me to say, yes.’
’Yes, of course, yes. She agrees, Doctor Bryerly, to your kind proposal.’
’You have resolved wisely and well,’ said he, briskly, like a man who has got a care off his mind.
’I forgot to say, Doctor Bryerly—it was very rude—that you must stay here to-night.’
[pg 167]
’No; he can’t. You know you can’t, sir,’ said my cousin, peremptorily. ’You must not worry him, my dear,
with civilities he can’t accept. He’ll bid us good-bye this moment. Good-bye, Doctor Bryerly. You’ll write
immediately; don’t wait till you reach town. Bid him good-bye, Maud. I’ll say a word to you in the hall.’
And thus she literally hurried him out of the room, leaving me in a state of amazement and confusion, not
able to review my decision—unsatisfied, but still unable to recall it.
- 175 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I stood where they had left me, looking after them, I suppose, like a fool.
Lady Knollys returned in a few minutes. If I had been a little cooler I was shrewd enough to perceive that
she had sent poor Doctor Bryerly away upon his travels, to find board and lodging half-way to Bartram, to
remove him forthwith from my presence, and thus to make my decision—if mine it was—irrevocable.
’I applaud you, my dear,’ said Cousin Knollys, in her turn embracing me heartily. ’You are a sensible little
darling, and have done exactly what you ought to have done.’
CHAPTER XXIX
Lady Knollys, I could plainly see, when we got into the brighter lights at the dinner table, was herself a
good deal excited; she was relieved and glad, and was garrulous during our meal, and told me all her early
recollections of dear papa. Most of them I had heard before; but they could not be told too often.
Notwithstanding my mind sometimes wandered, often indeed, to the conference so unexpected, so suddenly
decisive, possibly so [pg 168] momentous; and with a dismayed uncertainly, the question—had I done
right?—was always before me.
I dare say my cousin understood my character better, perhaps, after all my honest self-study, then I do even
now. Irresolute, suddenly reversing my own decisions, impetuous in action as she knew me, she feared, I am
sure, a revocation of my commission to Doctor Bryerly, and thought of the countermand I might send
galloping after him.
- 176 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So, kind creature, she laboured to occupy my thoughts, and when one theme was exhausted found another,
and had always her parry prepared as often as I directed a reflection or an enquiry to the re-opening of the
question which she had taken so much pains to close.
That night I was troubled. I was already upbraiding myself. I could not sleep, and at last sat up in bed, and
cried. I lamented my weakness in having assented to Doctor Bryerly’s and my cousin’s advice. Was I not
departing from my engagement to my dear papa? Was I not consenting that my Uncle Silas should be
induced to second my breach of faith by a corresponding perfidy?
Lady Knollys had done wisely in despatching Doctor Bryerly so promptly; for, most assuredly, had he been
at Knowl next morning when I came down I should have recalled my commission.
That day in the study I found four papers which increased my perturbation. They were in dear papa’s
handwriting, and had an indorsement in these words—’Copy of my letter addressed to ——, one of the
trustees named in my will.’ Here, then, were the contents of those four sealed letters which had excited mine
and Lady Knollys’ curiosity on the agitating day on which the will was read.
’I name my oppressed and unhappy brother, Silas Ruthyn, residing at my house of Bartram-Haugh, as
guardian of the person of my beloved child, to convince the world if possible, and failing that, to satisfy at
least all future generations of our family, that his brother, who knew him best, had implicit confidence in
him, and that he deserved it. A cowardly and preposterous slander, originating in political malice, and which
[pg 169] never have been whispered had he not been poor and imprudent, is best silenced by this ordeal of
purification. All I possess goes to him if my child dies under age; and the custody of her person I commit
meanwhile to him alone, knowing that she is as safe in his as she could have been under my own care. I rely
upon your remembrance of our early friendship to make this known wherever an opportunity occurs, and
also to say what your sense of justice may warrant.’
The other letters were in the same spirit. My heart sank like lead as I read them. I quaked with fear. What
had I done? My father’s wise and noble vindication of our dishonoured name I had presumed to frustrate. I
- 177 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
had, like a coward, receded from my easy share in the task; and, merciful Heaven, I had broken my faith
with the dead!
With these letters in my hand, white with fear, I flew like a shadow to the drawing-room where Cousin
Monica was, and told her to read them. I saw by her countenance how much alarmed she was by my looks,
but she said nothing, only read the letters hurriedly, and then exclaimed—
’Is this all, my dear child? I really fancied you had found a second will, and had lost everything. Why, my
dearest Maud, we knew all this before. We quite understood poor dear Austin’s motive. Why are you so
easily disturbed?’
’Oh, Cousin Monica, I think he was right; it all seems quite reasonable now; and I—oh, what a crime!—it
must be stopped.’
’My dear Maud, listen to reason. Doctor Bryerly has seen your uncle at Bartram at least two hours ago. You
can’t stop it, and why on earth should you if you could? Don’t you think your uncle should be consulted?’
said she.
’But he has decided. I have his letter speaking of it as settled; and Doctor Bryerly—oh, Cousin Monica, he’s
gone to tempt him.’
’Nonsense, girl! Doctor Bryerly is a good and just man, I do believe, and has, beside, no imaginable motive
to pervert either his conscience or his judgment. He’s not gone to tempt him—stuff!—but to unfold the facts
and invite his consideration; and I say, considering how thoughtlessly such duties are often undertaken, and
how long Silas has been living in lazy solitude, shut out from the world, and unused to discuss anything, I
do [pg 170] think it only conscientious and honourable that he should have a fair and distinct view of the
matter in all its bearings submitted to him before he indolently incurs what may prove the worst danger he
was ever involved in.’
So Lady Knollys argued, with feminine energy, and I must confess, with a good deal of the repetition which
I have sometimes observed in logicians of my own sex, and she puzzled without satisfying me.
’I don’t know why I went to that room,’ I said, quite frightened; ’or why I went to that press; how it
happened that these papers, which we never saw there before, were the first things to strike my eye to-day.’
- 178 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I mean this—I think I was brought there, and that there is poor papa’s appeal to me, as plain as if his hand
came and wrote it upon the wall.’ I nearly screamed the conclusion of this wild confession.
’You are nervous, my darling; your bad nights have worn you out. Let us go out; the air will do you good;
and I do assure you that you will very soon see that we are quite right, and rejoice conscientiously that you
have acted as you did.’
But I was not to be satisfied, although my first vehemence was quieted. In my prayers that night my
conscience upbraided me. When I lay down in bed my nervousness returned fourfold. Everybody at all
nervously excitable has suffered some time or another by the appearance of ghastly features presenting
themselves in every variety of contortion, one after another, the moment the eyes are closed. This night my
dear father’s face troubled me—sometimes white and sharp as ivory, sometimes strangely transparent like
glass, sometimes all hanging in cadaverous folds, always with the same unnatural expression of diabolical
fury.
From this dreadful vision I could only escape by sitting up and staring at the light. At length, worn out, I
dropped asleep, and in a dream I distinctly heard papa’s voice say sharply outside the bed-curtain:—’Maud,
we shall be late at Bartram-Haugh.’
And I awoke in a horror, the wall, as it seemed, still ringing with the summons, and the speaker, I fancied,
standing at the other side of the curtain.
[pg 171]
A miserable night I passed. In the morning, looking myself like a ghost, I stood in my night-dress by Lady
Knollys’ bed.
’I have had my warning,’ I said. ’Oh, Cousin Monica, papa has been with me, and ordered me to
Bartram-Haugh; and go I will.’
She stared in my face uncomfortably, and then tried to laugh the matter off; but I know she was troubled at
the strange state to which agitation and suspense had reduced me.
- 179 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You’re taking too much for granted, Maud,’ said she; ’Silas Ruthyn, most likely, will refuse his consent,
and insist on your going to Bartram-Haugh.’
’Heaven grant!’ I exclaimed; ’but if he doesn’t, it is all the same to me, go I will. He may turn me out, but
I’ll go, and try to expiate the breach of faith that I fear is so horribly wicked.’
We had several hours still to wait for the arrival of the post. For both of us the delay was a suspense; for me
an almost agonising one. At length, at an unlooked-for moment, Branston did enter the room with the
post-bag. There was a large letter, with the Feltram post-mark, addressed to Lady Knollys—it was Doctor
Bryerly’s despatch; we read it together. It was dated on the day before, and its purport was thus:—
’RESPECTED MADAM,—I this day saw Mr. Silas Ruthyn at Bartram-Haugh, and he peremptorily refuses, on
any terms, to vacate the guardianship, or to consent to Miss Ruthyn’s residing anywhere but under his own
immediate care. As he bases his refusal, first upon a conscientious difficulty, declaring that he has no right,
through fear of personal contingencies, to abdicate an office imposed in so solemn a way, and so naturally
devolving on him as only brother to the deceased; and secondly upon the effect such a withdrawal, at the
instance of the acting trustee, would have upon his own character, amounting to a public self-condemnation;
and as he refused to discuss these positions with me, I could make no way whatsoever with him. Finding,
therefore, that his mind was quite made up, after a short time I took my leave. He mentioned that
preparations for his niece’s reception are being completed, and that he will send for her in a few days; so
that I think it will be advisable that I should go down to Knowl, to assist Miss Ruthyn with any advice she
may require before her departure, to discharge servants, get inventories [pg 172] made, and provide for the
care of the place and grounds during her minority.
HANS E. BRYERLY.’
I can’t describe to you how chapfallen and angry my cousin looked. She sniffed once or twice, and then
said, rather bitterly, in a subdued tone:—
- 180 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No, no, no; you know I’m not—grieved to the heart, my only friend, my dear Cousin Monica; but my
conscience is at rest; you don’t know what a sacrifice it is; I am a most unhappy creature. I feel an
indescribable foreboding. I am frightened; but you won’t forsake me, Cousin Monica.’
’And you’ll come and see me, won’t you, as often as you can?’
’Yes, dear; that is if Silas allows me; and I’m sure he will,’ she added hastily, seeing, I suppose, my terror in
my face. ’All I can do, you may be sure I will, and perhaps he will allow you to come to me, now and then,
for a short visit. You know I am only six miles away—little more than half an hour’s drive, and though I
hate Bartram, and detest Silas—Yes, I detest Silas,’ she repeated in reply to my surprised gaze—’I will call
at Bartram—that is, I say, if he allows me; for, you know, I haven’t been there for a quarter of a century;
and though I never understood Silas, I fancy he forgives no sins, whether of omission or commission.’
I wondered what old grudge could make my cousin judge Uncle Silas always so hardly—I could not
suppose it was justice. I had seen my hero indeed lately so disrespectfully handled before my eyes, that he
had, as idols will, lost something of his sacredness. But as an article of faith, I still cultivated my trust in his
divinity, and dismissed every intruding doubt with an exorcism, as a suggestion of the evil one. But I
wronged Lady Knollys in suspecting her of pique, or malice, or anything more than that tendency to take
strong views which some persons attribute to my sex.
So, then, the little project of Cousin Monica’s guardianship, which, had it been poor papa’s wish, would
have made me so [pg 173] very happy, was quite knocked on the head, to revive no more. I comforted
myself, however, with her promise to re-open communications with Bartram-Haugh, and we grew resigned.
I remember, next morning, as we sat at a very late breakfast, Lady Knollys, reading a letter, suddenly made
an exclamation and a little laugh, and read on with increased interest for a few minutes, and then, with
another little laugh, she looked up, placing her hand, with the open letter in it, beside her tea-cup.
’You’ll not guess whom I’ve been reading about,’ said she, with her head the least thing on one side, and an
arch smile.
- 181 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I felt myself blushing—cheeks, forehead, even down to the tips of my fingers. I anticipated the name I was
to hear. She looked very much amused. Was it possible that Captain Oakley was married?
’I really have not the least idea,’ I replied, with that kind of overdone carelessness which betrays us.
’No, I see quite plainly you have not; but you can’t think how prettily you blush,’ answered she, very much
diverted.
’I really don’t care,’ I replied, with some little dignity, and blushing deeper and deeper.
’I can’t guess.’
’Well, I will—that is, I’ll read a page of my letter, which tells it all. Do you know Georgina Fanshawe?’ she
asked.
’Well, no matter; she’s in Paris now, and this letter is from her, and she says—let me see the
place—"Yesterday, what do you think?—quite an apparition!—you shall hear. My brother Craven
yesterday insisted on my accompanying him to Le Bas’ shop in that odd little antique street near the Grève;
it is a wonderful old curiosity shop. I forget what they call them here. When we went into this place it was
very nearly deserted, and there were so many curious things to look at all about, that for a minute or two I
did not observe a tall woman, in a grey silk and a black velvet mantle, and quite a nice new Parisian bonnet.
You will be charmed, by-the-by, with the new shape—it is only out three weeks, and is quite indescribably
elegant, I [pg 174] think, at least. They have them, I am sure, by this time at Molnitz’s, so I need say no
more. And now that I am on this subject of dress, I have got your lace; and I think you will be very
ungrateful if you are not charmed with it." Well, I need not read all that—here is the rest;’ and she read—
’"But you’ll ask about my mysterious dame in the new bonnet and velvet mantle; she was sitting on a stool
at the counter, not buying, but evidently selling a quantity of stones and trinkets which she had in a
- 182 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
card-box, and the man was picking them up one by one, and, I suppose, valuing them. I was near enough to
see such a darling little pearl cross, with at least half a dozen really good pearls in it, and had begun to covet
them for my set, when the lady glanced over my shoulder, and she knew me—in fact, we knew one
another—and who do you think she was? Well—you’ll not guess in a week, and I can’t wait so long; so I
may as well tell you at once—she was that horrid old Mademoiselle Blassemare whom you pointed out to
me at Elverston; and I never forgot her face since—nor she, it seems, mine, for she turned away very
quickly, and when I next saw her, her veil was down."’
’Did not you tell me, Maud, that you had lost your pearl cross while that dreadful Madame de la Rougierre
was here?’
’Yes; but—’
’I know; but what has she to do with Mademoiselle de Blassemare, you were going to say—they are one and
the same person.’
’Oh, I perceive,’ answered I, with that dim sense of danger and dismay with which one hears suddenly of an
enemy of whom one has lost sight for a time.
’I’ll write and tell Georgie to buy that cross. I wager my life it is yours,’ said Lady Knollys, firmly.
The servants, indeed, made no secret of their opinion of Madame de la Rougierre, and frankly charged her
with a long list of larcenies. Even Anne Wixted, who had enjoyed her barren favour while the gouvernante
was here, hinted privately that she had bartered a missing piece of lace belonging to me with a gipsy pedlar,
for French gloves and an Irish poplin.
’But you must not bring me into court,’ said I, half amused and half alarmed.
[pg 175]
’No occasion, my dear; Mary Quince and Mrs. Rusk can prove it perfectly.’
- 183 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Cousin Monica leaned back in her chair, and searched the cornice from corner to corner with upturned eyes
for the reason, and at last laughed a little, amused at herself.
’Well, really, it is not easy to define, and, perhaps, it is not quite charitable; but I know I hate her, and I
know, you little hypocrite, you hate her as much as I;’ and we both laughed a little.
’Her history?’ echoed she. ’I really know next to nothing about it; only that I used to see her sometimes
about the place that Georgina mentions, and there were some unpleasant things said about her; but you
know they may be all lies. The worst I know of her is her treatment of you, and her robbing the
desk’—(Cousin Monica always called it her robbery)—’and I think that’s enough to hang her. Suppose we
go out for a walk?’
So together we went, and I resumed about Madame; but no more could I extract—perhaps there was not
much more to hear.
CHAPTER XXX
ON THE ROAD
All at Knowl was indicative of the break-up that was so near at hand. Doctor Bryerly arrived according to
promise. He was in a whirl of business all the time. He and Mr. Danvers conferred about the management of
the estate. It was agreed that the grounds and gardens should be let, but not the house, of which Mrs. Rusk
was to take the care. The gamekeeper remained in office, and some out-door servants. But the rest were to
go, except Mary Quince, who was to accompany me to Bartram-Haugh as my maid.
[pg 176]
- 184 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Don’t part with Quince,’ said Lady Knollys, peremptorily ’they’ll want you, but don’t.’
She kept harping on this point, and recurred to it half a dozen times every day.
’They’ll say, you know, that she is not fit for a lady’s maid, as she certainly is not, if it in the least signified
in such a wilderness as Bartram-Haugh; but she is attached, trustworthy, and honest; and those are qualities
valuable everywhere, especially in a solitude. Don’t allow them to get you a wicked young French milliner
in her stead.’
Sometimes she said things that jarred unpleasantly on my nerves, and left an undefined sense of danger.
Such as:—
’I know she’s true to you, and a good creature; but is she shrewd enough?’
Or, suddenly:—
Or,
Or,
’Is she a person of any enterprise and resource, and cool in an emergency?’
Now, these questions did not come all in a string, as I write them down here, but at long intervals, and were
followed quickly by ordinary talk; but they generally escaped from my companion after silence and gloomy
thought; and though I could extract nothing more defined than these questions, yet they seemed to me to
point at some possible danger contemplated in my good cousin’s dismal ruminations.
Another topic that occupied my cousin’s mind a good deal was obviously the larceny of my pearl cross. She
made a note of the description furnished by the recollection, respectively, of Mary Quince, Mrs. Rusk, and
myself. I had fancied her little vision of the police was no more than the result of a momentary impulse; but
- 185 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
really, to judge by her methodical examinations of us, I should have fancied that she had taken it up in
downright earnest.
Having learned that my departure from Knowl was to be so very soon, she resolved not to leave me before
the day of my [pg 177] journey to Bartram-Haugh; and as day after day passed by, and the hour of our
leave-taking approached, she became more and more kind and affectionate. A feverish and sorrowful
interval it was to me.
Of Doctor Bryerly, though staying in the house, we saw almost nothing, except for an hour or so at tea-time.
He breakfasted very early, and dined solitarily, and at uncertain hours, as business permitted.
The second evening of his visit, Cousin Monica took occasion to introduce the subject of his visit to
Bartram-Haugh.
’Yes, he saw me; he was not well. On hearing who I was, he asked me to go to his room, where he sat in a
silk dressing-gown and slippers.’
’That was despatched in very few words; for he was quite resolved, and placed his refusal upon grounds
which it was difficult to dispute. But difficult or no, mind you, he intimated that he would hear nothing
more on the subject—so that was closed.’
’We had some interesting conversation on the subject. He leans much to what we call the doctrine of
correspondents. He is read rather deeply in the writings of Swedenborg, and seemed anxious to discuss
some points with one who professes to be his follower. To say truth, I did not expect to find him either so
well read or so deeply interested in the subject.’
’Was he angry when it was proposed that he should vacate the guardianship?’
’Not at all. Contrariwise, he said he had at first been so minded himself. His years, his habits, and something
of the unfitness of the situation, the remoteness of Bartram-Haugh from good teachers, and all that, had
- 186 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
struck him, and nearly determined him against accepting the office. But then came the views which I stated
in my letter, and they governed him; and nothing could shake them, he said, or induce him to re-open the
question in his own mind.’
All the time Doctor Bryerly was relating his conference with the head of the family at Bartram-Haugh my
cousin commented [pg 178] on the narrative with a variety of little ’pishes’ and sneers, which I thought
showed more of vexation than contempt.
I was glad to hear all that Doctor Bryerly related. It gave me a kind of confidence; and I experienced a
momentary reaction. After all, could Bartram-Haugh be more lonely than I had found Knowl? Was I not
sure of the society of my Cousin Millicent, who was about my own age? Was it not quite possible that my
sojourn in Derbyshire might turn out a happy though very quiet remembrance through all my after-life?
Why should it not? What time or place would be happy if we gave ourselves over to dismal imaginations?
So the summons reached me from Uncle Silas. The hours at Knowl were numbered.
The evening before I departed I visited the full-length portrait of Uncle Silas, and studied it for the last time
carefully, with deep interest, for many minutes; but with results vaguer than ever.
With a brother so generous and so wealthy, always ready to help him forward; with his talents; with his lithe
and gorgeous beauty, the shadow of which hung on that canvas—what might he not have accomplished?
whom might he not have captivated? And yet where and what was he? A poor and shunned old man,
occupying a lonely house and place that did not belong to him, married to degradation, with a few years of
suspected and solitary life before him, and then swift oblivion his best portion.
I gazed on the picture, to fix it well and vividly in my remembrance. I might still trace some of its outlines
and tints in its living original, whom I was next day to see for the first time in my life.
So the morning came—my last for many a day at Knowl—a day of partings, a day of novelty and regrets.
The travelling carriage and post horses were at the door. Cousin Monica’s carriage had just carried her away
to the railway. We had embraced with tears; and her kind face was still before me, and her words of comfort
and promise in my ears. The early sharpness of morning was still in the air; the frosty dew still glistened on
the window-panes. We had made a hasty breakfast, my share of which was a single cup of tea. The aspect of
the house how strange! Uncarpeted, uninhabited, doors for the most part [pg 179] locked, all the servants
but Mrs. Rusk and Branston departed. The drawing-room door stood open, and a charwoman was washing
- 187 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
the bare floor. I was looking my last—for who could say how long?—on the old house, and lingered. The
luggage was all up. I made Mary Quince get in first, for every delay was precious; and now the moment was
come. I hugged and kissed Mrs. Rusk in the hall.
’God bless you, Miss Maud, darling. You must not fret; mind, the time won’t be long going over—no time
at all; and you’ll be bringing back a fine young gentleman—who knows? as great as the Duke of
Wellington, for your husband; and I’ll take the best of care of everything, and the birds and the dogs, till you
come back; and I’ll go and see you and Mary, if you’ll allow, in Derbyshire;’ and so forth.
I got into the carriage, and bid Branston, who shut the door, good-bye, and kissed hands to Mrs. Rusk, who
was smiling and drying her eyes and courtesying on the hall-door steps. The dogs, who had started gleefully
with the carriage, were called back by Branston, and driven home, wondering and wistful, looking back
with ears oddly cocked and tails dejected. My heart thanked them for their kindness, and I felt like a
stranger, and very desolate.
It was a bright, clear morning. It had been settled that it was not worth the trouble changing from the
carriage to the railway for sake of five-and-twenty miles, and so the entire journey of sixty miles was to be
made by the post road—the pleasantest travelling, if the mind were free. The grander and more distant
features of the landscape we may see well enough from the window of the railway-carriage; but it is the
foreground that interests and instructs us, like a pleasant gossiping history; and that we had, in old days,
from the post-chaise window. It was more than travelling picquet. Something of all conditions of
life—luxury and misery—high spirits and low;—all sorts of costume, livery, rags, millinery; faces buxom,
faces wrinkled, faces kind, faces wicked;—no end of interest and suggestion, passing in a procession silent
and vivid, and all in their proper scenery. The golden corn-sheafs—the old dark-alleyed orchards, and the
high streets of antique towns. There were few dreams brighter, few books so pleasant.
We drove by the dark wood—it always looked dark to me—where [pg 180] the ’mausoleum’
stands—where my dear parents both lay now. I gazed on its sombre masses not with a softened feeling, but
a peculiar sense of pain, and was glad when it was quite past.
All the morning I had not shed a tear. Good Mary Quince cried at leaving Knowl; Lady Knollys’ eyes were
not dry as she kissed and blessed me, and promised an early visit; and the dark, lean, energetic face of the
housekeeper was quivering, and her cheeks wet, as I drove away. But I, whose grief was sorest, never shed a
tear. I only looked about from one familiar object to another, pale, excited, not quite apprehending my
- 188 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
But when we reached the old bridge, with the tall osiers standing by the buttress, and looked back at poor
Knowl—the places we love and are leaving look so fairy-like and so sad in the clear distance, and this is the
finest view of the gabled old house, with its slanting meadow-lands and noble timber reposing in solemn
groups—I gazed at the receding vision, and the tears came at last, and I wept in silence long after the fair
picture was hidden from view by the intervening uplands.
I was relieved, and when we had made our next change of horses, and got into a country that was unknown
to me, the new scenery and the sense of progress worked their accustomed effects on a young traveller who
had lived a particularly secluded life, and I began to experience, on the whole, a not unpleasurable
excitement.
Mary Quince and I, with the hopefulness of inexperienced travellers, began already to speculate about our
proximity to Bartram-Haugh, and were sorely disappointed when we heard from the nondescript
courier—more like a ostler than a servant, who sat behind in charge of us and the luggage, and represented
my guardian’s special care—at nearly one o’clock, that we had still forty miles to go, a considerable portion
of which was across the high Derbyshire mountains, before we reached Bartram-Haugh.
The fact was, we had driven at a pace accommodated rather to the convenience of the horses than to our
impatience; and finding, at the quaint little inn where we now halted, that we must wait for a nail or two in a
loose shoe of one of our relay, we consulted, and being both hungry, agreed to beguile the time [pg 181]
with an early dinner, which we enjoyed very sociably in a queer little parlour with a bow window, and
commanding, with a litle garden for foreground, a very pretty landscape.
Good Mary Quince, like myself, had quite dried her tears by this time, and we were both highly interested,
and I a little nervous, too, about our arrival and reception at Bartram. Some time, of course, was lost in this
pleasant little parlour, before we found ourselves once more pursuing our way.
The slowest part of our journey was the pull up the long mountain road, ascending zig-zag, as sailors make
way against a head-wind, by tacking. I forget the name of the pretty little group of houses—it did not
amount to a village—buried in trees, where we got our four horses and two postilions, for the work was
severe. I can only designate it as the place where Mary Quince and I had our tea, very comfortably, and
bought some gingerbread, very curious to look upon, but quite uneatable.
- 189 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The greater portion of the ascent, when we were fairly upon the mountain, was accomplished at a walk, and
at some particularly steep points we had to get out and go on foot. But this to me was quite delightful. I had
never scaled a mountain before, and the ferns and heath, the pure boisterous air, and above all the
magnificent view of the rich country we were leaving behind, now gorgeous and misty in sunset tints,
stretching in gentle undulations far beneath us, quite enchanted me.
We had just reached the summit when the sun went down. The low grounds at the other side were already
lying in cold grey shadow, and I got the man who sat behind to point out as well as he could the site of
Bartram-Haugh. But mist was gathering over all by this time. The filmy disk of the moon which was to light
us on, so soon as twilight faded into night, hung high in air. I tried to see the sable mass of wood which he
described. But it was vain, and to acquire a clear idea of the place, as of its master, I must only wait that
nearer view which an hour or two more would afford me.
And now we rapidly descended the mountain side. The scenery was wilder and bolder than I was
accustomed to. Our road skirted the edge of a great heathy moor. The silvery light of the moon began to
glimmer, and we passed a gipsy bivouac with fires alight and caldrons hanging over them. It was the first I
had seen. Two or three low tents; a couple of dark, withered [pg 182] crones, veritable witches; a graceful
girl standing behind, gazing after us; and men in odd-shaped hats, with gaudy waistcoats and
bright-coloured neck-handkerchiefs and gaitered legs, stood lazily in front. They had all a wild tawdry
display of colour; and a group of alders in the rear made a background of shade for tents, fires, and figures.
I opened a front window of the chariot, and called to the postboys to stop. The groom from behind came to
the window.
’Yes, please’m, them’s gipsies, sure, Miss,’ he answered, glancing with that odd smile, half contemptuous,
half superstitious, with which I have since often observed the peasants of Derbyshire eyeing those thievish
and uncanny neighbours.
- 190 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXXI
BARTRAM-HAUGH
In a moment a tall, lithe girl, black-haired, black-eyed, and, as I thought, inexpressibly handsome, was
smiling, with such beautiful rings of pearly teeth, at the window; and in her peculiar accent, with a suspicion
of something foreign in it, proposing with many courtesies to tell the lady her fortune.
I had never seen this wild tribe of the human race before—children of mystery and liberty. Such
vagabondism and beauty in the figure before me! I looked at their hovels and thought of the night, and
wondered at their independence, and felt my inferiority. I could not resist. She held up her slim oriental
hand.
’Yes, I’ll hear my fortune,’ I said, returning the sibyl’s smile instinctively.
’Give me some money, Mary Quince. No, not that,’ I said, rejecting the thrifty sixpence she tendered, for I
had heard that the revelations of this weird sisterhood were bright in proportion to the kindness of their
clients, and was resolved to approach [pg 183] Bartram with cheerful auguries. ’That five-shilling piece,’ I
insisted; and honest Mary reluctantly surrendered the coin.
So the feline beauty took it, with courtesies and ’thankees,’ smiling still, and hid it away as if she stole it,
and looked on my open palm still smiling; and told me, to my surprise, that there was somebody I liked very
much, and I was almost afraid she would name Captain Oakley; that he would grow very rich, and that I
should marry him; that I should move about from place to place a great deal for a good while to come. That
I had some enemies, who should be sometimes so near as to be in the same room with me, and yet they
should not be able to hurt me. That I should see blood spilt and yet not my own, and finally be very happy
and splendid, like the heroine of a fairy tale.
Did this strange, girlish charlatan see in my face some signs of shrinking when she spoke of enemies, and
set me down for a coward whose weakness might be profitable? Very likely. At all events she plucked a
long brass pin, with a round bead for a head, from some part of her dress, and holding the point in her
fingers, and exhibiting the treasure before my eyes, she told me that I must get a charmed pin like that,
- 191 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
which her grandmother had given to her, and she ran glibly through a story of all the magic expended on it,
and told me she could not part with it; but its virtue was that you were to stick it through the blanket, and
while it was there neither rat, nor cat, nor snake—and then came two more terms in the catalogue, which I
suppose belonged to the gipsy dialect, and which she explained to mean, as well as I could understand, the
first a malevolent spirit, and the second ’a cove to cut your throat,’ could approach or hurt you.
A charm like that, she gave me to understand, I must by hook or by crook obtain. She had not a second.
None of her people in the camp over there possessed one. I am ashamed to confess that I actually paid her a
pound for this brass pin! The purchase was partly an indication of my temperament, which could never let
an opportunity pass away irrevocably without a struggle, and always apprehended ’Some day or other I’ll
reproach myself tor having neglected it!’ and partly a record of the trepidations of that period of my life. At
all events I had her pin, [pg 184] and she my pound, and I venture to say I was the gladder of the two.
She stood on the road-side bank courtseying and smiling, the first enchantress I had encountered, and I
watched the receding picture, with its patches of firelight, its dusky groups and donkey carts, white as
skeletons in the moonlight, as we drove rapidly away.
They, I suppose, had a wild sneer and a merry laugh over my purchase, as they sat and ate their supper of
stolen poultry, about their fire, and were duly proud of belonging to the superior race.
’It went to my heart, Miss, it did. They’re such a lot, young and old, all alike thieves and vagabonds, and
many a poor body wanting.’
’Tut, Mary, never mind. Everyone has her fortune told some time in her life, and you can’t have a good one
without paying. I think, Mary, we must be near Bartram now.’
The road now traversed the side of a steep hill, parallel to which, along the opposite side of a winding river,
rose the dark steeps of a corresponding upland, covered with forest that looked awful and dim in the deep
shadow, while the moonlight rippled fitfully upon the stream beneath.
’It seems to be a beautiful country,’ I said to Mary Quince, who was munching a sandwich in the corner,
and thus appealed to, adjusted her bonnet, and made an inspection from her window, which, however,
commanded nothing but the heathy slope of the hill whose side we were traversing.
- 192 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, Miss, I suppose it is; but there’s a deal o’ mountains—is not there?’
And so saying, honest Mary leaned back again, and went on with her sandwich.
We were now descending at a great pace. I knew we were coming near. I stood up as well as I could in the
carriage, to see over the postilions’ heads. I was eager, but frightened too; agitated as the crisis of the arrival
and meeting approached. At last, a long stretch of comparatively level country below us, with masses of
wood as well as I could see irregularly overspreading [pg 185] it, became visible as the narrow valley
through which we were speeding made a sudden bend.
Down we drove, and now I did perceive a change. A great grass-grown park-wall, overtopped with mighty
trees; but still on and on we came at a canter that seemed almost a gallop. The old grey park-wall flanking
us at one side, and a pretty pastoral hedgerow of ash-trees, irregularly on the other.
At last the postilions began to draw bridle, and at a slight angle, the moon shining full upon them, we
wheeled into a wide semicircle formed by the receding park-walls, and halted before a great fantastic iron
gate, and a pair of tall fluted piers, of white stone, all grass-grown and ivy-bound, with great cornices,
surmounted with shields and supporters, the Ruthyn bearings washed by the rains of Derbyshire for many a
generation of Ruthyns, almost smooth by this time, and looking bleached and phantasmal, like giant
sentinels, with each a hand clasped in his comrade’s, to bar our passage to the enchanted castle—the florid
tracery of the iron gate showing like the draperies of white robes hanging from their extended arms to the
earth.
Our courier got down and shoved the great gate open, and we entered, between sombre files of magnificent
forest trees, one of those very broad straight avenues whose width measures the front of the house. This was
all built of white stone, resembling that of Caen, which parts of Derbyshire produce in such abundance.
So this was Bartram, and here was Uncle Silas. I was almost breathless as I approached. The bright moon
shining full on the white front of the old house revealed not only its highly decorated style, its fluted pillars
and doorway, rich and florid carving, and balustraded summit, but also its stained and moss-grown front.
Two giant trees, overthrown at last by the recent storm, lay with their upturned roots, and their yellow
foliage still flickering on the sprays that were to bloom no more, where they had fallen, at the right side of
the court-yard, which, like the avenue, was studded with tufted weeds and grass.
- 193 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
All this gave to the aspect of Bartram a forlorn character of desertion and decay, contrasting almost awfully
with the grandeur of its proportions and richness of its architecture.
There was a ruddy glow from a broad window in the second row, and I thought I saw some one peep from it
and disappear; [pg 186] at the same moment there was a furious barking of dogs, some of whom ran
scampering into the court-yard from a half-closed side door; and amid their uproar, the bawling of the man
in the back seat, who jumped down to drive them off, and the crack of the postilions’ whips, who struck at
them, we drew up before the lordly door-steps of this melancholy mansion.
Just as our attendant had his hand on the knocker the door opened, and we saw, by a not very brilliant
candle-light, three figures—a shabby little old man, thin, and very much stooped, with a white cravat, and
looking as if his black clothes were too large, and made for some one else, stood with his hand upon the
door; a young, plump, but very pretty female figure, in unusually short petticoats, with fattish legs, and nice
ankles, in boots, stood in the centre; and a dowdy maid, like an old charwoman, behind her.
The household paraded for welcome was not certainly very brilliant. Amid the riot the trunks were
deliberately put down by our attendant, who kept shouting to the old man at the door, and to the dogs in
turn; and the old man was talking and pointing stiffly and tremulously, but I could not hear what he said.
The idea stunned me; but I almost instantly perceived that he was much too small, and I was relieved, and
even grateful. It was certainly an odd mode of procedure to devote primary attention to the trunks and
boxes, leaving the travellers still shut up in the carriage, of which they were by this time pretty well tired. I
was not sorry for the reprieve, however: being nervous about first impressions, and willing to defer mine, I
sat shyly back, peeping at the candle and moonlight picture before me, myself unseen.
’Will you tell—yes or no—is my cousin in the coach?’ screamed the plump young lady, stamping her stout
black boot, in a momentary lull.
’And why the puck don’t you let her out, you stupe, you?’
- 194 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Run down, Giblets, you never do nout without driving, and let Cousin Maud out. You’re very welcome to
Bartram.’ This greeting was screamed at an amazing pitch, and repeated before [pg 187] I had time to drop
the window, and say ’thank you.’ ’I’d a let you out myself—there’s a good dog, you would na’ bite Cousin’
(the parenthesis was to a huge mastiff, who thrust himself beside her, by this time quite pacified)—’only I
daren’t go down the steps, for the governor said I shouldn’t.’
The venerable person who went by the name of Giblets had by this time opened the carriage door, and our
courier, or ’boots’—he looked more like the latter functionary—had lowered the steps, and in greater
trepidation than I experienced when in after-days I was presented to my sovereign, I glided down, to offer
myself to the greeting and inspection of the plain-spoken young lady who stood at the top of the steps to
receive me.
She welcomed me with a hug and a hearty buss, as she called that salutation, on each cheek, and pulled me
into the hall, and was evidently glad to see me.
’And you’re tired a bit, I warrant; and who’s the old ’un, who?’ she asked eagerly, in a stage whisper, which
made my ear numb for five minutes after. ’Oh, oh, the maid! and a precious old ’un—ha, ha, ha! But lawk!
how grand she is, with her black silk, cloak and crape, and I only in twilled cotton, and rotten old Coburg
for Sundays. Odds! it’s a shame; but you’ll be tired, you will. It’s a smartish pull, they do say, from Knowl.
I know a spell of it, only so far as the "Cat and Fiddle," near the Lunnon-road. Come up, will you? Would
you like to come in first and talk a bit wi’ the governor? Father, you know, he’s a bit silly, he is, this while.’
I found that the phrase meant only bodily infirmity. ’He took a pain o’ Friday, newralgie—something or
other he calls it—rheumatics it is when it takes old "Giblets" there; and he’s sitting in his own room; or
maybe you’d like better to come to your bedroom first, for it is dirty work travelling, they do say.’
Yes; I preferred the preliminary adjustment. Mary Quince was standing behind me; and as my voluble
kinswoman talked on, we had each ample time and opportunity to observe the personnel of the other; and
she made no scruple of letting me perceive that she was improving it, for she stared me full in the face,
taking in evidently feature after feature; and she felt the material of my mantle pretty carefully between her
finger and thumb, and manually examined my chain and trinkets, and picked up my hand as she might a
glove, to con over my rings.
[pg 188]
- 195 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I can’t say, of course, exactly what impression I may have produced on her. But in my cousin Milly I saw a
girl who looked younger than her years, plump, but with a slender waist, with light hair, lighter than mine,
and very blue eyes, rather round; on the whole very good-looking. She had an odd swaggering walk, a toss
of her head, and a saucy and imperious, but rather good-natured and honest countenance. She talked rather
loud, with a good ringing voice, and a boisterous laugh when it came.
If I was behind the fashion, what would Cousin Monica have thought of her? She was arrayed, as she had
stated, in black twilled cotton expressive of her affliction; but it was made almost as short in the skirt as that
of the prints of the Bavarian broom girls. She had white cotton stockings, and a pair of black leather boots,
with leather buttons, and, for a lady, prodigiously thick soles, which reminded me of the navvy boots I had
so often admired in Punch. I must add that the hands with which she assisted her scrutiny of my dress,
though pretty, were very much sunburnt indeed.
’And what’s her name?’ she demanded, nodding to Mary Quince, who was gazing on her awfully, with
round eyes, as an inland spinster might upon a whale beheld for the first time.
’Mary Quince,’ she repeated. ’You’re welcome, Quince. What shall I call her? I’ve a name for all o’ them.
Old Giles there, is Giblets. He did not like it first, but he answers quick enough now; and Old Lucy Wyat
there,’ nodding toward the old woman, ’is Lucia de l’Amour.’ A slightly erroneous reading of
Lammermoor, for my cousin sometimes made mistakes, and was not much versed in the Italian opera. ’You
know it’s a play, and I call her L’Amour for shortness;’ and she laughed hilariously, and I could not forbear
joining; and, winking at me, she called aloud, ’L’Amour.’
To which the crone, with a high-cauled cap, resembling Mother Hubbard, responded with a courtesy and
’Yes,’m.’
They were.
’Well, we’ll come now; and what shall I call you, Quince? Let me see.’
[pg 189]
- 196 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’According to your pleasure, Miss,’ answered Mary, with dignity, and a dry courtesy.
’Why, you’re as hoarse as a frog, Quince. We’ll call you Quinzy for the present. That’ll do. Come along,
Quinzy.’
So my Cousin Milly took me under the arm, and pulled me forward; but as we ascended, she let me go,
leaning back to make inspection of my attire from a new point of view.
’Hallo, cousin,’ she cried, giving my dress a smack with her open hand. ’What a plague do you want of all
that bustle; you’ll leave it behind, lass, the first bush you jump over.’
I was a good deal astounded. I was also very near laughing, for there was a sort of importance in her plump
countenance, and an indescribable grotesqueness in the fashion of her garments, which heightened the
outlandishness of her talk, in a way which I cannot at all describe.
What palatial wide stairs those were which we ascended, with their prodigious carved banisters of oak, and
each huge pillar on the landing-place crowned with a shield and carved heraldic supporters; florid oak
panelling covered the walls. But of the house I could form no estimate, for Uncle Silas’s housekeeping did
not provide light for hall and passages, and we were dependent on the glimmer of a single candle; but there
would be quite enough of this kind of exploration in the daylight.
So along dark oak flooring we advanced to my room, and I had now an opportunity of admiring, at my
leisure, the lordly proportions of the building. Two great windows, with dark and tarnished curtains, rose
half as high again as the windows of Knowl; and yet Knowl, in its own style, is a fine house. The
door-frames, like the window-frames, were richly carved; the fireplace was in the same massive style, and
the mantelpiece projected with a mass of very rich carving. On the whole I was surprised. I had never slept
in so noble a room before.
The furniture, I must confess, was by no means on a par with the architectural pretensions of the apartment.
A French bed, a piece of carpet about three yards square, a small table, two chairs, a toilet table—no
wardrobe—no chest of drawers. The furniture painted white, and of the light and diminutive kind, was
particularly ill adapted to the scale and style of the apartment, one end only of which it occupied, and that
but sparsely, leaving the rest of the chamber in the nakedness of a stately desolation. [pg 190] My cousin
Milly ran away to report progress to ’the Governor,’ as she termed Uncle Silas.
- 197 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, Miss Maud, I never did expect to see the like o’ that!’ exclaimed honest Mary Quince, ’Did you ever
see such a young lady? She’s no more like one o’ the family than I am. Law bless us! and what’s she
dressed like? Well, well, well!’ And Mary, with a rueful shake of her head, clicked her tongue pathetically
to the back of her teeth, while I could not forbear laughing.
’And such a scrap o’ furniture! Well, well, well!’ and the same ticking of the tongue followed.
But, in a few minutes, back came Cousin Milly, and, with a barbarous sort of curiosity, assisted in
unpacking my trunks, and stowing away the treasures, on which she ventured a variety of admiring
criticisms, in the presses which, like cupboards, filled recesses in the walls, with great oak doors, the keys of
which were in them.
As I was making my hurried toilet, she entertained me now and then with more strictly personal criticisms.
’Your hair’s a shade darker than mine—it’s none the better o’ that though—is it? Mine’s said to be the right
shade. I don’t know—what do you say?’
’I wish my hands was as white though—you do lick me there; but it’s all gloves, and I never could abide
’em. I think I’ll try though—they are very white, sure.’
’I wonder which is the prettiest, you or me? I don’t know, I’m sure—which do you think?’
I laughed outright at this challenge, and she blushed a little, and for the first time seemed for a moment a
little shy.
’Well, you are a half an inch longer than me, I think—don’t you?’
I was fully an inch taller, so I had no difficulty in making the proposed admission.
’Well, you do look handsome! doesn’t she, Quinzy, lass? but your frock comes down almost to your
heels—it does.’
And she glanced from mine to hers, and made a little kick up with the heel of the navvy boot to assist her in
measuring the comparative distance.
- 198 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Maybe mine’s a thought too short?’ she suggested. ’Who’s [pg 191] there? Oh! it’s you, is it?’ she cried as
Mother Hubbard appeared at the door. ’Come in, L’Amour—don’t you know, lass, you’re always
welcome?’
She had come to let us know that Uncle Silas would be happy to see me whenever I was ready; and that my
cousin Millicent would conduct me to the room where he awaited me.
In an instant all the comic sensations awakened by my singular cousin’s eccentricities vanished, and I was
thrilled with awe. I was about to see in the flesh—faded, broken, aged, but still identical—that being who
had been the vision and the problem of so many years of my short life.
CHAPTER XXXII
UNCLE SILAS
I thought my odd cousin was also impressed with a kind of awe, though different in degree from mine, for a
shade overcast her face, and she was silent as we walked side by side along the gallery, accompanied by the
crone who carried the candle which lighted us to the door of that apartment which I may call Uncle Silas’s
presence chamber.
’Mind how you make a noise; the governor’s as sharp as a weasel, and nothing vexes him like that.’
She was herself toppling along on tiptoe. We paused at a door near the head of the great staircase, and
L’Amour knocked timidly with her rheumatic knuckles.
A voice, clear and penetrating, from within summoned us to enter. The old woman opened the door, and the
next moment I was in the presence of Uncle Silas.
- 199 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
At the far end of a handsome wainscoted room, near the hearth in which a low fire was burning, beside a
small table on which stood four waxlights, in tall silver candlesticks, sat a singular-looking old man.
[pg 192]
The dark wainscoting behind him, and the vastness of the room, in the remoter parts of which the light
which fell strongly upon his face and figure expended itself with hardly any effect, exhibited him with the
forcible and strange relief of a finely painted Dutch portrait. For some time I saw nothing but him.
A face like marble, with a fearful monumental look, and, for an old man, singularly vivid strange eyes, the
singularity of which rather grew upon me as I looked; for his eyebrows were still black, though his hair
descended from his temples in long locks of the purest silver and fine as silk, nearly to his shoulders.
He rose, tall and slight, a little stooped, all in black, with an ample black velvet tunic, which was rather a
gown than a coat, with loose sleeves, showing his snowy shirt some way up the arm, and a pair of wrist
buttons, then quite out of fashion, which glimmered aristocratically with diamonds.
I know I can’t convey in words an idea of this apparition, drawn as it seemed in black and white, venerable,
bloodless, fiery-eyed, with its singular look of power, and an expression so bewildering—was it derision, or
anguish, or cruelty, or patience?
The wild eyes of this strange old man were fixed upon me as he rose; an habitual contraction, which in
certain lights took the character of a scowl, did not relax as he advanced toward me with his thin-lipped
smile. He said something in his clear, gentle, but cold voice, the import of which I was too much agitated to
catch, and he took both my hands in his, welcomed me with a courtly grace which belonged to another age,
and led me affectionately, with many inquiries which I only half comprehended, to a chair near his own.
’I need not introduce my daughter; she has saved me that mortification. You’ll find her, I believe,
good-natured and affectionate; au reste, I fear a very rustic Miranda, and fitted rather for the society of
Caliban than of a sick old Prospero. Is it not so, Millicent?’
The old man paused sarcastically for an answer, with his eyes fixed severely on my odd cousin, who
blushed and looked uneasily to me for a hint.
- 200 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Very good, my dear,’ he replied, with a little mocking bow. ’You see, my dear Maud, what a
Shakespearean you have got [pg 193] for a cousin. It’s plain, however, she has made acquaintance with
some of our dramatists: she has studied the rôle of Miss Hoyden so perfectly.’
It was not a reasonable peculiarity of my uncle that he resented, with a good deal of playful acrimony, my
poor cousin’s want of education, for which, if he were not to blame, certainly neither was she.
’You see her, poor thing, a result of all the combined disadvantages of want of refined education, refined
companionship, and, I fear, naturally, of refined tastes; but a sojourn at a good French conventual school
will do wonders, and I hope to manage by-and-by. In the meantime we jest at our misfortunes, and love one
another, I hope, cordially.’
He extended his thin, white hand with a chilly smile towards Milly, who bounced up, and took it with a
frightened look; and he repeated, holding her hand rather slightly I thought, ’Yes, I hope, very cordially,’
and then turning again to me, he put it over the arm of his chair, and let it go, as a man might drop
something he did not want from a carriage window.
Having made this apology for poor Milly, who was plainly bewildered, he passed on, to her and my relief,
to other topics, every now and then expressing his fears that I was fatigued, and his anxiety that I should
partake of some supper or tea; but these solicitudes somehow seemed to escape his remembrance almost as
soon as uttered; and he maintained the conversation, which soon degenerated into a close, and to me a
painful examination, respecting my dear father’s illness and its symptoms, upon which I could give no
information, and his habits, upon which I could.
Perhaps he fancied that there might be some family predisposition to the organic disease of which his
brother died, and that his questions were directed rather to the prolonging of his own life than to the better
understanding of my dear father’s death.
How little was there left to this old man to make life desirable, and yet how keenly, I afterwards found, he
clung to it. Have we not all of us seen those to whom life was not only undesirable, but positively
painful—a mere series of bodily torments, yet hold to it with a desperate and pitiable tenacity—old children
or young, it is all the same.
- 201 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 194]
See how a sleepy child will put off the inevitable departure for bed. The little creature’s eyes blink and
stare, and it needs constant jogging to prevent his nodding off into the slumber which nature craves. His
waking is a pain; he is quite worn out, and peevish, and stupid, and yet he implores a respite, and deprecates
repose, and vows he is not sleepy, even to the moment when his mother takes him in her arms, and carries
him, in a sweet slumber, to the nursery. So it is with us old children of earth and the great sleep of death,
and nature our kind mother. Just so reluctantly we part with consciousness, the picture is, even to the last, so
interesting; the bird in the hand, though sick and moulting, so inestimably better than all the brilliant tenants
of the bush. We sit up, yawning, and blinking, and stupid, the whole scene swimming before us, and the
stories and music humming off into the sound of distant winds and waters. It is not time yet; we are not
fatigued; we are good for another hour still, and so protesting against bed, we falter and drop into the
dreamless sleep which nature assigns to fatigue and satiety.
He then spoke a little eulogy of his brother, very polished, and, indeed, in a kind of way, eloquent. He
possessed in a high degree that accomplishment, too little cultivated, I think, by the present generation, of
expressing himself with perfect precision and fluency. There was, too, a good deal of slight illustrative
quotation, and a sprinkling of French flowers, over his conversation, which gave to it a character at once
elegant and artificial. It was all easy, light, and pointed, and being quite new to me, had a wonderful
fascination.
He then told me that Bartram was the temple of liberty, that the health of a whole life was founded in a few
years of youth, air, and exercise, and that accomplishments, at least, if not education, should wait upon
health. Therefore, while at Bartram, I should dispose of my time quite as I pleased, and the more I plundered
the garden and gipsied in the woodlands, the better.
Then he told me what a miserable invalid he was, and how the doctors interfered with his frugal tastes. A
glass of beer and a mutton chop—his ideal of a dinner—he dared not touch. They made him drink light
wines, which he detested, and live upon [pg 195] those artificial abominations all liking for which vanishes
with youth.
There stood on a side-table, in its silver coaster, a long-necked Rhenish bottle, and beside it a thin pink
glass, and he quivered his fingers in a peevish way toward them.
- 202 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
But unless he found himself better very soon, he would take his case into his own hands, and try the dietary
to which nature pointed.
He waved his fingers toward his bookcases, and told me his books were altogether at my service during my
stay; but this promise ended, I must confess, disappointingly. At last, remarking that I must be fatigued, he
rose, and kissed me with a solemn tenderness, placed his hand upon what I now perceived to be a large
Bible, with two broad silk markers, red and gold, folded in it—the one, I might conjecture, indicating the
place in the Old, the other in the New Testament. It stood on the small table that supported the waxlights,
with a handsome cut bottle of eau-de-cologne, his gold and jewelled pencil-case, and his chased repeater,
chain, and seals, beside it. There certainly were no indications of poverty in Uncle Silas’s room; and he said
impressively—
’Remember that book; in it your father placed his trust, in it he found his reward, in it lives my only hope;
consult it, my beloved niece, day and night, as the oracle of life.’
Then he laid his thin hand on my head, and blessed me, and then kissed my forehead.
’No—a!’ exclaimed Cousin Milly’s lusty voice. I had quite forgotten her presence, and looked at her with a
little start. She was seated on a very high old-fashioned chair; she had palpably been asleep; her round eyes
were blinking and staring glassily at us; and her white legs and navvy boots were dangling in the air.
’Have you anything to remark about Noah?’ enquired her father, with a polite inclination and an ironical
interest.
’No—a,’ she repeated in the same blunt accents; ’I didn’t snore; did I? No—a.’
The old man smiled and shrugged a little at me—it was the smile of disgust.
’Good night, my dear Maud;’ and turning to her, he said, [pg 196] with a peculiar gentle sharpness, ’Had not
you better wake, my dear, and try whether your cousin would like some supper?’
So he accompanied us to the door, outside which we found L’Amour’s candle awaiting us.
’I’m awful afraid of the Governor, I am. Did I snore that time?’
- 203 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No, dear; at least, I did not hear it,’ I said, unable to repress a smile.
We found poor Mary Quince dozing over the fire; but we soon had tea and other good things, of which
Milly partook with a wonderful appetite.
’I was in a qualm about it,’ said Milly, who by this time was quite herself again. ’When he spies me
a-napping, maybe he don’t fetch me a prod with his pencil-case over the head. Odd! girl, it is sore.’
When I contrasted the refined and fluent old gentleman whom I had just left, with this amazing specimen of
young ladyhood, I grew sceptical almost as to the possibility of her being his child.
I was to learn, however, how little she had, I won’t say of his society, but even of his presence—that she had
no domestic companion of the least pretensions to education—that she ran wild about the place—never,
except in church, so much as saw a person of that rank to which she was born—and that the little she knew
of reading and writing had been picked up, in desultory half-hours, from a person who did not care a pin
about her manners or decorum, and perhaps rather enjoyed her grotesqueness—and that no one who was
willing to take the least trouble about her was competent to make her a particle more refined than I saw
her—the wonder ceased. We don’t know how little is heritable, and how much simply training, until we
encounter some-such spectacle as that of my poor cousin Milly.
When I lay down in my bed and reviewed the day, it seemed like a month of wonders. Uncle Silas was
always before me; the voice so silvery for an old man—so preternaturally soft; the manners so sweet, so
gentle; the aspect, smiling, suffering, spectral. It was no longer a shadow; I had now seen him in the flesh.
But, after all, was he more than a shadow to me? When I closed my eyes I saw him before me still, in
necromantic black, ashy with a pallor on which I looked with fear and pain, a face so [pg 197] dazzlingly
pale, and those hollow, fiery, awful eyes! It sometimes seemed as if the curtain opened, and I had seen a
ghost.
I had seen him; but he was still an enigma and a marvel. The living face did not expound the past, any more
than the portrait portended the future. He was still a mystery and a vision; and thinking of these things I fell
asleep.
- 204 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Mary Quince, who slept in the dressing-room, the door of which was close to my bed, and lay open to
secure me against ghosts, called me up; and the moment I knew where I was I jumped up, and peeped
eagerly from the window. It commanded the avenue and court-yard; but we were many windows removed
from that over the hall-door, and immediately beneath ours lay the two giant lime trees, prostrate and
uprooted, which I had observed as we drove up the night before.
I saw more clearly in the bright light of morning the signs of neglect and almost of dilapidation which had
struck me as I approached. The court-yard was tufted over with grass, seldom from year to year crushed by
the carriage-wheels, or trodden by the feet of visitors. This melancholy verdure thickened where the area
was more remote from the centre; and under the windows, and skirting the walls to the left, was reinforced
by a thick grove of nettles. The avenue was all grass-grown, except in the very centre, where a narrow track
still showed the roadway The handsome carved balustrade of the court-yard was discoloured with lichens,
and in two places gapped and broken; and the air of decay was heightened by the fallen trees, among whose
sprays and yellow leaves the small birds were hopping.
Before my toilet was completed, in marched my cousin Milly. We were to breakfast alone that morning,
’and so much the better,’ she told me. Sometimes the Governor ordered her to breakfast with him, and
’never left off chaffing her’ till his newspaper came, and ’sometimes he said such things he made her cry,’
and then he only ’boshed her more,’ and packed her away to her room; but she was by chalks nicer than
him, talk as he might. ’Was not she nicer? was not she? was not she?’ Upon this point she was so strong and
urgent that I was obliged to reply by a protest against awarding the palm of elegance between parent and
child, and declaring I liked her very much, which I attested by a kiss.
’I know right well which of us you do think’s the nicest, and [pg 198] no mistake, only you’re afraid of him;
and he had no business boshing me last night before you. I knew he was at it, though I couldn’t twig him
altogether; but wasn’t he a sneak, now, wasn’t he?’
This was a still more awkward question; so I kissed her again, and said she must never ask me to say of my
uncle in his absence anything I could not say to his face.
At which speech she stared at me for a while, and then treated me to one of her hearty laughs, after which
she seemed happier, and gradually grew into better humour with her father.
- 205 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Sometimes, when the curate calls, he has me up—for he’s as religious as six, he is—and they read Bible
and prays, ho—don’t they? You’ll have that, lass, like me, to go through; and maybe I don’t hate it; oh, no!’
We breakfasted in a small room, almost a closet, off the great parlour, which was evidently quite disused.
Nothing could be homelier than our equipage, or more shabby than the furniture of the little apartment. Still,
somehow, I liked it. It was a total change; but one likes ’roughing it’ a little at first.
CHAPTER XXXIII
I had not time to explore this noble old house as my curiosity prompted; for Milly was in such a fuss to set
out for the ’blackberry dell’ that I saw little more than just so much as I necessarily traversed in making my
way to and from my room.
The actual decay of the house had been prevented by my dear father; and the roof, windows, masonry, and
carpentry had all been kept in repair. But short of indications of actual ruin, there are many manifestations
of poverty and neglect which impress with a feeling of desolation. It was plain that not nearly a tithe of this
great house was inhabited; long corridors and galleries stretched away in dust and silence, and were crossed
[pg 199] by others, whose dark arches inspired me in the distance with an awful sort of sadness. It was
plainly one of those great structures in which you might easily lose yourself, and with a pleasing terror it
reminded me of that delightful old abbey in Mrs. Radcliffe’s romance, among whose silent staircases, dim
passages, and long suites of lordly, but forsaken chambers, begirt without by the sombre forest, the family
of La Mote secured a gloomy asylum.
My cousin Milly and I, however, were bent upon an open-air ramble, and traversing several passages, she
conducted me to a door which led us out upon a terrace overgrown with weeds, and by a broad flight of
steps we descended to the level of the grounds beneath. Then on, over the short grass, under the noble trees,
we walked; Milly in high good-humour, and talking away volubly, in her short garment, navvy boots, and a
- 206 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
weather-beaten hat. She carried a stick in her gloveless hand. Her conversation was quite new to me, and
resembled very much what I would have fancied the holiday recollections of a schoolboy; and the language
in which it was sustained was sometimes so outlandish, that I was forced to laugh outright—a demonstration
which she plainly did not like.
Her talk was about the great jumps she had made—how she snow-balled the chaps’ in winter—how she
could slide twice the length of her stick beyond ’Briddles, the cow-boy.’
The grounds were delightfully wild and neglected. But we had now passed into a vast park beautifully
varied with hollows and uplands, and such glorious old timber massed and scattered over its slopes and
levels. Among these, we got at last into a picturesque dingle; the grey rocks peeped from among the ferns
and wild flowers, and the steps of soft sward along its sides were dark in the shadows of silver-stemmed
birch, and russet thorn, and oak, under which, in the vaporous night, the Erl-king and his daughter might
glide on their aërial horses.
In the lap of this pleasant dell were the finest blackberry bushes, I think, I ever saw, bearing fruit quite
fabulous; and plucking these, and chatting, we rambled on very pleasantly.
I had first thought of Milly’s absurdities, to which, in description, I cannot do justice, simply because so
many details have, by distance of time, escaped my recollection. But her ways and [pg 200] her talk were so
indescribably grotesque that she made me again and again quiver with suppressed laughter.
But there was a pitiable and even a melancholy meaning underlying the burlesque.
This creature, with no more education than a dairy-maid, I gradually discovered had fine natural aptitudes
for accomplishment—a very sweet voice, and wonderfully delicate ear, and a talent for drawing which quite
threw mine into the shade. It was really astonishing.
Poor Milly, in all her life, had never read three books, and hated to think of them. One, over which she was
wont to yawn and sigh, and stare fatiguedly for an hour every Sunday, by command of the Governor, was a
stout volume of sermons of the earlier school of George III., and a drier collection you can’t fancy. I don’t
think she read anything else. But she had, notwithstanding, ten times the cleverness of half the circulating
library misses one meets with. Besides all this, I had a long sojourn before me at Bartram-Haugh, and I had
- 207 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
learned from Milly, as I had heard before, what a perennial solitude it was, with a ludicrous fear of learning
Milly’s preposterous dialect, and turning at last into something like her. So I resolved to do all I could for
her—teach her whatever I knew, if she would allow me—and gradually, if possible, effect some civilising
changes in her language, and, as they term it in boarding-schools, her demeanour.
But I must pursue at present our first day’s ramble in what was called Bartram Chase. People can’t go on
eating blackberries always; so after a while we resumed our walk along this pretty dell, which gradually
expanded into a wooded valley—level beneath and enclosed by irregular uplands, receding, as it were, in
mimic bays and harbours at some points, and running out at others into broken promontories, ending in
clumps of forest trees.
Just where the glen which we had been traversing expanded into this broad, but wooded valley, it was
traversed by a high and close paling, which, although it looked decayed, was still very strong.
In this there was a wooden gate, rudely but strongly constructed, and at the side we were approaching stood
a girl, who [pg 201] was leaning against the post, with one arm resting on the top of the gate.
This girl was neither tall nor short—taller than she looked at a distance; she had not a slight waist; sooty
black was her hair, with a broad forehead, perpendicular but low; she had a pair of very fine, dark, lustrous
eyes, and no other good feature—unless I may so call her teeth, which were very white and even. Her face
was rather short, and swarthy as a gipsy’s; observant and sullen too; and she did not move, only eyed us
negligently from under her dark lashes as we drew near. Altogether a not unpicturesque figure, with a
dusky, red petticoat of drugget, and tattered jacket of bottle-green stuff, with short sleeves, which showed
her brown arms from the elbow.
’He’s the miller—see, yonder it is,’ and she pointed to a very pretty feature in the landscape, a windmill,
crowning the summit of a hillock which rose suddenly above the level of the treetops, like an island in the
centre of the valley.
- 208 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No—a, Beauty; it baint,’ replied the girl, loweringly, and without stirring.
’And what’s gone with the stile?’ demanded Milly, aghast. ’It’s tore away from the paling!’
’Well, so it be,’ replied the wood nymph in the red petticoat, showing her fine teeth with a lazy grin.
’’Twas old Pegtop, your father, did it,’ cried Milly, in rising wrath.
’That’s it—the gate locked,’ she repeated, sulkily, with a defiant side-glance at Milly.
’At t’other side, somewhere; how should I know where he be?’ she replied.
’Here it be, lass,’ she answered, striking her hand on her pocket.
[pg 202]
’And how durst you stay us here? Unlock it, huzzy, this minute!’ cried Milly, with a stamp.
’Well, I won’t.’
I expected that Milly would have flown into a frenzy at this direct defiance, but she looked instead puzzled
and curious—the girl’s unexpected audacity bewildered her.
- 209 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Why, you fool, I could get over the paling as soon as look at you, but I won’t. What’s come over you?
Open the gate, I say, or I’ll make you.’
’Do let her alone, dear,’ I entreated, fearing a mutual assault. ’She has been ordered, may be, not to open it.
Is it so, my good girl?’
’Well, thou’rt not the biggest fool o’ the two,’ she observed, commendatively, ’thou’st hit it, lass.’
’Fayther.’
’Old Pegtop. Well, that’s summat to laugh at, it is—our servant a-shutting us out of our own grounds.’
With these words the girl made a spring on the hasp of the padlock, and then got easily over the gate.
’Can’t you do that, cousin?’ whispered Milly to me, with an impatient nudge. ’I wish you’d try.’
’Lookee, lass, ’twill be an ill day’s work for thee when I tell the Governor,’ said Milly, addressing the girl,
who stood on a log of timber at the other side, regarding us with a sullen composure.
’And why not, huzzy?’ demanded my cousin, who was less incensed at the affront than I expected. All this
time I was urging Milly in vain to come away.
’Yon lass is no wild cat, like thee—that’s why,’ said the sturdy portress.
- 210 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 203]
’And I’ll gi’ thee another,’ she answered, with a vicious wag of the head.
’But we must not be beat,’ whispered she, vehemently, catching my arm; ’and ye shall get over, and see
what I will gi’ her!’
’Then I’ll break the door, for ye shall come through,’ exclaimed Milly, kicking the stout paling with her
ponderous boot.
’Purr it, purr it, purr it!’ cried the lass in the red petticoat with a grin.
’Do you know who this lady is?’ cried Milly, suddenly.
’She’s my cousin Maud—Miss Ruthyn of Knowl—and she’s a deal richer than the Queen; and the
Governor’s taking care of her; and he’ll make old Pegtop bring you to reason.’
’You positively must come,’ I said, drawing her away with me.
’You’ll not come in that much,’ she answered, surlily, measuring an infinitesimal distance on her finger
with her thumb, which she pinched against it, the gesture ending with a snap of defiance, and a smile that
showed her fine teeth.
- 211 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Faire away; I’ll shy wi’ ye as long as ye like, lass; take heed o’ yerself;’ and Beauty picked up a round
stone as large as a cricket ball.
With difficulty I got Milly away without an exchange of missiles, and much disgusted at my want of zeal
and agility.
’Well, come along, cousin, I know an easy way by the river, when it’s low,’ answered Milly. ’She’s a
brute—is not she?’
As we receded, we saw the girl slowly wending her way towards the old thatched cottage, which showed its
gable from the side of a little rugged eminence embowered in spreading trees, and dangling and twirling
from its string on the end of her finger the key for which a battle had so nearly been fought.
The stream was low enough to make our flank movement round the end of the paling next it quite easy, and
so we pursued [pg 204] our way, and Milly’s equanimity returned, and our ramble grew very pleasant again.
Our path lay by the river bank, and as we proceeded, the dwarf timber was succeeded by grander trees,
which crowded closer and taller, and, at last, the scenery deepened into solemn forest, and a sudden sweep
in the river revealed the beautiful ruin of a steep old bridge, with the fragments of a gate-house on the
farther side.
’Oh, Milly darling!’ I exclaimed, ’what a beautiful drawing this would make! I should so like to make a
sketch of it.’
’So it would. Make a picture—do!—here’s a stone that’s pure and flat to sit upon, and you look very tired.
Do make it, and I’ll sit by you.’
’Yes, Milly, I am tired, a little, and I will sit down; but we must wait for another day to make the picture, for
we have neither pencil nor paper. But it is much too pretty to be lost; so let us come again to-morrow.’
’To-morrow be hanged! you’ll do it to-day, bury-me-wick, but you shall; I’m wearying to see you make a
picture, and I’ll fetch your conundrums out o’ your drawer, for do’t you shall.’
- 212 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXXIV
ZAMIEL
It was all vain my remonstrating. She vowed that by crossing the stepping-stones close by she could, by a
short cut, reach the house, and return with my pencils and block-book in a quarter of an hour. Away then,
with many a jump and fling, scampered Milly’s queer white stockings and navvy boots across the irregular
and precarious stepping-stones, over which I dared not follow her; so I was fain to return to the stone so
’pure and flat,’ on which I sat, enjoying the grand sylvan solitude, the dark background and the grey bridge
mid-way, so tall and slim, across whose ruins a sunbeam glimmered, and the gigantic forest trees [pg 205]
that slumbered round, opening here and there in dusky vistas, and breaking in front into detached and
solemn groups. It was the setting of a dream of romance.
It would have been the very spot in which to read a volume of German folk-lore, and the darkening
colonnades and silent nooks of the forest seemed already haunted with the voices and shadows of those
charming elves and goblins.
As I sat here enjoying the solitude and my fancies among the low branches of the wood, at my right I heard
a crashing, and saw a squat broad figure in a stained and tattered military coat, and loose short trousers, one
limb of which flapped about a wooden leg. He was forcing himself through. His face was rugged and
wrinkled, and tanned to the tint of old oak; his eyes black, beadlike, and fierce, and a shock of sooty hair
escaped from under his battered wide-awake nearly to his shoulders. This forbidding-looking person came
stumping and jerking along toward me, whisking his stick now and then viciously in the air, and giving his
fell of hair a short shake, like a wild bull preparing to attack.
I stood up involuntarily with a sense of fear and surprise, almost fancying I saw in that wooden-legged old
soldier, the forest demon who haunted Der Freischütz.
- 213 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So he approached shouting—
And he drew near panting, and sometimes tugging angrily in his haste at his wooden leg, which sunk now
and then deeper than was convenient in the sod. This exertion helped to anger him, and when he halted
before me, his dark face smirched with smoke and dust, and the nostrils of his flat drooping nose expanded
and quivered as he panted, like the gills of a fish; an angrier or uglier face it would not be easy to fancy.
’Ye’ll all come when ye like, will ye? and do nout but what pleases yourselves, won’t you? And who’rt
thou? Dost ’eer—who are ye, I say; and what the deil seek ye in the woods here? Come, bestir thee!’
If his wide mouth and great tobacco-stained teeth, his scowl, and loud discordant tones were intimidating,
they were also extremely irritating. The moment my spirit was roused, my courage came.
[pg 206]
’I am Miss Ruthyn of Knowl, and Mr. Silas Ruthyn, your master, is my uncle.’
’Hoo!’ he exclaimed more gently, ’an’ if Silas be thy uncle thou’lt be come to live wi’ him, and thou’rt she
as come overnight—eh?’
’And what make ye alone here? and how was I to know’t, an’ Milly not wi’ ye, nor no one? But Maud or no
Maud, I wouldn’t let the Dooke hisself set foot inside the palin’ without Silas said let him. And you may tell
Silas them’s the words o’ Dickon Hawkes, and I’ll stick to’m—and what’s more I’ll tell him myself—I will;
I’ll tell him there be no use o’ my striving and straining hee, day an’ night and night and day, watchin’ again
poachers, and thieves, and gipsies, and they robbing lads, if rules won’t be kep, and folk do jist as they
pleases. Dang it, lass, thou’rt in luck I didn’t heave a brick at thee when I saw thee first.’
’So do, and and ’appen thou’lt find thyself in the wrong box, lass; thou canst na’ say I set the dogs arter
thee, nor cau’d thee so much as a wry name, nor heave a stone at thee—did I? Well? and where’s the
complaint then?’
- 214 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, I make no objections, mind. I’m takin’ thy word—thou’rt Maud Ruthyn—’appen thou be’st and
’appen thou baint. I’m not aweer on’t, but I takes thy word, and all I want to know’s just this, did Meg open
the gate to thee?’
I made him no answer, and to my great relief I saw Milly striding and skipping across the unequal
stepping-stones.
’Hallo, Pegtop! what are you after now?’ she cried, as she drew near.
’This man has been extremely impertinent. You know him, Milly?’ I said.
’Why that’s Pegtop Dickon. Dirty old Hawkes that never was washed. I tell you, lad, ye’ll see what the
Governor thinks o’t—a-ha! He’ll talk to you.’
’I done or said nout—not but I should, and there’s the fack—she can’t deny’t; she hadn’t a hard word from
I; and I don’t [pg 207] care the top o’ that thistle what no one says—not I. But I tell thee, Milly, I stopped
some o’ thy pranks, and I’ll stop more. Ye’ll be shying no more stones at the cattle.’
’Tell your tales, and welcome, cried Milly. ’I wish I was here when you jawed cousin. If Winny was here
she’d catch you by the timber toe and put you on your back.’
’Ay, she’ll be a good un yet if she takes arter thee,’ retorted the old man with a fierce sneer.
’Drop it, and get away wi’ ye,’ cried she, ’or maybe I’d call Winny to smash your timber leg for you.’
’A-ha! there’s more on’t. She’s a sweet un. Isn’t she?’ he replied sardonically.
’You did not like it last Easter, when Winny broke it with a kick.’
’’Twas no such thing—’twas Winny did it—and he laid on his back for a week while carpenter made him a
new one.’ And Milly laughed hilariously.
- 215 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I’ll fool no more wi’ ye, losing my time; I won’t; but mind ye, I’ll speak wi’ Silas.’ And going away he put
his hand to his crumpled wide-awake, and said to me with a surly difference—
’Good evening, Miss Ruthyn—good evening, ma’am—and ye’ll please remember, I did not mean nout to
vex thee.’
And so he swaggered away, jerking and waddling over the sward, and was soon lost in the wood.
’It’s well he’s a little bit frightened—I never saw him so angry, I think; he is awful mad.’
’I hate him. We were twice as pleasant with poor Tom Driver—he never meddled with any one, and was
always in liquor; Old Gin was the name he went by. But this brute—I do hate him—he comes from Wigan, I
think, and he’s always spoiling sport—and he whops Meg—that’s Beauty, you know, and I don’t think
she’d be half as bad only for him. Listen to him whistlin’.’
’I declare if he isn’t callin’ the dogs! Climb up here, I tell ye,’ and we climbed up the slanting trunk of a
great walnut [pg 208] tree, and strained our eyes in the direction from which we expected the onset of
Pegtop’s vicious pack.
’Well, I don’t think he would do that, after all—hardly; but he is a brute, sure!’
’And that dark girl who would not let us through, is his daughter, is she?’
’Yes, that’s Meg—Beauty, I christened her, when I called him Beast; but I call him Pegtop now, and she’s
Beauty still, and that’s the way o’t.’
’Come, sit down now, an’ make your picture,’ she resumed so soon as we had dismounted from our position
of security.
’I’m afraid I’m hardly in the vein. I don’t think I could draw a straight line. My hand trembles.’
- 216 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I wish you could, Maud,’ said Milly, with a look so wistful and entreating, that considering the excursion
she had made for the pencils, I could not bear to disappoint her.
’Well, Milly, we must only try; and if we fail we can’t help it. Sit you down beside me and I’ll tell you why
I begin with one part and not another, and you’ll see how I make trees and the river, and—yes, that pencil, it
is hard and answers for the fine light lines; but we must begin at the beginning, and learn to copy drawings
before we attempt real views like this. And if you wish it, Milly, I’m resolved to teach you everything I
know, which, after all, is not a great deal, and we shall have such fun making sketches of the same
landscapes, and then comparing.’
And so on, Milly, quite delighted, and longing to begin her course of instruction, sat down beside me in a
rapture, and hugged and kissed me so heartily that we were very near rolling together off the stone on which
we were seated. Her boisterous delight and good-nature helped to restore me, and both laughing heartily
together, I commenced my task.
’Dear me! who’s that?’ I exclaimed suddenly, as looking up from my block-book I saw the figure of a slight
man in the careless morning-dress of a gentleman, crossing the ruinous bridge in our direction, with
considerable caution, upon the precarious footing of the battlement, which alone offered an unbroken
passage.
This was a day of apparitions! Milly recognised him instantly. The gentleman was Mr. Carysbroke. He had
taken The [pg 209] Grange only for a year. He lived quite to himself, and was very good to the poor, and
was the only gentleman, for ever so long, who had visited at Bartram, and oddly enough nowhere else. But
he wanted leave to cross through the grounds, and having obtained it, had repeated his visit, partly induced,
no doubt, by the fact that Bartram boasted no hospitalities, and that there was no risk of meeting the county
folk there.
With a stout walking-stick in his hand, and a short shooting-coat, and a wide-awake hat in much better trim
than Zamiel’s, he emerged from the copse that covered the bridge, walking at a quick but easy pace.
’He’ll be goin’ to see old Snoddles, I guess,’ said Milly, looking a little frightened and curious; for Milly, I
need not say, was a bumpkin, and stood in awe of this gentleman’s good-breeding, though she was as brave
as a lion, and would have fought the Philistines at any odds, with the jawbone of an ass.
- 217 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
But he did, and raising his hat, with a cheerful smile, that showed very white teeth, he paused.
I raised my head suddenly as he spoke, from habit appropriating the address; it was so marked that he raised
his hat respectfully to me, and then continued to Milly—
’Mr. Ruthyn, I hope, quite well? but I need hardly ask, you seem so happy. Will you kindly tell him, that I
expect the book I mentioned in a day or two, and when it comes I’ll either send or bring it to him
immediately?’
Milly and I were standing, by this time, but she only stared at him, tongue-tied, her cheeks rather flushed,
and her eyes very round, and to facilitate the dialogue, as I suppose, he said again—
Still no response from Milly, and I, provoked, though myself a little shy, made answer—
’My uncle, Mr. Ruthyn, is very well, thank you,’ and I felt that I blushed as I spoke.
’Ah, pray excuse me, may I take a great liberty? you are Miss Ruthyn, of Knowl? Will you think me very
impertinent—I’m afraid you will—if I venture to introduce myself? My name is Carysbroke, and I had the
honour of knowing poor Mr. Ruthyn [pg 210] when I was quite a little boy, and he has shown a kindness for
me since, and I hope you will pardon the liberty I fear I’ve taken. I think my friend, Lady Knollys, too, is a
relation of yours; what a charming person she is!’
’Oh, is not she? such a darling!’ I said, and then blushed at my outspoken affection.
’You know whatever I think, I dare not quite say that; but frankly I can quite understand it. She preserves
her youth so wonderfully, and her fun and her good-nature are so entirely girlish. What a sweet view you
have selected,’ he continued, changing all at once. ’I’ve stood just at this point so often to look back at that
exquisite old bridge. Do you observe—you’re an artist, I see—something very peculiar in that tint of the
grey, with those odd cross stains of faded red and yellow?’
- 218 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I do, indeed; I was just remarking the peculiar beauty of the colouring—was not I, Milly?’
Milly stared at me, and uttered an alarmed ’Yes,’ and looked as if she had been caught in a robbery.
’Yes, and you have so very peculiar a background,’ he resumed. ’It was better before the storm though; but
it is very good still.’
Then a little pause, and ’Do you know this country at all?’ rather suddenly.
’No, not in the least—that is, I’ve only had the drive to this place; but what I did see interested me very
much.’
’You will be charmed with it when you know it better—the very place for an artist. I’m a wretched scribbler
myself, and I carry this little book in my pocket,’ and he laughed deprecatingly while he drew forth a thin
fishing-book, as it looked. ’They are mere memoranda, you see. I walk so much and come unexpectedly on
such pretty nooks and studies, I just try to make a note of them, but it is really more writing than sketching;
my sister says it is a cipher which nobody but myself understands. However, I’ll try and explain just
two—because you really ought to go and see the places. Oh, no; not that,’ he laughed, as accidentally the
page blew over, ’that’s the Cat and Fiddle, a curious little pot-house, where they gave me some very good
ale one day.’
Milly at this exhibited some uneasy tokens of being about to [pg 211] speak, but not knowing what might be
coming, I hastened to observe on the spirited little sketches to which he meant to draw my attention.
’I want to show you only the places within easy reach—a short ride or drive.’
So he proceeded to turn over two or three, in addition to the two he had at first proposed, and then another;
then a little sketch just tinted, and really quite a charming little gem, of Cousin Monica’s pretty gabled old
house; and every subject had its little criticism, or its narrative, or adventure.
As he was about returning this little sketch-book to his pocket, still chatting to me, he suddenly recollected
poor Milly, who was looking rather lowering; but she brightened a good deal as he presented it to her, with
a little speech which she palpably misunderstood, for she made one of her odd courtesies, and was about, I
thought, to put it into her large pocket, and accept it as a present.
- 219 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
At his request I allowed him to look at my unfinished sketch of the bridge, and while he was measuring
distances and proportions with his eye, Milly whispered rather angrily to me.
’Lend it to me—and after you! Bury-me-wick if I look at a leaf of it,’ she retorted in high dudgeon. ’Take it,
lass; give it him yourself—I’ll not,’ and she popped it into my hand, and made a sulky step back.
’My cousin is very much obliged,’ I said, returning the book, and smiling for her, and he took it smiling also
and said—
’I think if I had known how very well you draw, Miss Ruthyn, I should have hesitated about showing you
my poor scrawls. But these are not my best, you know; Lady Knollys will tell you that I can really do
better—a great deal better, I think.’
And then with more apologies for what he called his impertinence, he took his leave, and I felt altogether
very much pleased and flattered.
He could not be more than twenty-nine or thirty, I thought, and he was decidedly handsome—that is, his
eyes and teeth, and [pg 212] clear brown complexion were—and there was something distinguished and
graceful in his figure and gesture; and altogether there was the indescribable attraction of intelligence; and I
fancied—though this, of course, was a secret—that from the moment he spoke to us he felt an interest in
me. I am not going to be vain. It was a grave interest, but still an interest, for I could see him studying my
features while I was turning over his sketches, and he thought I saw nothing else. It was flattering, too, his
anxiety that I should think well of his drawing, and referring me to Lady Knollys. Carysbroke—had I ever
heard my dear father mention that name? I could not recollect it. But then he was habitually so silent, that
his not doing so argued nothing.
- 220 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXXV
Mr. Carysbroke amused my fancy sufficiently to prevent my observing Milly’s silence, till we had begun
our return homeward.
’The Grange must be a pretty house, if that little sketch be true; is it far from this?’
’Are you vexed, Milly?’ I asked, for both her tone and looks were angry.
’Well, now, that is rich! Why, look at that fellow, Carysbroke: he took no more notice to me than a dog, and
kep’ talking to you all the time of his pictures, and his walks, and his people. Why, a pig’s better manners
than that.’
’But, Milly dear, you forget, he tried to talk to you, and you would not answer him,’ I expostulated.
’And is not that just what I say—I can’t talk like other folk—ladies, [pg 213] I mean. Every one laughs at
me; an’ I’m dressed like a show, I am. It’s a shame! I saw Polly Shives—what a lady she is, my
eyes!—laughing at me in church last Sunday. I was minded to give her a bit of my mind. An’ I know I’m
queer. It’s a shame, it is. Why should I be so rum? it is a shame! I don’t want to be so, nor it isn’t my fault.’
And poor Milly broke into a flood of tears, and stamped on the ground, and buried her face in her short
frock, which she whisked up to her eyes; and an odder figure of grief I never beheld.
’And I could not make head or tail of what he was saying,’ cried poor Milly through her buff cotton, with a
stamp; ’and you twigged every word o’t. An’ why am I so? It’s a shame—a shame! Oh, ho, ho! it’s a
shame!’
- 221 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’But, my dear Milly, we were talking of drawing, and you have not learned yet, but you shall—I’ll teach
you; and then you’ll understand all about it.’
’An’ every one laughs at me—even you; though you try, Maud, you can scarce keep from laughing
sometimes. I don’t blame you, for I know I’m queer; but I can’t help it; and it’s a shame.’
’Well, my dear Milly, listen to me: if you allow me, I assure you, I’ll teach you all the music and drawing I
know. You have lived very much alone; and, as you say, ladies have a way of speaking of their own that is
different from the talk of other people.’
’Yes, that they have, an’ gentlemen too—like the Governor, and that Carysbroke; and a precious lingo it
is—dang it—why, the devil himself could not understand it; an’ I’m like a fool among you. I could ’most
drown myself. It’s a shame! It is—you know it is.—It’s a shame!’
’But I’ll teach you that lingo too, if you wish it, Milly; and you shall know everything that I know; and I’ll
manage to have your dresses better made.’
By this time she was looking very ruefully, but attentively, in my face, her round eyes and nose swelled, and
her cheeks all wet.
’I think if they were a little longer—yours is longer, you know;’ and the sentence was interrupted by a sob.
’Now, Milly, you must not be crying; if you choose you [pg 214] may be just as the same as any other
lady—and you shall; and you will be very much admired, I can tell you, if only you will take the trouble to
quite unlearn all your odd words and ways, and dress yourself like other people; and I will take care of that
if you let me; and I think you are very clever, Milly; and I know you are very pretty.’
Poor Milly’s blubbered face expanded into a smile in spite of herself; but she shook her head, looking down.
’Noa, noa, Maud, I fear ’twon’t be.’ And indeed it seemed I had proposed to myself a labour of Hercules.
But Milly was really a clever creature, could see quickly, and when her ungainly dialect was mastered,
describe very pleasantly; and if only she would endure the restraint and possessed the industry requisite, I
did not despair, and was resolved at least to do my part.
- 222 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Poor Milly! she was really very grateful, and entered into the project of her education with great zeal, and
with a strange mixture of humility and insubordination.
Milly was in favour of again attacking ’Beauty’s’ position on her return, and forcing a passage from this
side; but I insisted on following the route by which we had arrived, and so we got round the paling by the
river, and were treated to a provoking grin of defiance by ’Beauty,’ who was talking across the gate to a
slim young man, arrayed in fustian, and with an odd-looking cap of rabbit-skin on his head, which, on
seeing us, he pulled sheepishly to the side of his face next to us, as he lounged, with his arm under his chin,
on the top bar of the gate.
After our encounter of to-day, indeed, it was Miss ’Beauty’s’ wont to exhibit a kind of jeering disdain in her
countenance whenever we passed.
I think Milly would have engaged her again, had I not reminded her of her undertaking, and exerted my new
authority.
’Look at that sneak, Pegtop, there, going up the path to the mill. He makes belief now he does not see us;
but he does, though, only he’s afraid we’ll tell the Governor, and he thinks Governor won’t give him his
way with you. I hate that Pegtop: he stopped me o’ riding the cows a year ago, he did.’
I thought Pegtop might have done worse. Indeed it was plain that a total reformation was needed here; and I
was glad to find that poor Milly seemed herself conscious of it; and that [pg 215] her resolution to become
more like other people of her station was not a mere spasm of mortification and jealousy, but a genuine and
very zealous resolve.
I had not half seen this old house of Bartram-Haugh yet. At first, indeed, I had but an imperfect idea of its
extent. There was a range of rooms along one side of the great gallery, with closed window-shutters, and the
doors generally locked. Old L’Amour grew cross when we went into them, although we could see nothing;
and Milly was afraid to open the windows—not that any Bluebeard revelations were apprehended, but
simply because she knew that Uncle Silas’s order was that things should be left undisturbed; and this
boisterous spirit stood in awe of him to a degree which his gentle manners and apparent quietude rendered
quite surprising.
- 223 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
There were in this house, what certainly did not exist at Knowl, and what I have never observed, thought
they may possibly be found in other old houses—I mean, here and there, very high hatches, which we could
only peep over by jumping in the air. They crossed the long corridors and great galleries; and several of
them were turned across and locked, so as to intercept the passage, and interrupt our explorations.
Milly, however, knew a queer little, very steep and dark back stair, which reached the upper floor; so she
and I mounted, and made a long ramble through rooms much lower and ruder in finish than the lordly
chambers we had left below. These commanded various views of the beautiful though neglected grounds;
but on crossing a gallery we entered suddenly a chamber, which looked into a small and dismal quadrangle,
formed by the inner walls of this great house, and of course designed only by the architect to afford the
needful light and air to portions of the structure.
I rubbed the window-pane with my handkerchief and looked out. The surrounding roof was steep and high.
The walls looked soiled and dark. The windows lined with dust and dirt, and the window-stones were in
places tufted with moss, and grass, and groundsel. An arched doorway had opened from the house into this
darkened square, but it was soiled and dusty; and the damp weeds that overgrew the quadrangle drooped
undisturbed against it. It was plain that human footsteps tracked it little, [pg 216] and I gazed into that blind
and sinister area with a strange thrill and sinking.
’What are you afraid of, Maud? you look as ye’d seen a ghost,’ exclaimed Milly, who came to the window
and peeped over my shoulder.
’What business, Maud?—what a plague are ye thinking on?’ demanded Milly, rather amused.
’It was in one of these rooms—maybe this—yes, it certainly was this—for see, the panelling has been pulled
off the wall—that Mr. Charke killed himself.’
I was staring ruefully round the dim chamber, in whose corners the shadows of night were already
gathering.
- 224 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Not as I’m aware on,’ answered she. ’And he killed himself, did he, hanged himself, eh, or blowed his
brains out?’
’He cut his throat in one of these rooms—this one, I’m sure—for your papa had the wainscoting stripped
from the wall to ascertain whether there was any second door through which a murderer could have come;
and you see these walls are stripped, and bear the marks of the woodwork that has been removed,’ I
answered.
’Well, that was awful! I don’t know how they have pluck to cut their throats; if I was doing it, I’d like best
to put a pistol to my head and fire, like the young gentleman did, they say, in Deadman’s Hollow. But the
fellows that cut their throats, they must be awful game lads, I’m thinkin’, for it’s a long slice, you know.’
’Don’t, don’t, Milly dear. Suppose we come away,’ I said, for the evening was deepening rapidly into night.
’Hey and bury-me-wick, but here’s the blood; don’t you see a big black cloud all spread over the floor
hereabout, don’t ye see?’ Milly was stooping over the spot, and tracing the outline of this, perhaps,
imaginary mapping, in the air with her finger.
’No, Milly, you could not see it: the floor is too dark, and it’s all in shadow. It must be fancy; and perhaps,
after all, this is not the room.’
[pg 217]
’We’ll come in the morning, and if you are right we can see it better then. Come away,’ I said, growing
frightened.
And just as we stood up to depart, the white high-cauled cap and large sallow features of old L’Amour
peeped in at the door.
’Lawk! what brings you here?’ cried Milly, nearly as much startled as I at the intrusion.
- 225 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’What brings you here, miss?’ whistled L’Amour through her gums.
’Charke the devil!’ said the old woman, with an odd mixture of scorn and fury. ’’Tisn’t his room; and come
ye out of it, please. Master won’t like when he hears how you keep pulling Miss Maud from one room to
another, all through the house, up and down.’
She was gabbling sternly enough, but dropped a low courtesy as I passed her, and with a peaked and
nodding stare round the room, the old woman clapped the door sharply, and locked it.
’And who has been a talking about Charke—a pack o lies, I warrant. I s’pose you want to frighten Miss
Maud here’ (another crippled courtesy) ’wi’ ghosts and like nonsense.’
’You’re out there: ’twas she told me; and much about it. Ghosts, indeed! I don’t vally them, not I; if I did, I
know who’d frighten me,’ and Milly laughed.
The old woman stuffed the key in her pocket, and her wrinkled mouth pouted and receded with a grim
uneasiness.
’A harmless brat, and kind she is; but wild—wild—she will be wild.’
So whispered L’Amour in my ear, during the silence that followed, nodding shakily toward Milly over the
banister, and she courtesied again as we departed, and shuffled off toward Uncle Silas’s room.
The Governor is queerish this evening,’ said Milly, when we were seated at our tea. ’You never saw him
queerish, did you?’
’You must say what you mean, more plainly, Milly. You don’t mean ill, I hope?’
’Well! I don’t know what it is; but he does grow very queer sometimes—you’d think he was dead a’most,
maybe two or three days and nights together. He sits all the time like an old woman in a swound. Well, well,
it is awful!’
[pg 218]
- 226 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I don’t know; but it never signifies anything. It won’t kill him, I do believe; but old L’Amour knows all
about it. I hardly ever go into the room when he’s so, only when I’m sent for; and he sometimes wakes up
and takes a fancy to call for this one or that. One day he sent for Pegtop all the way to the mill; and when he
came, he only stared at him for a minute or two, and ordered him out o’ the room. He’s like a child a’most,
when he’s in one o’ them dazes.’
I always knew when Uncle Silas was ’queerish,’ by the injunctions of old L’Amour, whistled and spluttered
over the banister as we came up-stairs, to mind how we made a noise passing master’s door; and by the
sound of mysterious to-ings and fro-ings about his room.
I saw very little of him. He sometimes took a whim to have us breakfast with him, which lasted perhaps for
a week; and then the order of our living would relapse into its old routine.
I must not forget two kind letters from Lady Knollys, who was detained away, and delighted to hear that I
enjoyed my quiet life; and promised to apply, in person, to Uncle Silas, for permission to visit me.
She was to be for the Christmas at Elverston, and that was only six miles away from Bartram-Haugh, so I
had the excitement of a pleasant look forward.
She also said that she would include poor Milly in her invitation; and a vision of Captain Oakley rose before
me, with his handsome gaze turned in wonder on poor Milly, for whom I had begun to feel myself
responsible.
[pg 219]
CHAPTER XXXVI
- 227 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I have sometimes been asked why I wear an odd little turquois ring—which to the uninstructed eye appears
quite valueless and altogether an unworthy companion of those jewels which flash insultingly beside it. It is
a little keepsake, of which I became possessed about this time.
’Come, lass, what name shall I give you?’ cried Milly, one morning, bursting into my room in a state of
alarming hilarity.
’No, but you must have a nickname, like every one else.’
’I refuse a name.’
Perhaps there was something provoking in my tone, for I certainly was very much disgusted at Milly’s
relapse into barbarism.
- 228 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And I think you’re a minx, and a slut, and a fool,’ she broke out, flushing scarlet.
And she gave her dress a great slap, and drew near me, in her [pg 220] wrath. I really thought she was about
tendering the ordeal of single combat.
I made her, however, a paralysing courtesy, and, with immense dignity, sailed out of the room, and into
Uncle Silas’s study, where it happened we were to breakfast that morning, and for several subsequent ones.
During the meal we maintained the most dignified reserve; and I don’t think either so much as looked at the
other.
I was sitting in the evening, quite alone, when Milly entered the room. Her eyes were red, and she looked
very sullen.
’I want your hand, cousin,’ she said, at the same time taking it by the wrist, and administering with it a
sudden slap on her plump cheek, which made the room ring, and my fingers tingle; and before I had
recovered from my surprise, she had vanished.
I called after her, but no answer; I pursued, but she was running too; and I quite lost her at the cross
galleries.
I did not see her at tea, nor before going to bed; but after I had fallen asleep I was awakened by Milly, in
floods of tears.
’Cousin Maud, will ye forgi’ me—you’ll never like me again, will ye? No—I know ye won’t—I’m such a
brute—I hate it—it’s a shame. And here’s a Banbury cake for you—I sent to the town for it, and some
taffy—won’t ye eat it? and here’s a little ring—’tisn’t as pretty as your own rings; and ye’ll wear it, maybe,
for my sake—poor Milly’s sake, before I was so bad to ye—if ye forgi’ me; and I’ll look at breakfast, and if
it’s on your finger I’ll know you’re friends wi’ me again; and if ye don’t, I won’t trouble you no more; and I
- 229 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
think I’ll just drown myself out o’ the way, and you’ll never see wicked Milly no more.’
And without waiting a moment, leaving me only half awake, and with the sensations of dreaming, she
scampered from the room, in her bare feet, with a petticoat about her shoulders.
She had left her candle by my bed, and her little offerings on the coverlet by me. If I had stood an atom less
in terror of goblins than I did, I should have followed her, but I was afraid. I stood in my bare feet at my
bedside, and kissed the poor little ring and put it on my finger, where it has remained ever since and always
shall. And when I lay down, longing for morning, the image of her pale, imploring, penitential face was
before me for hours; and I repented bitterly of my cool provoking ways, [pg 221] and thought myself, I dare
say justly, a thousand times more to blame than Milly.
I searched in vain for her before breakfast. At that meal, however, we met, but in the presence of Uncle
Silas, who, though silent and apathetic, was formidable; and we, sitting at a table disproportionably large,
under the cold, strange gaze of my guardian, talked only what was inevitable, and that in low tones; for
whenever Milly for a moment raised her voice, Uncle Silas would wince, place his thin white fingers
quickly over his ear, and look as if a pain had pierced his brain, and then shrug and smile piteously into
vacancy. When Uncle Silas, therefore, was not in the talking vein himself—and that was not often—you
may suppose there was very little spoken in his presence.
When Milly, across the table, saw the ring upon my finger, she, drawing in her breath, said, ’Oh!’ and, with
round eyes and mouth, she looked so delighted; and she made a little motion, as if she was on the point of
jumping up; and then her poor face quivered, and she bit her lip; and staring imploringly at me, her eyes
filled fast with tears, which rolled down her round penitential cheeks.
I am sure I felt more penitent than she. I know I was crying and smiling, and longing to kiss her. I suppose
we were very absurd; but it is well that small matters can stir the affections so profoundly at a time of life
when great troubles seldom approach us.
When at length the opportunity did come, never was such a hug out of the wrestling ring as poor Milly
bestowed on me, swaying me this way and that, and burying her face in my dress, and blubbering—
’I was so lonely before you came, and you so good to me, and I such a devil; and I’ll never call you a name,
but Maud—my darling Maud.’
- 230 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You must, Milly—Mrs. Bustle. I’ll be Mrs. Bustle, or anything you like. You must.’ I was blubbering like
Milly, and hugging my best; and, indeed, I wonder how we kept our feet.
Meanwhile, the winter deepened, and we had short days and long nights, and long fireside gossipings at
Bartram-Haugh. I was frightened at the frequency of the strange collapses to which [pg 222] Uncle Silas
was subject. I did not at first mind them much, for I naturally fell into Milly’s way of talking about them.
But one day, while in one of his ’queerish’ states, he called for me, and I saw him, and was unspeakably
scared.
In a white wrapper, he lay coiled in a great easy chair. I should have thought him dead, had I not been
accompanied by old L’Amour, who knew every gradation and symptom of these strange affections.
’Don’t make no noise, miss, till he talks; he’ll come to for a bit, anon.’
Except that there was no sign of convulsions, the countenance was like that of an epileptic arrested in one of
his contortions.
There was a frown and smirk like that of idiotcy, and a strip of white eyeball was also disclosed.
Suddenly, with a kind of chilly shudder, he opened his eyes wide, and screwed his lips together, and blinked
and stared on me with a fatuised uncertainty, that gradually broke into a feeble smile.
’Ah! the girl—Austin’s child. Well, dear, I’m hardly able—I’ll speak to-morrow—next day—it is
tic—neuralgia, or something—torture—tell her.’
So, huddling himself together, he lay again in his great chair, with the same inexpressible helplessness in his
attitude, and gradually his face resumed its dreadful cast.
’Come away, miss: he’s changed his mind; he’ll not be fit to talk to you noways all day, maybe,’ said the
old woman, again in a whisper.
- 231 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So forth we stole from the room, I unspeakably shocked. In fact, he looked as if he were dying, and so, in
my agitation, I told the crone, who, forgetting the ceremony with which she usually treated me, chuckled out
derisively,
’A-dying is he? Well, he be like Saint Paul—he’s bin a-dying daily this many a day.’
I looked at her with a chill of horror. She did not care, I suppose, what sort of feelings she might excite, for
she went on mumbling sarcastically to herself. I had paused, and overcame my reluctance to speak to her
again, for I was really very much frightened.
[pg 223]
’Law bless ye, the doctor knows all about it, miss.’ The old woman’s face had a gleam of that derision
which is so shocking in the features of feebleness and age.
’But it is a fit, it is paralytic, or something horrible—it can’t be safe to leave him to chance or nature to get
through these terrible attacks.’
’There’s no fear of him, ’tisn’t no fits at all, he’s nout the worse o’t. Jest silly a bit now and again. It’s been
the same a dozen year and more; and the doctor knows all about it,’ answered the old woman sturdily. ’And
ye’ll find he’ll be as mad as bedlam if ye make any stir about it.’
’They’re very dark, miss; but I think he takes a deal too much laudlum,’ said Mary.
To this hour I cannot say what was the nature of those periodical seizures. I have often spoken to medical
men about them, since, but never could learn that excessive use of opium could altogether account for them.
It was, I believe, certain, however, that he did use that drug in startling quantities. It was, indeed, sometimes
a topic of complaint with him that his neuralgia imposed this sad necessity upon him.
The image of Uncle Silas, as I had seen him that day, troubled and affrighted my imagination, as I lay in my
bed; I had slept very well since my arrival at Bartram. So much of the day was passed in the open air, and in
active exercise, that this was but natural. But that night I was nervous and wakeful, and it was past two
- 232 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
o’clock when I fancied I heard the sound of horses and carriage-wheels on the avenue.
Mary Quince was close by, and therefore I was not afraid to get up and peep from the window. My heart
beat fast as I saw a post-chaise approach the court-yard. A front window was let down, and the postilion
pulled up for a few seconds.
In consequence of some directions received by him, I fancied he resumed his route at a walk, and so drew
up at the hall-door, on the steps of which a figure awaited his arrival. I think it was old L’Amour, but I could
not be quite certain. There was a lantern on the top of the balustrade, close by the door. The chaise-lamps
were lighted, for the night was rather dark.
[pg 224]
A bag and valise, as well as I could see, were pulled from the interior by the post-boy, and a box from the
top of the vehicle, and these were carried into the hall.
I was obliged to keep my cheek against the window-pane to command a view of the point of debarkation,
and my breath upon the glass, which dimmed it again almost as fast as I wiped it away, helped to obscure
my vision. But I saw a tall figure, in a cloak, get down and swiftly enter the house, but whether male or
female I could not discern.
My heart beat fast. I jumped at once to a conclusion. My uncle was worse—was, in fact, dying; and this was
the physician, too late summoned to his bedside.
I listened for the ascent of the doctor, and his entrance at my uncle’s door, which, in the stillness of the
night, I thought I might easily hear, but no sound reached me. I listened so for fully five minutes, but
without result. I returned to the window, but the carriage and horses had disappeared.
I was strongly tempted to wake Mary Quince, and take counsel with her, and persuade her to undertake a
reconnoissance. The fact is, I was persuaded that my uncle was in extremity, and I was quite wild to know
the doctor’s opinion. But, after all, it would be cruel to summon the good soul from her refreshing nap. So,
as I began to feel very cold, I returned to my bed, where I continued to listen and conjecture until I fell
asleep.
- 233 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Old L’Amour says he’s queerish still; but he’s not so dull as yesterday,’ answered she.
’Was he? Well, that’s odd; and she said never a word o’t to me,’ answered she.
’I don’t know whether he came or no,’ she replied; ’but what makes you take that in your head?’
’A chaise arrived here between two and three o’clock last night.’
’Hey! and who told you?’ Milly seemed all on a sudden highly interested.
[pg 225]
’I saw it, Milly; and some one, I fancy the doctor, came from it into the house.’
’Fudge, lass! who’d send for the doctor? ’Twasn’t he, I tell you. What was he like?’ said Milly.
’I could only see clearly that he, or she, was tall, and wore a cloak,’ I replied.
’Then ’twasn’t him nor t’other I was thinking on, neither; and I’ll be hanged but I think it will be
Cormoran,’ cried Milly, with a thoughtful rap with her knuckle on the table.
’I came to tell Miss Quince her breakfast’s ready,’ said the old lady.
- 234 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’The chaise that came last night, past two o’clock,’ said Milly.
’That’s a lie, and a damn lie!’ cried the beldame. ’There worn’t no chaise at the door since Miss Maud there
come from Knowl.’
I stared at the audacious old menial who could utter such language.
’Yes, there was a chaise, and Cormoran, as I think, be come in it,’ said Milly, who seemed accustomed to
L’Amour’s daring address.
’And there’s another damn lie, as big as the t’other,’ said the crone, her haggard and withered face flushing
orange all over.
’I beg you will not use such language in my room,’ I replied, very angrily. ’I saw the chaise at the door;
your untruth signifies very little, but your impertinence here I will not permit. Should it be repeated, I will
assuredly complain to my uncle.’
The old woman flushed more fiercely as I spoke, and fixed her bleared glare on me, with a compression of
her mouth that amounted to a wicked grimace. She resisted her angry impulse, however, and only chuckled
a little spitefully, saying,
’No offence, miss: it be a way we has in Derbyshire o’ speaking our minds. No offence, miss, were meant,
and none took, as I hopes,’ and she made me another courtesy.
[pg 226]
’And I forgot to tell you, Miss Milly, the master wants you this minute.’
- 235 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXXVII
When Milly joined me at breakfast, her eyes were red and swollen. She was still sniffing with that little
sobbing hiccough, which betrays, even were there no other signs, recent violent weeping. She sat down
quite silent.
’No, nothing’s wrong wi’ him; he’s right well,’ said Milly, fiercely.
’The poisonous old witch! ’Twas just to tell the Gov’nor how I’d said ’twas Cormoran that came by the
po’shay last night.’
’Ay, there it is; I’d like to tell, and you want to hear—and I just daren’t, for he’ll send me off right to a
French school—hang it—hang them all!—if I do.’
’And why should Uncle Silas care?’ said I, a good deal surprised.
’Who?’ said I.
’L’Amour—that’s who. So soon as she made her complaint of me, the Gov’nor asked her, sharp enough,
did anyone come last night, or a po’shay; and she was ready to swear there was no one. Are ye quite sure,
Maud, you really did see aught, or ’appen ’twas all a dream?’
’It was no dream, Milly; so sure as you are there, I saw exactly what I told you,’ I replied.
- 236 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Gov’nor won’t believe it anyhow; and he’s right mad wi’ [pg 227] me; and he threatens me he’ll have me
off to France; I wish ’twas under the sea. I hate France—I do—like the devil. Don’t you? They’re always
a-threatening me wi’ France, if I dare say a word more about the po’shay, or—or anyone.’
I really was curious about Cormoran; but Cormoran was not to be defined to me by Milly; nor did she, in
reality, know more than I respecting the arrival of the night before.
One day I was surprised to see Doctor Bryerly on the stairs. I was standing in a dark gallery as he walked
across the floor of the lobby to my uncle’s door, his hat on, and some papers in his hand.
He did not see me; and when he had entered Uncle Silas’s door, I went down and found Milly awaiting me
in the hall.
’That’s the thin fellow, wi’ the sharp look, and the shiny black coat, that went up just now?’ asked Milly.
’’Appen ’twas he come ’tother night. He may be staying here, though we see him seldom, for it’s a barrack
of a house—it is.’
The same thought had struck me for a moment, but was dismissed immediately. It certainly was not Doctor
Bryerly’s figure which I had seen.
So, without any new light gathered from this apparition, we went on our way, and made our little sketch of
the ruined bridge. We found the gate locked as before; and, as Milly could not persuade me to climb it, we
got round the paling by the river’s bank.
While at our drawing, we saw the swarthy face, sooty locks, and old weather-stained red coat of Zamiel,
who was glowering malignly at us from among the trunks of the forest trees, and standing motionless as a
monumental figure in the side aisle of a cathedral. When we looked again he was gone.
Although it was a fine mild day for the wintry season, we yet, cloaked as we were, could not pursue so still
an occupation as sketching for more than ten or fifteen minutes. As we returned, in passing a clump of trees,
we heard a sudden outbreak of voices, angry and expostulatory; and saw, under the trees, the savage old
- 237 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Zamiel strike his daughter with his stick two great blows, one of which was across the head. ’Beauty’ ran
only a [pg 228] short distance away, while the swart old wood-demon stumped lustily after her, cursing and
brandishing his cudgel.
My blood boiled. I was so shocked that for a moment I could not speak; but in a moment more I screamed—
She had only run a few steps, and turned about confronting him and us, her eyes gleaming fire, her features
pale and quivering to suppress a burst of weeping. Two little rivulets of blood were trickling over her
temple.
’I say, fayther, look at that,’ she said, with a strange tremulous smile, lifting her hand, which was smeared
with blood.
Perhaps he was ashamed, and the more enraged on that account, for he growled another curse, and started
afresh to reach her, whirling his stick in the air. Our voices, however, arrested him.
’Strike him, Meg, if he does it again; and pitch his leg into the river to-night, when he’s asleep.’
’I’d serve you the same;’ and out came an oath. ’You’d have her lick her fayther, would ye? Look out!’
And he wagged his head with a scowl at Milly, and a flourish of his cudgel.
’Be quiet, Milly,’ I whispered, for Milly was preparing for battle; and I again addressed him with the
assurance that, on reaching home, I would tell my uncle how he had treated the poor girl.
’’Tis you she may thank for’t, a wheedling o’ her to open that gate,’ he snarled.
I did not think proper to discuss the matter with him; and looking very angry, and, I thought, a little put out,
he jerked and swayed himself out of sight. I merely repeated my promise of informing my uncle as he went,
to which, over his shoulder, he bawled—
- 238 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Silas won’t mind ye that;’ snapping his horny finger and thumb.
The girl remained where she had stood, wiping the blood off roughly with the palm of her hand, and looking
at it before she rubbed it on her apron.
[pg 229]
’My poor girl,’ I said, ’you must not cry. I’ll speak to my uncle about you.’
But she was not crying. She raised her head, and looked at us a little askance, with a sullen contempt, I
thought.
’And you must have these apples—won’t you?’ We had brought in our basket two or three of those splendid
apples for which Bartram was famous.
I hesitated to go near her, these Hawkeses, Beauty and Pegtop, were such savages. So I rolled the apples
gently along the ground to her feet.
She continued to look doggedly at us with the same expression, and kicked away the apples sullenly that
approached her feet. Then, wiping her temple and forehead in her apron, without a word, she turned and
walked slowly away.
’Poor thing! I’m afraid she leads a hard life. What strange, repulsive people they are!’
When we reached home, at the head of the great staircase old L’Amour was awaiting me; and with a
courtesy, and very respectfully, she informed me that the Master would be happy to see me.
Could it be about my evidence as to the arrival of the mysterious chaise that he summoned me to this
interview? Gentle as were his ways, there was something undefinable about Uncle Silas which inspired fear;
and I should have liked few things less than meeting his gaze in the character of a culprit.
There was an uncertainty, too, as to the state in which I might find him, and a positive horror of beholding
him again in the condition in which I had last seen him.
I entered the room, then, in some trepidation, but was instantly relieved. Uncle Silas was in the same health
apparently, and, as nearly as I could recollect it, in precisely the same rather handsome though negligent
garb in which I had first seen him.
- 239 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Doctor Bryerly—what a marked and vulgar contrast, and yet, somehow, how reassuring!—sat at the table
near him, and was tying up papers. His eyes watched me, I thought, with an anxious scrutiny as I
approached; and I think it was not until I had saluted him that he recollected suddenly that he had not seen
me before at Bartram, and stood up and greeted me in his usual abrupt and somewhat familiar way. It was
vulgar and not cordial, and yet it was honest and indefinably kind.
[pg 230]
Up rose my uncle, that strangely venerable, pale portrait, in his loose Rembrandt black velvet. How gentle,
how benignant, how unearthly, and inscrutable!
’I need not say how she is. Those lilies and roses, Doctor Bryerly, speak their own beautiful praises of the
air of Bartram. I almost regret that her carriage will be home so soon. I only hope it may not abridge her
rambles. It positively does me good to look at her. It is the glow of flowers in winter, and the fragrance of a
field which the Lord hath blessed.’
’Country air, Miss Ruthyn, is a right good kitchen to country fare. I like to see young women eat heartily.
You have had some pounds of beef and mutton since I saw you last,’ said Dr. Bryerly.
And this sly speech made, he scrutinised my countenance in silence rather embarrassingly.
’My system, Doctor Bryerly, as a disciple of Aesculapius you will approve—health first, accomplishment
afterwards. The Continent is the best field for elegant instruction, and we must see the world a little,
by-and-by, Maud; and to me, if my health be spared, there would be an unspeakable though a melancholy
charm in the scenes where so many happy, though so many wayward and foolish, young days were passed;
and I think I should return to these picturesque solitudes with, perhaps, an increased relish. You remember
old Chaulieu’s sweet lines—
Le tumulte et l’inquiétude.
- 240 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I can’t say that care and sorrow have not sometimes penetrated these sylvan fastnesses; but the tumults of
the world, thank Heaven!—never.’
There was a sly scepticism, I thought, in Doctor Bryerly’s sharp face; and hardly waiting for the impressive
’never,’ he said—
’Oh! Bartlet and Hall, Lombard Street,’ answered Uncle Silas, dryly and shortly.
Dr. Bryerly made a note of it, with an expression of face [pg 231] which seemed, with a sly resolution, to
say, ’You shan’t come the anchorite over me.’
I saw Uncle Silas’s wild and piercing eye rest suspiciously on me for a moment, as if to ascertain whether I
felt the spirit of Doctor Bryerly’s almost interruption; and, nearly at the same moment, stuffing his papers
into his capacious coat pockets, Doctor Bryerly rose and took his leave.
When he was gone, I bethought me that now was a good opportunity of making my complaint of Dickon
Hawkes. Uncle Silas having risen, I hesitated, and began,
’Certainly, child,’ he answered, fixing his eye sharply on me. I really think he fancied that the conversation
was about to turn upon the phantom chaise.
So I described the scene which had shocked Milly and me, an hour or so ago, in the Windmill Wood.
’You see, my dear child, they are rough persons; their ideas are not ours; their young people must be
chastised, and in a way and to a degree that we would look upon in a serious light. I’ve found it a bad plan
interfering in strictly domestic misunderstandings, and should rather not.’
’But he struck her violently on the head, uncle, with a heavy cudgel, and she was bleeding very fast.’
’And only that Milly and I deterred him by saying that we would certainly tell you, he would have struck
her again; and I really think if he goes on treating her with so much violence and cruelty he may injure her
- 241 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Why, you romantic little child, people in that rank of life think absolutely nothing of a broken head,’
answered Uncle Silas, in the same way.
’To be sure it is brutality; but then you must remember they are brutes, and it suits them,’ said he.
I was disappointed. I had fancied that Uncle Silas’s gentle nature would have recoiled from such an outrage
with horror and indignation; and instead, here he was, the apologist of that savage ruffian, Dickon Hawkes.
[pg 232]
’Oh! impertinent to you—that’s another matter. I must see to that. Nothing more, my dear child?’
’He’s a useful servant, Hawkes; and though his looks are not prepossessing, and his ways and language
rough, yet he is a very kind father, and a most honest man—a thoroughly moral man, though severe—a very
rough diamond though, and has no idea of the refinements of polite society. I venture to say he honestly
believes that he has been always unexceptionably polite to you, so we must make allowances.’
And Uncle Silas smoothed my hair with his thin aged hand, and kissed my forehead.
’Yes, we must make allowances; we must be kind. What says the Book?—"Judge not, that ye be not
judged." Your dear father acted upon that maxim—so noble and so awful—and I strive to do so. Alas! dear
Austin, longo intervalle, far behind! and you are removed—my example and my help; you are gone to your
rest, and I remain beneath my burden, still marching on by bleak and alpine paths, under the awful night.
- 242 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And repeating these lines of Chenier, with upturned eyes, and one hand lifted, and an indescribable
expression of grief and fatigue, he sank stiffly into his chair, and remained mute, with eyes closed for some
time. Then applying his scented handkerchief to them hastily, and looking very kindly at me, he said—
’Nothing, uncle, thank you, very much, only about that man, Hawkes; I dare say that he does not mean to be
so uncivil as he is, but I am really afraid of him, and he makes our walks in that direction quite unpleasant.’
’I understand quite, my dear. I will see to it; and you must remember that nothing is to be allowed to vex my
beloved niece and ward during her stay at Bartram—nothing that her old kinsman, Silas Ruthyn, can
remedy.’
So with a tender smile, and a charge to shut the door ’perfectly, but without clapping it,’ he dismissed me.
[pg 233]
Doctor Bryerly had not slept at Bartram, but at the little inn in Feltram, and he was going direct to London,
as I afterwards learned.
’Your ugly doctor’s gone away in a fly,’ said Milly, as we met on the stairs, she running up, I down.
On reaching the little apartment which was our sitting-room, however, I found that she was mistaken; for
Doctor Bryerly, with his hat and a great pair of woollen gloves on, and an old Oxford grey surtout that
showed his lank length to advantage, buttoned all the way up to his chin, had set down his black leather bag
on the table, and was reading at the window a little volume which I had borrowed from my uncle’s library.
He closed it on his finger as I entered, and without recollecting to remove his hat, he made a step or two
towards me with his splay, creaking boots. With a quick glance at the door, he said—
- 243 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XXXVIII
A MIDNIGHT DEPARTURE
’I’m going this minute—I—I want to know’—another glance at the door—’are you really quite comfortable
here?’
’You have only your cousin’s company?’ he continued, glancing at the table, which was laid for two.
’That’s very nice; but I think there are no teachers, you see—painters, and singers, and that sort of thing that
is usual with young ladies. No teachers of that kind—of any kind—are there?’ [pg 234] ’No; my uncle
thinks it better I should lay in a store of health, he says.’
’I know; and the carriage and horses have not come; how soon are they expected?’
’I really can’t say, and I assure you I don’t much care. I think running about great fun.’
’Ay, but a young woman of your rank, you know, it is not usual she should be without the use of a carriage.
Have you horses to ride?’
I shook my head.
’Your uncle, you know, has a very liberal allowance for your maintenance and education.’
- 244 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I remembered something in the will about it, and Mary Quince was constantly grumbling that ’he did not
spend a pound a week on our board.’
Another glance at the door from Doctor Bryerly’s sharp black eyes.
’Why doesn’t he keep company with you? Does he ever dine with you, or drink tea, or talk to you? Do you
see much of him?’
’He is a miserable invalid—his hours and regimen are peculiar. Indeed I wish very much you would
consider his case; he is, I believe, often insensible for a long time, and his mind in a strange feeble state
sometimes.’
’I dare say—worn out in his young days; and I saw that preparation of opium in his bottle—he takes too
much.’
’It’s made on water: the spirit interferes with the use of it beyond a certain limit. You have no idea what
those fellows can swallow. Read the "Opium Eater." I knew two cases in which the quantity exceeded De
Quincy’s. Aha! it’s new to you?’ and he laughed quietly at my simplicity.
’Pooh! I haven’t a notion; but, probably, one way or another, he has been all his days working on his nerves
and his [pg 235] brain. These men of pleasure, who have no other pursuit, use themselves up mostly, and
pay a smart price for their sins. And so he’s kind and affectionate, but hands you over to your cousin and the
servants. Are his people civil and obliging?’
’Well, I can’t say much for them; there is a man named Hawkes, and his daughter, who are very rude, and
even abusive sometimes, and say they have orders from my uncle to shut us out from a portion of the
grounds; but I don’t believe that, for Uncle Silas never alluded to it when I was making my complaint of
- 245 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
them to-day.’
’From what part of the grounds is that?’ asked Doctor Bryerly, sharply.
’Oh, no.’
’But I am really quite sure it was a story of Dickon’s, he is such a surly, disobliging man.’
’And what sort is that old servant that came in and out of his room?’
’Oh, that is old L’Amour,’ I answered, rather indirectly, and forgetting that I was using Milly’s nickname.
No, she certainly was not; a most disagreeable old woman, with a vein of wickedness. I thought I had heard
her swearing.
’They don’t seem to be a very engaging lot,’ said Doctor Bryerly;’ but where there’s one, there will be
more. See here, I was just reading a passage,’ and he opened the little volume at the place where his finger
marked it, and read for me a few sentences, the purport of which I well remember, although, of course, the
words have escaped me.
It was in that awful portion of the book which assumes to describe the condition of the condemned; and it
said that, independently of the physical causes in that state operating to enforce community of habitation,
and an isolation from superior spirits, there exist sympathies, aptitudes, and necessities which would, of
themselves, induce that depraved gregariousness, and isolation too.
[pg 236]
’And what of the rest of the servants, are they better?’ he resumed.
- 246 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
We saw little or nothing of the others, except of old ’Giblets,’ the butler, who went about like a little
automaton of dry bones, poking here and there, and whispering and smiling to himself as he laid the cloth;
and seeming otherwise quite unconscious of an external world.
’This room is not got up like Mr. Ruthyn’s: does he talk of furnishings and making things a little smart? No!
Well, I must say, I think he might.’
Here there was a little silence, and Doctor Bryerly, with his accustomed simultaneous glance at the door,
said in low, cautious tones, very distinctly—
’Have you been thinking at all over that matter again, I mean about getting your uncle to forego his
guardianship? I would not mind his first refusal. You could make it worth his while, unless he—that
is—unless he’s very unreasonable indeed; and I think you would consult your interest, Miss Ruthyn, by
doing so and, if possible, getting out of this place.’
’But I have not thought of it at all; I am much happier here than I had at all expected, and I am very fond of
my cousin Milly.’
’No.’
’We see no visitors here; but that, you know, I was prepared for.’
Doctor Bryerly read the wrinkles on his splay boot intently and peevishly, and tapped the sole lightly on the
ground.
’Yes, it is very lonely, and the people a bad lot. You’d be pleasanter somewhere else—with Lady Knollys,
for instance, eh?’
- 247 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, there certainly. But I am very well here: really the time passes very pleasantly; and my uncle is so
kind. I have only to mention anything that annoys me, and he will see that it is remedied: he is always
impressing that on me.’
’Yes, it is not a fit place for you,’ said Doctor Bryerly. ’Of course, about your uncle,’ he resumed, observing
my surprised look, ’it is all right: but he’s quite helpless, you know. At all [pg 237] events, think about it.
Here’s my address—Hans Emmanuel Bryerly, M.D., 17 King Street, Covent Garden, London—don’t lose
it, mind,’ and he tore the leaf out of his note-book.
’Here’s my fly at the door, and you must—you must’ (he was looking at his watch)—’mind you must think
of it seriously; and so, you see, don’t let anyone see that. You’ll be sure to leave it throwing about. The best
way will be just to scratch it on the door of your press, inside, you know; and don’t put my name—you’ll
remember that—only the rest of the address; and burn this. Quince is with you?’
’Well, don’t let her go; it’s a bad sign if they wish it. Don’t consent, mind; but just tip me a hint and you’ll
have me down. And any letters you get from Lady Knollys, you know, for she’s very plain-spoken, you’d
better burn them off-hand. And I’ve stayed too long, though; mind what I say, scratch it with a pin, and burn
that, and not a word to a mortal about it. Good-bye; oh, I was taking away your book.’
And so, in a fuss, with a slight shake of the hand, getting up his umbrella, his bag, and tin box, he hurried
from the room; and in a minute more, I heard the sound of his vehicle as it drove away.
I looked after it with a sigh; the uneasy sensations which I had experienced respecting my sojourn at
Bartram-Haugh were re-awakened.
My ugly, vulgar, true friend was disappearing beyond those gigantic lime trees which hid Bartram from the
eyes of the outer world. The fly, with the doctor’s valise on top, vanished, and I sighed an anxious sigh. The
shadow of the over-arching trees contracted, and I felt helpless and forsaken; and glancing down the torn
leaf, Doctor Bryerly’s address met my eye, between my fingers.
I slipt it into my breast, and ran up-stairs stealthily, trembling lest the old woman should summon me again,
at the head of the stairs, into Uncle Silas’s room, where under his gaze, I fancied, I should be sure to betray
myself.
- 248 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
But I glided unseen and safely by, entered my room, and shut my door. So listening and working, I, with my
scissors’ point, scratched the address where Doctor Bryerly had advised. Then, in positive terror, lest some
one should even knock during the [pg 238] operation, I, with a match, consumed to ashes the tell-tale bit of
paper.
Now, for the first time, I experienced the unpleasant sensations of having a secret to keep. I fancy the pain
of this solitary liability was disproportionately acute in my case, for I was naturally very open and very
nervous. I was always on the point of betraying it apropos des bottes—always reproaching myself for my
duplicity; and in constant terror when honest Mary Quince approached the press, or good-natured Milly
made her occasional survey of the wonders of my wardrobe. I would have given anything to go and point to
the tiny inscription, and say:—’This is Doctor Bryerly’s address in London. I scratched it with my scissors’
point, taking every precaution lest anyone—you, my good friends, included—should surprise me. I have
ever since kept this secret to myself, and trembled whenever your frank kind faces looked into the press.
There—you at last know all about it. Can you ever forgive my deceit?’
But I could not make up my mind to reveal it; nor yet to erase the inscription, which was my alternative
thought. Indeed I am a wavering, irresolute creature as ever lived, in my ordinary mood. High excitement or
passion only can inspire me with decision. Under the inspiration of either, however, I am transformed, and
often both prompt and brave.
’Some one left here last night, I think, Miss,’ said Mary Quince, with a mysterious nod, one morning.
’’Twas two o’clock, and I was bad with the toothache, and went down to get a pinch o’ red pepper—leaving
the candle a-light here lest you should awake. When I was coming up—as I was crossing the lobby, at the
far end of the long gallery—what should I hear, but a horse snorting, and some people a-talking, short and
quiet like. So I looks out o’ the window; and there surely I did see two horses yoked to a shay, and a fellah
a-pullin’ a box up o’ top; and out comes a walise and a bag; and I think it was old Wyat, please’m, that Miss
Milly calls L’Amour, that stood in the doorway a-talking to the driver.’
’Well, Miss, I waited as long as I could; but the pain was bad, and me so awful cold; I gave it up at last, and
came back to bed, for I could not say how much longer they might wait. And you’ll find, Miss,’twill be kep’
a secret, like the shay as [pg 239] you saw’d, Miss, last week. I hate them dark ways, and secrets; and old
Wyat—she does tell stories, don’t she?—and she as ought to be partickler, seein’ her time be short now, and
- 249 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
she so old. It is awful, an old un like that telling such crams as she do.’
Milly was as curious as I, but could throw no light on this. We both agreed, however, that the departure was
probably that of the person whose arrival I had accidentally witnessed. This time the chaise had drawn up at
the side door, round the corner of the left side of the house; and, no doubt, driven away by the back road.
Another accident had revealed this nocturnal move. It was very provoking, however, that Mary Quince had
not had resolution to wait for the appearance of the traveller. We all agreed, however, that we were to
observe a strict silence, and that even to Wyat—L’Amour I had better continue to call her—Mary Quince
was not to hint what she had seen. I suspect, however, that injured curiosity asserted itself, and that Mary
hardly adhered to this self-denying resolve.
But cheerful wintry suns and frosty skies, long nights, and brilliant starlight, with good homely fires in our
snuggery—gossipings, stories, short readings now and then, and brisk walks through the always beautiful
scenery of Bartram-Haugh, and, above all, the unbroken tenor of our life, which had fallen into a serene
routine, foreign to the idea of danger or misadventure, gradually quieted the qualms and misgivings which
my interview with Doctor Bryerly had so powerfully resuscitated.
My cousin Monica, to my inexpressible joy, had returned to her country-house; and an active diplomacy,
through the post-office, was negotiating the re-opening of friendly relations between the courts of Elverston
and of Bartram.
At length, one fine day, Cousin Monica, smiling pleasantly, with her cloak and bonnet on, and her colour
fresh from the shrewd air of the Derbyshire hills, stood suddenly before me in our sitting-room. Our
meeting was that of two school-companions long separated. Cousin Monica was always a girl in my eyes.
What a hug it was; what a shower of kisses and ejaculations, enquiries and caresses! At last I pressed her
down into a chair, and, laughing, she said—
[pg 240]
’You have no idea what self-denial I have exercised to bring this visit about. I, who detest writing, have
actually written five letters to Silas; and I don’t think I said a single impertinent thing in one of them! What
a wonderful little old thing your butler is! I did not know what to make of him on the steps. Is he a
struldbrug, or a fairy, or only a ghost? Where on earth did your uncle pick him up? I’m sure he came in on
- 250 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
All Hallows E’en, to answer an incantation—not your future husband, I hope—and he’ll vanish some night
into gray smoke, and whisk sadly up the chimney. He’s the most venerable little thing I ever beheld in my
life. I leaned back in the carriage and thought I should absolutely die of laughing. He’s gone up to prepare
your uncle for my visit; and I really am very glad, for I’m sure I shall look as young as Hebe after him. But
who is this? Who are you, my dear?’
This was addressed to poor Milly, who stood at the corner of the chimney-piece, staring with her round eyes
and plump cheeks in fear and wonder upon the strange lady.
’How stupid of me,’ I exclaimed. ’Milly, dear, this is your cousin, Lady Knollys.’
’And so you are Millicent. Well, dear, I am very glad to see you.’ And Cousin Monica was on her feet again
in an instant, with Milly’s hand very cordially in hers; and she gave her a kiss upon each cheek, and patted
her head.
Milly, I must mention, was a much more presentable figure than when I first encountered her. Her dresses
were at least a quarter of a yard longer. Though very rustic, therefore, she was not so barbarously grotesque,
by any means.
[pg 241]
CHAPTER XXXIX
Cousin Monica, with her hands upon Milly’s shoulders, looked amusedly and kindly in her face. ’And,’ said
she, ’we must be very good friends—you funny creature, you and I. I’m allowed to be the most saucy old
woman in Derbyshire—quite incorrigibly privileged; and nobody is ever affronted with me, so I say the
most shocking things constantly.’
- 251 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I’m a bit that way, myself; and I think,’ said poor Milly, making an effort, and growing very red; she quite
lost her head at that point, and was incompetent to finish the sentiment she had prefaced.
’You think? Now, take my advice, and never wait to think my dear; talk first, and think afterwards, that is
my way; though, indeed, I can’t say I ever think at all. It is a very cowardly habit. Our cold-blooded cousin
Maud, there, thinks sometimes; but it is always such a failure that I forgive her. I wonder when your little
pre-Adamite butler will return. He speaks the language of the Picts and Ancient Britons, I dare say, and
your father requires a little time to translate him. And, Milly dear, I am very hungry, so I won’t wait for
your butler, who would give me, I suppose, one of the cakes baked by King Alfred, and some Danish beer in
a skull; but I’ll ask you for a little of that nice bread and butter.’
With which accordingly Lady Knollys was quickly supplied; but it did not at all impede her utterance.
’Do you think, girls, you could be ready to come away with me, if Silas gives leave, in an hour or two? I
should so like to take you both home with me to Elverston.’
’How delightful! you darling,’ cried I, embracing and kissing [pg 242] her; ’for my part, I should be ready
in five minutes; what do you say, Milly?’
Poor Milly’s wardrobe, I am afraid, was more portable than handsome; and she looked horribly affrighted,
and whispered in my ear—
’There’s a deal of my slops in the wash,’ blurted out poor Milly, staring straight at Lady Knollys.
’In the name of wonder, what does my cousin mean?’ asked Lady Knollys.
’Her things have not come home yet from the laundress,’ I replied; and at this moment our wondrous old
butler entered to announce to Lady Knollys that his master was ready to receive her, whenever she was
disposed to favour him; and also to make polite apologies for his being compelled, by his state of health, to
give her the trouble of ascending to his room.
- 252 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So Cousin Monica was at the door in a moment, over her shoulder calling to us, ’Come, girls.’
’Please, not yet, my lady—you alone; and he requests the young ladies will be in the way, as he will send
for them presently.’
’Very good; perhaps it is better we should kiss and be friends in private first,’ said Cousin Knollys,
laughing; and away she went under the guidance of the mummy.
’When I saw him, my dear,’ she said, ’I could hardly believe my eyes; such white hair—such a white
face—such mad eyes—such a death-like smile. When I saw him last, his hair was dark; he dressed himself
like a modern Englishman; and he really preserved a likeness to the full-length portrait at Knowl, that you
fell in love with, you know; but, angels and ministers of grace! such a spectre! I asked myself, is it
necromancy, or is it delirium tremens that has reduced him to this? And said he, with that odious smile, that
made me fancy myself half insane—
[pg 243]
’What a sweet, gentle, insufferable voice he has! Somebody once told me about the tone of a glass flute that
made some people hysterical to listen to, and I was thinking of it all the time. There was always a peculiar
quality in his voice.
’"I do see a change, Silas," I said at last; "and, no doubt, so do you in me—a great change."
’"There has been time enough to work a greater than I observe in you since you last honoured me with a
visit," said he.
’I think he was at his old sarcasms, and meant that I was the same impertinent minx he remembered long
ago, uncorrected by time; and so I am, and he must not expect compliments from old Monica Knollys.
’"It is a long time, Silas; but that, you know, is not my fault," said I.
- 253 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’"Not your fault, my dear—your instinct. We are all imitative creatures: the great people ostracised me, and
the small ones followed. We are very like turkeys, we have so much good sense and so much generosity.
Fortune, in a freak, wounded my head, and the whole brood were upon me, pecking and gobbling, gobbling
and pecking, and you among them, dear Monica. It wasn’t your fault, only your instinct, so I quite forgive
you; but no wonder the peckers wear better than the pecked. You are robust; and I, what I am."
’"Now, Silas, I have not come here to quarrel. If we quarrel now, mind, we can never make it up—we are
too old, so let us forget all we can, and try to forgive something; and if we can do neither, at all events let
there be truce between us while I am here."
’"My personal wrongs I can quite forgive, and I do, Heaven knows, from my heart; but there are things
which ought not to be forgiven. My children have been ruined by it. I may, by the mercy of Providence, be
yet set right in the world, and so soon as that time comes, I will remember, and I will act; but my
children—you will see that wretched girl, my daughter—education, society, all would come too late—my
children have been ruined by it."
’"I have not done it; but I know what you mean," I said. "You menace litigation whenever you have the
means; but you forget that Austin placed you under promise, when he gave you [pg 244] the use of this
house and place, never to disturb my title to Elverston. So there is my answer, if you mean that."
’"You mean then," said I, "that for the pleasure of vexing me with litigation, you are willing to forfeit your
tenure of this house and place."
’"Suppose I did mean precisely that, why should I forfeit anything? My beloved brother, by his will, has
given me a right to the use of Bartram-Haugh for my life, and attached no absurd condition of the kind you
fancy to his gift."
’Silas was in one of his vicious old moods, and liked to menace me. His vindictiveness got the better of his
craft; but he knows as well as I do that he never could succeed in disturbing the title of my poor dear Harry
Knollys; and I was not at all alarmed by his threats; and I told him so, as coolly as I speak to you now.
’"Well, Monica," he said, "I have weighed you in the balance, and you are not found wanting. For a moment
the old man possessed me: the thought of my children, of past unkindness, and present affliction and
- 254 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
disgrace, exasperated me, and I was mad. It was but for a moment—the galvanic spasm of a corpse. Never
was breast more dead than mine to the passions and ambitions of the world. They are not for white locks
like these, nor for a man who, for a week in every month, lies in the gate of death. Will you shake hands?
Here—I do strike a truce; and I do forget and forgive everything."
’I don’t know what he meant by this scene. I have no idea whether he was acting, or lost his head, or, in fact,
why or how it occurred; but I am glad, darling, that, unlike myself, I was calm, and that a quarrel has not
been forced upon me.’
When our turn came and we were summoned to the presence, Uncle Silas was quite as usual; but Cousin
Monica’s heightened colour, and the flash of her eyes, showed plainly that something exciting and angry
had occurred.
Uncle Silas commented in his own vein upon the effect of Bartram air and liberty, all he had to offer; and
called on me to say how I liked them. And then he called Milly to him, kissed her tenderly, smiled sadly
upon her, and turning to Cousin Monica, said—
’This is my daughter Milly—oh! she has been presented to [pg 245] you down-stairs, has she? You have, no
doubt, been interested by her. As I told her cousin Maud, though I am not yet quite a Sir Tunbelly Clumsy,
she is a very finished Miss Hoyden. Are not you, my poor Milly? You owe your distinction, my dear, to that
line of circumvallation which has, ever since your birth, intercepted all civilisation on its way to Bartram.
You are much obliged, Milly, to everybody who, whether naturally or un-naturally, turned a sod in that
invisible, but impenetrable, work. For your accomplishments—rather singular than fashionable—you are
indebted, in part, to your cousin, Lady Knollys. Is not she, Monica? Thank her, Milly.’
’This is your truce, Silas,’ said Lady Knollys, with a quiet sharpness. ’I think, Silas Ruthyn, you want to
provoke me to speak in a way before these young creatures which we should all regret.’
’So my badinage excites your temper, Monnie. Think how you would feel, then, if I had found you by the
highway side, mangled by robbers, and set my foot upon your throat, and spat in your face. But—stop this.
Why have I said this? simply to emphasize my forgiveness. See, girls, Lady Knollys and I, cousins long
estranged, forget and forgive the past, and join hands over its buried injuries.’
- 255 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, be it so; only let us have done with ironies and covert taunts.’
And with these words their hands were joined; and Uncle Silas, after he had released hers, patted and
fondled it with his, laughing icily and very low all the time.
’I wish so much, dear Monica,’ he said, when this piece of silent by-play was over, ’that I could ask you to
stay to-night; but absolutely I have not a bed to offer, and even if I had, I fear my suit would hardly prevail.’
Then came Lady Knollys’ invitation for Milly and me. He was very much obliged; he smiled over it a great
deal, meditating. I thought he was puzzled; and amid his smiles, his wild eyes scanned Cousin Monica’s
frank face once or twice suspiciously.
There was a difficulty—an undefined difficulty—about letting us go that day; but on a future
one—soon—very soon—he would be most happy.
Well, there was an end of that little project, for to-day at [pg 246] least; and Cousin Monica was too
well-bred to urge it beyond a certain point.
’Milly, my dear, will you put on your hat and show me the grounds about the house? May she, Silas? I
should like to renew my acquaintance.’
’You’ll see them sadly neglected, Monnie. A poor man’s pleasure grounds must rely on Nature, and trust to
her for effects. Where there is fine timber, however, and abundance of slope, and rock, and hollow, we
sometimes gain in picturesqueness what we lose by neglect in luxury.’
Then, as Cousin Monica said she would cross the grounds by a path, and meet her carriage at a point to
which we would accompany her, and so make her way home, she took leave of Uncle Silas; a ceremony
whereat—without, I thought, much zeal at either side—a kiss took place.
’Now, girls!’ said Cousin Knollys, when we were fairly in motion over the grass, ’what do you say—will he
let you come—yes or no? I can’t say, but I think, dear,’—this to Milly—’ he ought to let you see a little
more of the world than appears among the glens and bushes of Bartram. Very pretty they are, like yourself;
but very wild, and very little seen. Where is your brother, Milly; is not he older than you?’
- 256 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
By-and-by, when Milly was gesticulating to frighten some herons by the river’s brink into the air, Cousin
Monica said confidentially to me—
’He has run away, I’m told—I wish I could believe it—and enlisted in a regiment going to India, perhaps
the best thing for him. Did you see him here before his judicious self-banishment?’
’No.’
’Well, I suppose you have had no loss. Doctor Bryerly says from all he can learn he is a very bad young
man. And now tell me, dear, is Silas kind to you?’
’Yes, always gentle, just as you saw him to-day; but we don’t see a great deal of him—very little, in fact.’
’And how do you like your life and the people?’ she asked.
’My life, very well; and the people, pretty well. There’s an old women we don’t like, old Wyat, she is cross
and mysterious and tells untruths; but I don’t think she is dishonest—so Mary [pg 247] Quince says—and
that, you know, is a point; and there is a family, father and daughter, called Hawkes, who live in the
Windmill Wood, who are perfect savages, though my uncle says they don’t mean it; but they are very
disagreeable, rude people; and except them we see very little of the servants or other people. But there has
been a mysterious visit; some one came late at night, and remained for some days, though Milly and I never
saw them, and Mary Quince saw a chaise at the side-door at two o’clock at night.’
Cousin Monica was so highly interested at this that she arrested her walk and stood facing me, with her
hand on my arm, questioning and listening, and lost, as it seemed, in dismal conjecture.
And just then Milly joined us, shouting to us to look at the herons flying; so Cousin Monica did, and smiled
and nodded in thanks to Milly, and was again silent and thoughtful as we walked on.
’You are to come to me, mind, both of you girls,’ she said, abruptly;’ you shall. I’ll manage it.’
When silence returned, and Milly ran away once more to try whether the old gray trout was visible in the
still water under the bridge, Cousin Monica said to me in a low tone, looking hard at me—
- 257 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You’ve not seen anything to frighten you, Maud? Don’t look so alarmed, dear,’ she added with a little
laugh, which was not very merry, however. ’I don’t mean frighten in any awful sense—in fact, I did not
mean frighten at all. I meant—I can’t exactly express it—anything to vex, or make you uncomfortable; have
you?’
’No, I can’t say I have, except that room in which Mr. Charke was found dead.’
’Oh! you saw that, did you?—I should like to see it so much. Your bedroom is not near it?’
’Oh, no; on the floor beneath, and looking to the front. And Doctor Bryerly talked a little to me, and there
seemed to be something on his mind more than he chose to tell me; so that for some time after I saw him I
really was, as you say, frightened; [pg 248] but, except that, I really have had no cause. And what was in
your mind when you asked me?’
’Well, you know, Maud, you are afraid of ghosts, banditti, and everything; and I wished to know whether
you were uncomfortable, and what your particular bogle was just now—that, I assure you, was all; and I
know,’ she continued, suddenly changing her light tone and manner for one of pointed entreaty, ’what
Doctor Bryerly said; and I implore of you, Maud, to think of it seriously; and when you come to me, you
shall do so with the intention of remaining at Elverston.’
’Now, Cousin Monica, is this fair? You and Doctor Bryerly both talk in the same awful way to me; and I
assure you, you don’t know how nervous I am sometimes, and yet you won’t, either of you, say what you
mean. Now, Monica, dear cousin, won’t you tell me?’
’You see, dear, it is so lonely; it’s a strange place, and he so odd. I don’t like the place, and I don’t like him.
I’ve tried, but I can’t, and I think I never shall. He may be a very—what was it that good little silly curate at
Knowl used to call him?—a very advanced Christian—that is it, and I hope he is; but if he is only what he
used to be, his utter seclusion from society removes the only check, except personal fear—and he never had
much of that—upon a very bad man. And you must know, my dear Maud, what a prize you are, and what an
immense trust it is.’
Suddenly Cousin Monica stopped short, and looked at me as if she had gone too far.
’But, you know, Silas may be very good now, although he was wild and selfish in his young days. Indeed I
don’t know what to make of him; but I am sure when you have thought it over, you will agree with me and
- 258 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I hope to see you at Elverston in a very few days. I will shame Silas into letting you come. I don’t like his
reluctance.’
’But don’t you think he must know that Milly would require some little outfit before her visit?’
’Well, I can’t say. I hope that is all; but be it what it may, I’ll make him let you come, and immediately, too.’
[pg 249]
After she had gone, I experienced a repetition of those undefined doubts which had tortured me for some
time after my conversation with Dr. Bryerly. I had truly said, however, I was well enough contented with
my mode of life here, for I had been trained at Knowl to a solitude very nearly as profound.
CHAPTER XL
My correspondence about this time was not very extensive. About once a fortnight a letter from honest Mrs.
Rusk conveyed to me how the dogs and ponies were, in queer English, oddly spelt; some village gossip, a
critique upon Doctor Clay’s or the Curate’s last sermon, and some severities generally upon the Dissenters’
doings, with loves to Mary Quince, and all good wishes to me. Sometimes a welcome letter from cheerful
Cousin Monica; and now, to vary the series, a copy of complimentary verses, without a signature, very
adoring—very like Byron, I then fancied, and now, I must confess, rather vapid. Could I doubt from whom
they came?
- 259 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I had received, about a month after my arrival, a copy of verses in the same hand, in a plaintive ballad style,
of the soldierly sort, in which the writer said, that as living his sole object was to please me, so dying I
should be his latest thought; and some more poetic impieties, asking only in return that when the storm of
battle had swept over, I should ’shed a tear’ on seeing ’the oak lie, where it fell.’ Of course, about this
lugubrious pun, there could be no misconception. The Captain was unmistakably indicated; and I was so
moved that I could no longer retain my secret; but walking with Milly that day, confided the little romance
to that unsophisticated listener, under the chestnut trees. The lines were so amorously dejected, and yet so
heroically redolent of blood and gunpowder, that Milly and [pg 250] I agreed that the writer must be on the
verge of a sanguinary campaign.
It was not easy to get at Uncle Silas’s ’Times’ or ’Morning Post,’ which we fancied would explain these
horrible allusions; but Milly bethought her of a sergeant in the militia, resident in Feltram, who knew the
destination and quarters of every regiment in the service; and circuitously, from this authority, we learned,
to my infinite relief, that Captain Oakley’s regiment had still two years to sojourn in England.
I was summoned one evening by old L’Amour, to my uncle’s room. I remember his appearance that evening
so well, as he lay back in his chair; the pillow; the white glare of his strange eye; his feeble, painful smile.
’You’ll excuse my not rising, dear Maud, I am so miserably ill this evening.’
’Yes; I am to be pitied; but pity is of no use, dear,’ he murmured, peevishly. ’I sent for you to make you
acquainted with your cousin, my son. Where are you Dudley?’
A figure seated in a low lounging chair, at the other side of the fire, and which till then I had not observed,
at these words rose up a little slowly, like a man stiff after a day’s hunting; and I beheld with a shock that
held my breath, and fixed my eyes upon him in a stare, the young man whom I had encountered at Church
Scarsdale, on the day of my unpleasant excursion there with Madame, and who, to the best of my belief,
was also one of that ruffianly party who had so unspeakably terrified me in the warren at Knowl.
I suppose I looked very much affrighted. If I had been looking at a ghost I could not have felt much more
scared and incredulous.
- 260 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
When I was able to turn my eyes upon my uncle he was not looking at me; but with a glimmer of that smile
with which a father looks on a son whose youth and comeliness he admires, his white face was turned
towards the young man, in whom I beheld nothing but the image of odious and dreadful associations.
’Come, sir,’ said my uncle, we must not be too modest. Here’s your cousin Maud—what do you say?’
[pg 251]
’Miss! Come, come. Miss us, no Misses,’ said my uncle; ’she is Maud, and you Dudley, or I mistake; or we
shall have you calling Milly, madame. She’ll not refuse you her hand, I venture to think. Come, young
gentleman, speak for yourself.’
’How are ye, Maud?’ he said, doing his best, and drawing near, he extended his hand.’ You’re welcome to
Bartram-Haugh, Miss.’
’Kiss your cousin, sir. Where’s your gallantry? On my honour, I disown you,’ exclaimed my uncle, with
more energy than he had shown before.
With a clumsy effort, and a grin that was both sheepish and impudent, he grasped my hand and advanced his
face. The imminent salute gave me strength to spring back a step or two, and he hesitated.
’Well, well, that will do, I suppose. In my time first-cousins did not meet like strangers; but perhaps we
were wrong; we are learning modesty from the Americans, and old English ways are too gross for us.’
My uncle turned his strange glare, in a sort of scowl of enquiry, upon me.
’Oh!—hey! why this is news. You never told me. Where have you met—eh, Dudley?’
’Never saw her in my days, so far as I’m aweer on,’ said the young man.
- 261 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No! Well, then, Maud, will you enlighten us?’ said Uncle Silas, coldly.
’And where was it, my dear? Not at Knowl, I fancy. Poor dear Austin did not trouble me or mine much with
his hospitalities.’
This was not a pleasant tone to take in speaking of his dead brother and benefactor; but at the moment I was
too much engaged upon the one point to observe it.
’I met’—I could not say my cousin—’I met him, uncle—your son—that young gentleman—I saw him, I
should say, at Church [pg 252] Scarsdale, and afterwards with some other persons in the warren at Knowl. It
was the night our gamekeeper was beaten.’
’I never was at them places, so help me. I don’t know where they be; and I never set eyes on the young lady
before, as I hope to be saved, in all my days,’ said he, with a countenance so unchanged and an air so
confident that I began to think I must be the dupe of one of those strange resemblances which have been
known to lead to positive identification in the witness-box, afterwards proved to be utterly mistaken.
’You look so—so uncomfortable, Maud, at the idea of having seen him before, that I hardly wonder at the
vehemence of his denial. There was plainly something disagreeable; but you see as respects him it is a total
mistake. My boy was always a truth-telling fellow—you may rely implicitly on what he says. You were not
at those places?’
’There, there—that will do; your honour and word as a gentleman—and that you are, though a poor
one—will quite satisfy your cousin Maud. Am I right, my dear? I do assure you, as a gentleman, I never
knew him to say the thing that was not.’
- 262 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So Mr. Dudley Ruthyn began, not to curse, but to swear, in the prescribed form, that he had never seen me
before, or the places I had named, ’since I was weaned, by——’
’That’s enough—now shake hands, if you won’t kiss, like cousins,’ interrupted my uncle.
’You’ll want some supper, Dudley, so Maud and I will excuse your going. Good-night, my dear boy,’ and
he smiled and waved him from the room.
’That’s as fine a young fellow, I think, as any English father can boast for his son—true, brave, and kind,
and quite an Apollo. Did you observe how finely proportioned he is, and what exquisite features the fellow
has? He’s rustic and rough, as you see; but a year or two in the militia—I’ve a promise of a commission for
him—he’s too old for the line—will form and polish him. He wants nothing but manner; and I protest when
he has [pg 253] had a little drilling of that kind, I do believe he’ll be as pretty a fellow as you’d find in
England.’
I listened with amazement. I could discover nothing but what was disagreeable in the horrid bumpkin, and
thought such an instance of the blindness of parental partiality was hardly credible.
I looked down, dreading another direct appeal to my judgment; and Uncle Silas, I suppose, referred those
downcast looks to maiden modesty, for he forbore to task mine by any new interrogatory.
Dudley Ruthyn’s cool and resolute denial of ever having seen me or the places I had named, and the
inflexible serenity of his countenance while doing so, did very much shake my confidence in my own
identification of him. I could not be quite certain that the person I had seen at Church Scarsdale was the very
same whom I afterwards saw at Knowl. And now, in this particular instance, after the lapse of a still longer
period, could I be perfectly certain that my memory, deceived by some accidental points of resemblance,
had not duped me, and wronged my cousin, Dudley Ruthyn?
I suppose my uncle had expected from me some signs of acquiesence in his splendid estimate of his cub,
and was nettled at my silence. After a short interval he said—
’I’ve seen something of the world in my day, and I can say without a misgiving of partiality, that Dudley is
the material of a perfect English gentleman. I am not blind, of course—the training must be supplied; a year
- 263 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
or two of good models, active self-criticism, and good society. I simply say that the material is there.’
’Well, dear Maud, the adventure of Church Scarsdale is hardly so terrific as I expected,’ said Uncle Silas
with a cold little laugh; ’and I don’t see, if he had really been the hero of it, why he should shrink from
avowing it. I know I should not. And I really can’t say that your pic-nic party in the grounds of [pg 254]
Knowl has frightened me much more. A lady waiting in the carriage, and two or three tipsy young men. Her
presence seems to me a guarantee that no mischief was meant; but champagne is the soul of frolic, and a
row with the gamekeepers a natural consequence. It happened to me once—forty years ago, when I was a
wild young buck—one of the worst rows I ever was in.’
And Uncle Silas poured some eau-de-cologne over the corner of his handkerchief, and touched his temples
with it.
’If my boy had been there, I do assure you—and I know him—he would say so at once. I fancy he would
rather boast of it. I never knew him utter an untruth. When you know him a little you’ll say so.’
With these words Uncle Silas leaned back exhausted, and languidly poured some of his favourite
eau-de-cologne over the palms of his hands, nodded a farewell, and, in a whisper, wished me good-night.
’Dudley’s come,’ whispered Milly, taking me under the arm as I entered the lobby. ’But I don’t care: he
never gives me nout; and he gets money from Governor, as much as he likes, and I never a sixpence. It’s a
shame!’
So there was no great love between the only son and only daughter of the younger line of the Ruthyns.
I was curious to learn all that Milly could tell me of this new inmate of Bartram-Haugh; and Milly was
communicative without having a great deal to relate, and what I heard from her tended to confirm my own
- 264 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
disagreeable impressions about him. She was afraid of him. He was a ’woundy ugly customer in a wax, she
could tell me.’ He was the only one ’she ever knowed as had pluck to jaw the Governor.’ But he was ’afeard
on the Governor, too.’
His visits to Bartram-Haugh, I heard, were desultory; and this, to my relief, would probably not outlast a
week or a fortnight. ’He was such a fashionable cove:’ he was always ’a gadding about, mostly to Liverpool
and Birmingham, and sometimes to Lunnun, itself.’ He was ’keeping company one time with Beauty,
Governor thought, and he was awfully afraid he’d a married her; but that was all bosh and nonsense; and
Beauty would have none of his chaff and wheedling, for she liked Tom Brice;’ and Milly thought that
Dudley never ’cared a crack of a whip for her.’ He used to go to the Windmill to [pg 255] have ’a smoke
with Pegtop;’ and he was a member of the Feltram Club, that met at the ’Plume o’ Feathers.’ He was ’a rare
good shot,’ she heard; and ’he was before the justices for poaching, but they could make nothing of it.’ And
the Governor said ’it was all through spite of him—for they hate us for being better blood than they.’ And
’all but the squires and those upstart folk loves Dudley, he is so handsome and gay—though he be a bit
cross at home.’ And, ’Governor says, he’ll be a Parliament man yet, spite o’ them all.’
Next morning, when our breakfast was nearly ended, Dudley tapped at the window with the end of his clay
pipe—a ’churchwarden’ Milly called it—just such a long curved pipe as Joe Willet is made to hold between
his lips in those charming illustrations of ’Barnaby Rudge’—which we all know so well—and lifting his
’wide-awake’ with a burlesque salutation, which, I suppose, would have charmed the ’Plume of Feathers,’
he dropped, kicked and caught his ’wide-awake,’ with an agility and gravity, as he replaced it, so
inexpressibly humorous, that Milly went off in a loud fit of laughter, with the ejaculation—
It was odd how repulsively my confidence in my original identification always revived on unexpectedly
seeing Dudley after an interval.
I could perceive that this piece of comic by-play was meant to make a suitable impression on me. I received
it, however, with a killing gravity; and after a word or two to Milly, he lounged away, having first broken
his pipe, bit by bit, into pieces, which he balanced in turn on his nose and on his chin, from which features
he jerked them into his mouth, with a precision which, along with his excellent pantomime of eating them,
highly excited Milly’s mirth and admiration.
- 265 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 256]
CHAPTER XLI
MY COUSIN DUDLEY
Greatly to my satisfaction, this engaging person did not appear again that day. But next day Milly told me
that my uncle had taken him to task for the neglect with which he was treating us.
’He did pitch into him, sharp and short, and not a word from him, only sulky like; and I so frightened, I
durst not look up almost; and they said a lot I could not make head or tail of; and Governor ordered me out
o’ the room, and glad I was to go; and so they had it out between them.’
Milly could throw no light whatsoever upon the adventures at Church Scarsdale and Knowl; and I was left
still in doubt, which sometimes oscillated one way and sometimes another. But, on the whole, I could not
shake off the misgivings which constantly recurred and pointed very obstinately to Dudley as the hero of
those odious scenes.
Oddly enough, though, I now felt far less confident upon the point than I did at first sight. I had begun to
distrust my memory, and to suspect my fancy; but of this there could be no question, that between the
person so unpleasantly linked in my remembrance with those scenes, and Dudley Ruthyn, a striking, though
possibly only a general resemblance did exist.
Milly was certainly right as to the gist of Uncle Silas’s injunction, for we saw more of Dudley
henceforward.
He was shy; he was impudent; he was awkward; he was conceited;—altogether a most intolerable bumpkin.
Though he sometimes flushed and stammered, and never for a moment was at his ease in my presence, yet,
to my inexpressible disgust, there was a self-complacency in his manner, and a kind of triumph in his leer,
which very plainly told me how satisfied he was as to the nature of the impression he was making upon me.
- 266 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I would have given worlds to tell him how odious I thought [pg 257] him. Probably, however, he would not
have believed me. Perhaps he fancied that ’ladies’ affected airs of indifference and repulsion to cover their
real feelings. I never looked at or spoke to him when I could avoid either, and then it was as briefly as I
could. To do him justice, however, he seemed to have no liking for our society, and certainly never seemed
altogether comfortable in it.
I find it hard to write quite impartially even of Dudley Ruthyn’s personal appearance; but, with an effort, I
confess that his features were good, and his figure not amiss, though a little fattish. He had light whiskers,
light hair, and a pink complexion, and very good blue eyes. So far my uncle was right; and if he had been
perfectly gentlemanlike, he really might have passed for a handsome man in the judgment of some critics.
But there was that odious mixture of mauvaise honte and impudence, a clumsiness, a slyness, and a
consciousness in his bearing and countenance, not distinctly boorish, but low, which turned his good looks
into an ugliness more intolerable than that of feature; and a corresponding vulgarity pervading his dress, his
demeanour, and his very walk, marred whatever good points his figure possessed. If you take all this into
account, with the ominous and startling misgivings constantly recurring, you will understand the mixed
feelings of anger and disgust with which I received the admiration he favoured me with.
Gradually he grew less constrained in my presence, and certainly his manners were not improved by his
growing ease and confidence.
He came in while Milly and I were at luncheon, jumped up, with a ’right-about face’ performed in the air,
sitting on the sideboard, whence grinning slyly and kicking his heels, he leered at us.
’No, lass; but I’ll look at ye, and maybe drink a drop for company.’
And with these words, he took a sportsman’s flask from his pocket; and helping himself to a large glass and
a decanter, he compounded a glass of strong brandy-and-water, as he talked, and refreshed himself with it
from time to time.
’Curate’s up wi’ the Governor,’ he said, with a grin. ’I [pg 258] wanted a word wi’ him; but I s’pose I’ll
hardly git in this hour or more; they’re a praying and disputing, and a Bible-chopping, as usual. Ha, ha! But
’twon’t hold much longer, old Wyat says, now that Uncle Austin’s dead; there’s nout to be made o’ praying
- 267 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’O fie! For shame, you sinner!’ laughed Milly. ’He wasn’t in a church these five years, he says, and then
only to meet a young lady. Now, isn’t he a sinner, Maud—isn’t he?’
Dudley, grinning, looked with a languishing slyness at me, biting the edge of his wide-awake, which he held
over his breast.
Dudley Ruthyn probably thought there was a manly and desperate sort of fascination in the impiety he
professed.
’I wonder, Milly,’ said I, ’at your laughing. How can you laugh?’
’I know I wish some one ’ud cry for me, and I know who,’ said Dudley, in what he meant for a very
engaging way, and he looked at me as if he thought I must feel flattered by his caring to have my tears.
Instead of crying, however, I leaned back in my chair, and began quietly to turn over the pages of Walter
Scott’s poems, which I and Milly were then reading in the evenings.
The tone in which this odious young man spoke of his father, his coarse mention of mine, and his low
boasting of his irreligion, disgusted me more than ever with him.
’They parsons be slow coaches—awful slow. I’ll have a good bit to wait, I s’pose. I should be three miles
away and more by this time—drat it!’ He was eyeing the legging of the foot which he held up while he
spoke, as if calculating how far away that limb should have carried him by this time. ’Why can’t folk do
their Bible and prayers o’ Sundays, and get it off their stomachs? I say, Milly lass, will ye see if Governor
be done wi’ the Curate? Do. I’m a losing the whole day along o’ him.’
Milly jumped up, accustomed to obey her brother, and as she passed me, whispered, with a wink—
’Money.’
- 268 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And away she went. Dudley whistled a tune, and swung his foot like a pendulum, as he followed her with
his side-glance.
’I say, it is a hard case, Miss, a lad o’ spirit should be kept [pg 259] so tight. I haven’t a shilling but what
comes through his fingers; an’ drat the tizzy he’ll gi’ me till he knows the reason why.’
’Perhaps,’ I said, ’my uncle thinks you should earn some for yourself.’
’I’d like to know how a fella’s to earn money now-a-days. You wouldn’t have a gentleman to keep a shop, I
fancy. But I’ll ha’ a fistful jist now, and no thanks to he. Them executors, you know, owes me a deal o’
money. Very honest chaps, of course; but they’re cursed slow about paying, I know.’
I made no remark upon this elegant allusion to the executors of my dear father’s will.
’An’ I tell ye, Maud, when I git the tin, I know who I’ll buy a farin’ for. I do, lass.’
The odious creature drawled this with a sidelong leer, which, I suppose, he fancied quite irresistible.
I am one of those unfortunate persons who always blushed when I most wished to look indifferent; and now,
to my inexpressible chagrin, with its accustomed perversity, I felt the blush mount to my cheeks, and glow
even on my forehead.
I saw that he perceived this most disconcerting indication of a sentiment the very idea of which was so
detestable, that, equally enraged with myself and with him, I did not know how to exhibit my contempt and
indignation.
Mistaking the cause of my discomposure, Mr. Dudley Ruthyn laughed softly, with an insufferable suavity.
’And there’s some’at, lass, I must have in return. Honour thy father, you know; you would not ha’ me
disobey the Governor? No, you wouldn’t—would ye?’
I darted at him a look which I hoped would have quelled his impertinence; but I blushed most
provokingly—more violently than ever.
’I’d back them eyes again’ the county, I would,’ he exclaimed, with a condescending enthusiasm. ’You’re
awful pretty, you are, Maud. I don’t know what came over me t’other night when Governor told me to buss
ye; but dang it, ye shan’t deny me now, and I’ll have a kiss, lass, in spite o’ thy blushes.’
- 269 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
He jumped from his elevated seat on the sideboard, and came swaggering toward me, with an odious grin,
and his arms extended. I started to my feet, absolutely transported with fury.
[pg 260]
’Come, Maud, you would not be ill-natured, sure? Arter all, it’s only our duty. Governor bid us kiss, didn’t
he?’
’There’s how it is wi’ all they cattle! You never knows your own mind—ye don’t,’ he said, surlily. ’You
make such a row about a bit o’ play. Drop it, will you? There’s no one a-harming you—is there? I’m not,
for sartain.’
And, with an angry chuckle, he turned on his heel, and left the room.
I think I was perfectly right to resist, with all the vehemence of which I was capable, this attempt to assume
an intimacy which, notwithstanding my uncle’s opinion to the contrary, seemed to me like an outrage.
Milly found me alone—not frightened, but very angry. I had quite made up my mind to complain to my
uncle, but the Curate was still with him; and, by the time he had gone, I was cooler. My awe of my uncle
had returned. I fancied that he would treat the whole affair as a mere playful piece of gallantry. So, with the
comfortable conviction that he had had a lesson, and would think twice before repeating his impertinence, I
resolved, with Milly’s approbation, to leave matters as they were.
Dudley, greatly to my comfort, was huffed with me, and hardly appeared, and was sulky and silent when he
did. I lived then in the pleasant anticipation of his departure, which, Milly thought, would be very soon.
My uncle had his Bible and his consolations; but it cannot have been pleasant to this old roué, converted
though he was—this refined man of fashion—to see his son grow up an outcast, and a Tony Lumpkin; for
whatever he may have thought of his natural gifts, he must have known how mere a boor he was.
- 270 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I try to recall my then impressions of my uncle’s character. Grizzly and chaotic the image rises—silver
head, feet of clay. I as yet knew little of him.
I began to perceive that he was what Mary Quince used to call ’dreadful particular’—I suppose a little
selfish and impatient. He used to get cases of turtle from Liverpool. He drank claret and hock for his health,
and ate woodcock and other light [pg 261] and salutary dainties for the same reason; and was petulant and
vicious about the cooking of these, and the flavour and clearness of his coffee.
His conversation was easy, polished, and, with a sentimental glazing, cold; but across this artificial talk,
with its French rhymes, racy phrases, and fluent eloquence, like a streak of angry light, would, at intervals,
suddenly gleam some dismal thought of religion. I never could quite satisfy myself whether they were
affectations or genuine, like intermittent thrills of pain.
The light of his large eyes was very peculiar. I can liken it to nothing but the sheen of intense moonlight on
burnished metal. But that cannot express it. It glared white and suddenly—almost fatuous. I thought of
Moore’s lines whenever I looked on it:—
Oh, ye dead! oh, ye dead! whom we know by the light you give
From your cold gleaming eyes, though you move like men who live.
I never saw in any other eye the least glimmer of the same baleful effulgence. His fits, too—his hoverings
between life and death—between intellect and insanity—a dubious, marsh-fire existence, horrible to look
on!
I was puzzled even to comprehend his feelings toward his children. Sometimes it seemed to me that he was
ready to lay down his soul for them; at others, he looked and spoke almost as if he hated them. He talked as
if the image of death was always before him, yet he took a terrible interest in life, while seemingly dozing
away the dregs of his days in sight of his coffin.
Oh! Uncle Silas, tremendous figure in the past, burning always in memory in the same awful lights; the
fixed white face of scorn and anguish! It seems as if the Woman of Endor had led me to that chamber and
showed me a spectre.
- 271 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Dudley had not left Bartram-Haugh when a little note reached me from Lady Knollys. It said—
’DEAREST MAUD,—I have written by this post to Silas, beseeching a loan of you and my Cousin Milly. I
see no reason your uncle can possibly have for refusing me; and, therefore, I count confidently on seeing
you both at Elverston to-morrow, to stay for at least a week. I have hardly a creature to meet you. I have
been disappointed in several visitors; but another time we shall [pg 262] have a gayer house. Tell
Milly—with my love—that I will not forgive her if she fails to accompany you.
’MONICA KNOLLYS.’
Milly and I were both afraid that Uncle Silas would refuse his consent, although we could not divine any
sound reason for his doing so, and there were many in favour of his improving the opportunity of allowing
poor Milly to see some persons of her own sex above the rank of menials.
At about twelve o’clock my uncle sent for us, and, to our great delight, announced his consent, and wished
us a very happy excursion.
CHAPTER XLII
So Milly and I drove through the gabled high street of Feltram next day. We saw my gracious cousin
smoking with a man like a groom, at the door of the ’Plume of Feathers.’ I drew myself back as we passed,
and Milly popped her head out of the window.
- 272 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I’m blessed,’ said she, laughing, ’if he hadn’t his thumb to his nose, and winding up his little finger, the
way he does with old Wyat—L’Amour, ye know; and you may be sure he said something funny, for Jim
Jolliter was laughin’, with his pipe in his hand.’
’I wish I had not seen him, Milly. I feel as if it were an ill omen. He always looks so cross; and I dare say he
wished us some ill,’ I said.
’No, no, you don’t know Dudley: if he were angry, he’d say nothing that’s funny; no, he’s not vexed, only
shamming vexed.’
The scenery through which we passed was very pretty. The road brought us through a narrow and wooded
glen. Such [pg 263] studies of ivied rocks and twisted roots! A little stream tinkled lonely through the
hollow. Poor Milly! In her odd way she made herself companionable. I have sometimes fancied an
enjoyment of natural scenery not so much a faculty as an acquirement. It is so exquisite in the instructed, so
strangely absent in uneducated humanity. But certainly with Milly it was inborn and hearty; and so she
could enter into my raptures, and requite them.
Then over one of those beautiful Derbyshire moors we drove, and so into a wide wooded hollow, where was
our first view of Cousin Monica’s pretty gabled house, beautified with that indescribable air of shelter and
comfort which belongs to an old English residence, with old timber grouped round it, and something in its
aspect of the quaint old times and bygone merrymakings, saying sadly, but genially, ’Come in: I bid you
welcome. For two hundred years, or more, have I been the home of this beloved old family, whose
generations I have seen in the cradle and in the coffin, and whose mirth and sorrows and hospitalities I
remember. All their friends, like you, were welcome; and you, like them, will here enjoy the warm illusions
that cheat the sad conditions of mortality; and like them you will go your way, and others succeed you, till
at last I, too, shall yield to the general law of decay, and disappear.’
By this time poor Milly had grown very nervous; a state which she described in such very odd phraseology
as threw me, in spite of myself—for I affected an impressive gravity in lecturing her upon her
language—into a hearty fit of laughter.
I must mention, however, that in certain important points Milly was very essentially reformed. Her dress,
though not very fashionable, was no longer absurd. And I had drilled her into speaking and laughing quietly;
and for the rest I trusted to the indulgence which is always, I think, more honestly and easily obtained from
- 273 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Cousin Monica was out when we arrived; but we found that she had arranged a double-bedded room for me
and Milly, greatly to our content; and good Mary Quince was placed in the dressing-room beside us.
We had only just commenced our toilet when our hostess entered, as usual in high spirits, welcomed and
kissed us both again and again. She was, indeed, in extraordinary delight, for [pg 264] she had anticipated
some stratagem or evasion to prevent our visit; and in her usual way she spoke her mind as frankly about
Uncle Silas to poor Milly as she used to do of my dear father to me.
’I did not think he would let you come without a battle; and you know if he chose to be obstinate it would
not have been easy to get you out of the enchanted ground, for so it seems to be with that awful old wizard
in the midst of it. I mean, Silas, your papa, my dear. Honestly, is not he very like Michael Scott?’
’I never saw him,’ answered poor Milly. ’At least, that I’m aware of,’ she added, perceiving us smile. ’But I
do think he’s a thought like old Michael Dobbs, that sells the ferrets, maybe you mean him?’
’Why, you told me, Maud, that you and Milly were reading Walter Scott’s poems. Well, no matter. Michael
Scott, my dear, was a dead wizard, with ever so much silvery hair, lying in his grave for ever so many years,
with just life enough to scowl when they took his book; and you’ll find him in the "Lay of the Last
Minstrel," exactly like your papa, my dear. And my people tell me that your brother Dudley has been seen
drinking and smoking about Feltram this week. How long does he remain at home? Not very long, eh? And,
Maud, dear, he has not been making love to you? Well, I see; of course he has. And apropos of
love-making, I hope that impudent creature, Charles Oakley, has not been teasing you with notes or verses.’
’Indeed but he has though,’ interposed Miss Milly; a good deal to my chagrin, for I saw no particular reason
for placing his verses in Cousin Monica’s hands. So I confessed the two little copies of verses, with the
qualification, however, that I did not know from whom they came.
’Well now, dear Maud, have not I told you fifty times over to have nothing to say to him? I’ve found out,
my dear, he plays, and he is very much in debt. I’ve made a vow to pay no more for him. I’ve been such a
fool, you have no notion; and I’m speaking, you know, against myself; it would be such a relief if he were to
find a wife to support him; and he has been, I’m told, very sweet upon a rich old maid—a button-maker’s
sister, in Manchester.’
- 274 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 265]
’But don’t be frightened: you are richer as well as younger; and, no doubt, will have your chance first, my
dear; and in the meantime, I dare say, those verses, like Falstaff’s billet-doux, you know, are doing double
duty.’
I laughed, but the button-maker was a secret trouble to me; and I would have given I know not what that
Captain Oakley were one of the company, that I might treat him with the refined contempt which his deserts
and my dignity demanded.
Cousin Monica busied herself about Milly’s toilet, and was a very useful lady’s maid, chatting in her own
way all the time; and, at last, tapping Milly under the chin with her finger, she said, very complacently—
’I think I have succeeded, Miss Milly; look in the glass. She really is a very pretty creature.’
And Milly blushed, and looked with a shy gratification, which made her still prettier, on the mirror.
Milly indeed was very pretty. She looked much taller now that her dresses were made of the usual length. A
little plump she was, beautifully fair, with such azure eyes, and rich hair.
’The more you laugh the better, Milly, for you’ve got very pretty teeth—very pretty; and if you were my
daughter, or if your father would become president of a college of magicians, and give you up to me, I
venture to say I would place you very well; and even as it is we must try, my dear.’
So down to the drawing-room we went; and Cousin Monica entered, leading us both by the hands.
By this time the curtains were closed, and the drawing-room dependent on the pleasant glow of the fire, and
the slight provisional illumination usual before dinner.
’Here are my two cousins,’ began Lady Knollys: ’this is Miss Ruthyn, of Knowl, whom I take the liberty of
calling Maud; and this is Miss Millicent Ruthyn, Silas’s daughter, you know, whom I venture to call Milly;
and they are very pretty, as you will see, when we get a little more light, and they know it very well
themselves.’
- 275 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And as she spoke, a frank-eyed, gentle, prettyish lady, not so tall as I, but with a very kind face, rose up
from a book of prints, and, smiling, took our hands.
She was by no means young, as I then counted youth—past thirty, I suppose—and with an air that was very
quiet, and [pg 266] friendly, and engaging. She had never been a mere fashionable woman plainly; but she
had the ease and polish of the best society, and seemed to take a kindly interest both in Milly and me; and
Cousin Monica called her Mary, and sometimes Polly. That was all I knew of her for the present.
So very pleasantly the time passed by till the dressing-bell rang, and we ran away to our room.
’Did I say anything very bad?’ asked poor Milly, standing exactly before me, so soon as our door was shut.
’You look extremely pretty, Milly; and not a bit like a fool.’
’I watch everything. I think I’ll learn it at last; but it comes a little troublesome at first; and they do talk
different from what I used—you were quite right there.’
When we returned to the drawing-room, we found the party already assembled, and chatting, evidently with
spirit.
The village doctor, whose name I forget, a small man, grey, with shrewd grey eyes, sharp and mulberry
nose, whose conflagration extended to his rugged cheeks, and touched his chin and forehead, was
conversing, no doubt agreeably, with Mary, as Cousin Monica called her guest.
’Mr. Carysbroke.’
And Milly was quite right: that gentleman chatting with Lady Knollys, his elbow resting on the
chimney-piece, was, indeed, our acquaintance of the Windmill Wood. He instantly recognised us, and met
us with his pleased and intelligent smile.
- 276 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I was just trying to describe to Lady Knollys the charming scenery of the Windmill Wood, among which I
was so fortunate as to make your acquaintance, Miss Ruthyn. Even in this beautiful county I know of
nothing prettier.’
Then he sketched it, as it were, with a few light but glowing words.
’What a sweet scene!’ said Cousin Monica: ’only think of her never bringing me through it. She reserves it,
I fancy, for her romantic adventures; and you, I know, are very benevolent, Ilbury, and all that kind of thing;
but I am not quite certain that you would have walked along that narrow parapet, over a [pg 267] river, to
visit a sick old woman, if you had not happened to see two very pretty demoiselles on the other side.’
’What an ill-natured speech! I must either forfeit my character for disinterested benevolence, so justly
admired, or disavow a motive that does such infinite credit to my taste,’ exclaimed Mr. Carysbroke. ’I think
a charitable person would have said that a philanthropist, in prosecuting his virtuous, but perilous vocation,
was unexpectedly rewarded by a vision of angels.’
’And with these angels loitered away the time which ought to have been devoted to good Mother Hubbard,
in her fit of lumbago, and returned without having set eyes on that afflicted Christian, to amaze his worthy
sister with poetic babblings about wood-nymphs and such pagan impieties,’ rejoined Lady Knollys.
’Well, be just,’ he replied, laughing; ’did not I go next day and see the patient?’
’Yes; next day you went by the same route—in quest of the dryads, I am afraid—and were rewarded by the
spectacle of Mother Hubbard.’
’I do believe,’ said the lady whom as yet I knew only as Mary, ’that every word that Monica says is
perfectly true.’
’And if it be so, am I not all the more in need of help? Truth is simply the most dangerous kind of
defamation, and I really think I’m most cruelly persecuted.’
At this moment dinner was announced, and a meek and dapper little clergyman, with smooth pink cheeks,
and tresses parted down the middle, whom I had not seen before, emerged from shadow.
- 277 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
This little man was assigned to Milly, Mr. Carysbroke to me, and I know not how the remaining ladies
divided the doctor between them.
That dinner, the first at Elverston, I remember as a very pleasant repast. Everyone talked—it was impossible
that conversation should flag where Lady Knollys was; and Mr. Carysbroke was very agreeable and
amusing. At the other side of the table, the little pink curate, I was happy to see, was prattling away, with a
modest fluency, in an under-tone to Milly, who was following my instructions most conscientiously, and
speaking [pg 268] in so low a key that I could hardly hear at the opposite side one word she was saying.
That night Cousin Monica paid us a visit, as we sat chatting by the fire in our room; and I told her—
’I have just been telling Milly what an impression she has made. The pretty little clergyman—il en est
épris—he has evidently quite lost his heart to her. I dare say he’ll preach next Sunday on some of King
Solomon’s wise sayings about the irresistible strength of women.’
’Yes,’ said Lady Knollys,’ or maybe on the sensible text, "Whoso findeth a wife findeth a good thing, and
obtaineth favour," and so forth. At all events, I may say, Milly, whoso findeth a husband such as he, findeth
a tolerably good thing. He is an exemplary little creature, second son of Sir Harry Biddlepen, with a little
independent income of his own, beside his church revenues of ninety pounds a year; and I don’t think a
more harmless and docile little husband could be found anywhere; and I think, Miss Maud, you seemed a
good deal interested, too.’
I laughed and blushed, I suppose; and Cousin Monica, skipping after her wont to quite another matter, said
in her odd frank way—
’And how has Silas been?—not cross, I hope, or very odd. There was a rumour that your brother, Dudley,
had gone a soldiering to India, Milly, or somewhere; but that was all a story, for he has turned up, just as
usual. And what does he mean to do with himself? He has got some money now—your poor father’s will,
Maud. Surely he doesn’t mean to go on lounging and smoking away his life among poachers, and
prize-fighters, and worse people. He ought to go to Australia, like Thomas Swain, who, they say, is making
a fortune—a great fortune—and coming home again. That’s what your brother Dudley should do, if he has
either sense or spirit; but I suppose he won’t—too long abandoned to idleness and low company—and he’ll
not have a shilling left in a year or two. Does he know, I wonder, that his father has served a notice or
something on Dr. Bryerly, telling him to pay sixteen hundred pounds of poor Austin’s legacy to him, and
- 278 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
saying that he has paid debts of the young man, and holds his acknowledgments to that amount? He won’t
have a guinea in a year if he stays here. I’d give fifty pounds he [pg 269] was in Van Diemen’s Land—not
that I care for the cub, Milly, any more than you do; but I really don’t see any honest business he has in
England.’
’You know, Milly, you must not be talking about this when you go home to Bartram, because Silas would
prevent your coming to me any more if he thought I spoke so freely; but I can’t help it: so you must promise
to be more discreet than I. And I am told that all kinds of claims are about to be pressed against him, now
that he is thought to have got some money; and he has been cutting down oak and selling the bark, Doctor
Bryerly has been told, in that Windmill Wood; and he has kilns there for burning charcoal, and got a man
from Lancashire who understands it—Hawk, or something like that.’
’Ay, Hawkes—Dickon Hawkes; that’s Pegtop, you know, Maud,’ said Milly.
’Well, I dare say; but a man of very bad character, Dr. Bryerly says; and he has written to Mr. Danvers
about it—for that is what they call waste, cutting down and selling the timber, and the oakbark, and burning
the willows, and other trees that are turned into charcoal. It is all waste, and Dr. Bryerly is about to put a
stop to it.’
’Has he got your carriage for you, Maud, and your horses?’ asked Cousin Monica, suddenly.
’They have not come yet, but in a few weeks, Dudley says, positively—’
’Yes, Maud, the carriage and horses will always be coming in a few weeks, till the time is over; and
meanwhile the old travelling chariot and post-horses will do very well;’ and she laughed a little again.
’That’s why the stile’s pulled away at the paling, I suppose; and Beauty—Meg Hawkes, that is—is put there
to stop us going through; for I often spied the smoke beyond the windmill,’ observed Milly.
- 279 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I was very much shocked. It seemed to me quite incredible. I think Lady Knollys read my amazement and
my exalted estimate of the heinousness of the procedure in my face, for she said—
[pg 270]
’You know we can’t quite condemn Silas till we have heard what he has to say. He may have done it in
ignorance; or, it is just possible, he may have the right.’
’Quite true. He may have the right to cut down trees at Bartram-Haugh. At all events, I am sure he thinks he
has,’ I echoed.
The fact was, that I would not avow to myself a suspicion of Uncle Silas. Any falsehood there opened an
abyss beneath my feet into which I dared not look.
’And now, dear girls, good-night. You must be tired. We breakfast at a quarter past nine—not too early for
you, I know.’
I was so unpleasantly occupied, for some time after her departure, with the knaveries said to be practised
among the dense cover of the Windmill Wood, that I did not immediately recollect that we had omitted to
ask her any particulars about her guests.
’Cousin Monica says she’s engaged to be married, and I think I heard the Doctor call her Lady Mary, and I
intended asking her ever so much about her; but what she told us about cutting down the trees, and all that,
quite put it out of my head. We shall have time enough to-morrow, however, to ask questions. I like her
very much, I know.’
’Do you?’ said I, remembering that he had sat beside her for more than a quarter of an hour after tea in very
close and low-toned conversation; ’and have you any particular reason?’ I asked.
’Well, I heard her once or twice call him "dear," and she called him his Christian name, just like Lady
Knollys did—Ilbury, I think—and I saw him gi’ her a sly kiss as she was going up-stairs.’
- 280 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I laughed.
’Well, Milly,’ I said, ’I remarked something myself, I thought, like confidential relations; but if you really
saw them kiss on the staircase, the question is pretty well settled.’
’Ay, lass.’
[pg 271]
’Well, Maud, then. I did see them with the corner of my eye, and my back turned, when they did not think I
could spy anything, as plain as I see you now.’
I laughed again; but I felt an odd pang—something of mortification—something of regret; but I smiled very
gaily, as I stood before the glass, un-making my toilet preparatory to bed.
CHAPTER XLIII
Milly and I, thanks to our early Bartram hours, were first down next morning; and so soon as Cousin
Monica appeared we attacked her.
’So Lady Mary is the fiancée of Mr. Carysbroke,’ said I, very cleverly; ’and I think it was very wicked of
you to try and involve me in a flirtation with him yesterday.’
- 281 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And who told you that, pray?’ asked Lady Knollys, with a pleasant little laugh.
’But you did not flirt with Mr. Carysbroke, Maud, did you?’ she asked.
’No, certainly not; but that was not your doing, wicked woman, but my discretion. And now that we know
your secret, you must tell us all about her, and all about him; and in the first place, what is her name—Lady
Mary what?’ I demanded.
’Who would have thought you so cunning? Two country misses—two little nuns from the cloisters of
Bartram! Well, I [pg 272] suppose I must answer. It is vain trying to hide anything from you; but how on
earth did you find it out?’
’We’ll tell you that presently, but you shall first tell us who she is,’ I persisted.
’Well, that I will, of course, without compulsion. She is Lady Mary Carysbroke,’ said Lady Knollys.
’Yes, a relation; but who told you he was Mr. Carysbroke?’ asked Cousin Monica.
’It was L’Amour,’ answered Milly, with her blue eyes very wide open.
’What does the child mean? L’Amour! You don’t mean love?’ exclaimed Lady Knollys, puzzled in her turn.
- 282 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’What could he mean?’ exclaimed Lady Knollys, laughing, as it were, in soliloquy; ’and I did not mention
his name, I recollect now. He recognised you, and you him, when you came into the room yesterday; and
now you must tell me how you discovered that he and Lady Mary were to be married.’
So Milly restated her evidence, and Lady Knollys laughed unaccountably heartily; and she said—
’They will be so confounded! but they deserve it; and, remember, I did not say so.’
’All I say is, such a deceitful, dangerous pair of girls—all things considered—I never heard of before,’
exclaimed Lady Knollys. ’There’s no such thing as conspiring in your presence.’
’Good morning. I hope you slept well.’ She was addressing the lady and gentleman who were just entering
the room from the conservatory. ’You’ll hardly sleep so well to-night, when you have learned what eyes are
upon you. Here are two very pretty detectives who have found out your secret, and entirely by your
imprudence and their own cleverness have discovered that you are a pair of betrothed lovers, about to ratify
your vows at the hymeneal altar. I assure you I did not tell of you; you betrayed [pg 273] yourselves. If you
will talk in that confidential way on sofas, and call one another stealthily by your Christian names, and
actually kiss at the foot of the stairs, while a clever detective is scaling them, apparently with her back
toward you, you must only take the consequences, and be known prematurely as the hero and heroine of the
forthcoming paragraph in the "Morning Post."’
Milly and I were horribly confounded, but Cousin Monica was resolved to place us all upon the least formal
terms possible, and I believe she had set about it in the right way.
’And now, girls, I am going to make a counter-discovery, which, I fear, a little conflicts with yours. This
Mr. Carysbroke is Lord Ilbury, brother of this Lady Mary; and it is all my fault for not having done my
honours better; but you see what clever match-making little creatures they are.’
’You can’t think how flattered I am at being made the subject of a theory, even a mistaken one, by Miss
Ruthyn.’
And so, after our modest fit was over, Milly and I were very merry, like the rest, and we all grew a great
deal more intimate that morning.
- 283 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I think altogether those were the pleasantest and happiest days of my life: gay, intelligent, and kindly society
at home; charming excursions—sometimes riding—sometimes by carriage—to distant points of beauty in
the county. Evenings varied with music, reading, and spirited conversation. Now and then a visitor for a day
or two, and constantly some neighbour from the town, or its dependencies, dropt in. Of these I but
remember tall old Miss Wintletop, most entertaining of rustic old maids, with her nice lace and thick satin,
and her small, kindly round face—pretty, I dare say, in other days, and now frosty, but kindly—who told us
such delightful old stories of the county in her father’s and grandfather’s time; who knew the lineage of
every family in it, and could recount all its duels and elopements; give us illustrative snatches from old
election squibs, and lines from epitaphs, and tell exactly where all the old-world highway robberies had
been committed: how it fared with the chief delinquents after the assizes; and, above all, where, and of what
sort, the goblins and elves of the county had made themselves seen, from the phantom post-boy, who every
third night crossed Windale Moor, by the old coach-road, to the fat old ghost, in mulberry velvet, [pg 274]
who showed his great face, crutch, and ruffles, by moonlight, at the bow window of the old court-house that
was taken down in 1803.
You cannot imagine what agreeable evenings we passed in this society, or how rapidly my good Cousin
Milly improved in it. I remember well the intense suspense in which she and I awaited the answer from
Bartram-Haugh to kind Cousin Monica’s application for an extension of our leave of absence.
It came, and with it a note from Uncle Silas, which was curious, and, therefore, is printed here:—
’MY DEAR LADY KNOLLYS,—To your kind letter I say yes (that is, for another week, not a fortnight), with
all my heart. I am glad to hear that my starlings chatter so pleasantly; at all events the refrain is not that of
Sterne’s. They can get out; and do get out; and shall get out as much as they please. I am no gaoler, and shut
up nobody but myself. I have always thought that young people have too little liberty. My principle has been
to make little free men and women of them from the first. In morals, altogether—in intellect, more than we
allow—self-education is that which abides; and it only begins where constraint ends. Such is my theory. My
practice is consistent. Let them remain for a week longer, as you say. The horses shall be at Elverston on
Tuesday, the 7th. I shall be more than usually sad and solitary till their return; so pray, I selfishly entreat, do
not extend their absence. You will smile, remembering how little my health will allow me to see of them,
even when at home; but as Chaulieu so prettily says—I stupidly forget the words, but the sentiment is
- 284 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
this—"although concealed by a sylvan wall of leaves, impenetrable—(he is pursuing his favourite nymphs
through the alleys and intricacies of a rustic labyrinth)—yet, your songs, your prattle, and your laughter,
faint and far away, inspire my fancy; and, through my ears, I see your unseen smiles, your blushes, your
floating tresses, and your ivory feet; and so, though sad, am happy; though alone, in company;"—and such
is my case.
’One only request, and I have done. Pray remind them of a promise made to me. The Book of Life—the
fountain of life—it must be drunk of, night and morning, or their spiritual life expires.
[pg 275]
’And now, Heaven bless and keep you, my dear cousin; and with all assurances of affection to my beloved
niece and my child, believe me ever yours affectionately.
’SILAS RUTHYN.’
’And so, girls, you have Chaulieu and the evangelists; the French rhymester in his alley, and Silas in the
valley of the shadow of death; perfect liberty, and a peremptory order to return in a week;—all illustrating
one another. Poor Silas! old as he is, I don’t think his religion fits him.’
I really rather liked his letter. I was struggling hard to think well of him, and Cousin Monica knew it; and I
really think if I had not been by, she would often have been less severe on him.
As we were all sitting pleasantly about the breakfast table a day or two after, the sun shining on the pleasant
wintry landscape, Cousin Monica suddenly exclaimed—
’I quite forgot to tell you that Charles Oakley has written to say he is coming on Wednesday. I really don’t
want him. Poor Charlie! I wonder how they manage those doctors’ certificates. I know nothing ails him, and
he’d be much better with his regiment.’
Wednesday!—how odd. Exactly the day after my departure. I tried to look perfectly unconcerned. Lady
Knollys had addressed herself more to Lady Mary and Milly than to me, and nobody in particular was
- 285 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
looking at me. Notwithstanding, with my usual perversity, I felt myself blushing with a brilliancy that may
have been very becoming, but which was so intolerably provoking that I would have risen and left the room
but that matters would have been so infinitely worse. I could have boxed my odious ears. I could almost
have jumped from the window.
I felt that Lord Ilbury saw it. I saw Lady Mary’s eyes for a moment resting gravely on my tell-tale—my
lying cheeks—for I really had begun to think much less celestially of Captain Oakley. I was angry with
Cousin Monica, who, knowing my blushing infirmity, had mentioned her nephew so suddenly while I was
strapped by etiquette in my chair, with my face to the window, and two pair of most disconcerting eyes, at
least, opposite. I was angry with myself—generally angry—refused more tea rather dryly, and was laconic
to Lord Ilbury, all which, of [pg 276] course, was very cross and foolish; and afterwards, from my bed-room
window, I saw Cousin Monica and Lady Mary among the flowers, under the drawing-room window,
talking, as I instinctively knew, of that little incident. I was standing at the glass.
’My odious, stupid, perjured face’ I whispered, furiously, at the same time stamping on the floor, and giving
myself quite a smart slap on the cheek. ’I can’t go down—I’m ready to cry—I’ve a mind to return to
Bartram to-day; I am always blushing; and I wish that impudent Captain Oakley was at the bottom of the
sea.’
I was, perhaps, thinking more of Lord Ilbury than I was aware; and I am sure if Captain Oakley had arrived
that day, I should have treated him with most unjustifiable rudeness.
Notwithstanding this unfortunate blush, the remainder of our visit passed very happily for me. No one who
has not experienced it can have an idea how intimate a small party, such as ours, will grow in a short time in
a country house.
Of course, a young lady of a well-regulated mind cannot possibly care a pin about any one of the opposite
sex until she is well assured that he is beginning, at least, to like her better than all the world beside; but I
could not deny to myself that I was rather anxious to know more about Lord Ilbury than I actually did know.
There was a ’Peerage,’ in its bright scarlet and gold uniform, corpulent and tempting, upon the little marble
table in the drawing-room. I had many opportunities of consulting it, but I never could find courage to do
so.
- 286 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
For an inexperienced person it would have been a matter of several minutes, and during those minutes what
awful risk of surprise and detection. One day, all being quiet, I did venture, and actually, with a beating
heart, got so far as to find out the letter ’Il,’ when I heard a step outside the door, which opened a little bit,
and I heard Lady Knollys, luckily arrested at the entrance, talk some sentences outside, her hand still upon
the door-handle. I shut the book, as Mrs. Bluebeard might the door of the chamber of horrors at the sound of
her husband’s step, and skipped to a remote part of the room, where Cousin Knollys found me in a
mysterious state of agitation.
On any other subject I would have questioned Cousin Monica [pg 277] unhesitatingly; upon this, somehow,
I was dumb. I distrusted myself, and dreaded my odious habit of blushing, and knew that I should look so
horribly guilty, and become so agitated and odd, that she would have reasonably concluded that I had quite
lost my heart to him.
After the lesson I had received, and my narrow escape of detection in the very act, you may be sure I never
trusted myself in the vicinity of that fat and cruel ’Peerage,’ which possessed the secret, but would not
disclose without compromising me.
In this state of tantalizing darkness and conjecture I should have departed, had not Cousin Monica quite
spontaneously relieved me.
The night before our departure she sat with us in our room, chatting a little farewell gossip.
’I think him clever and accomplished, and amusing; but he sometimes appears to me very melancholy—that
is, for a few minutes together—and then, I fancy, with an effort, re-engages in our conversation.’
’Yes, poor Ilbury! He lost his brother only about five months since, and is only beginning to recover his
spirits a little. They were very much attached, and people thought that he would have succeeded to the title,
had he lived, because Ilbury is difficile—or a philosopher—or a Saint Kevin; and, in fact, has begun to be
treated as a premature old bachelor.’
’What a charming person his sister, Lady Mary, is. She has made me promise to write to her,’ I said, I
suppose—such hypocrites are we—to prove to Cousin Knollys that I did not care particularly to hear
anything more about him.
- 287 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Yes, and so devoted to him. He came down here, and took The Grange, for change of scene and
solitude—of all things the worst for a man in grief—a morbid whim, as he is beginning to find out; for he is
very glad to stay here, and confesses that he is much better since he came. His letters are still addressed to
him as Mr. Carysbroke; for he fancied if his rank were known, that the county people would have been
calling upon him, and so he would have found himself soon involved in a tiresome round of dinners, and
must have gone somewhere else. You saw him, Milly, at Bartram, before Maud came?’
[pg 278]
’He thought, as he had accepted the trusteeship, that he could hardly, residing so near, omit to visit Silas. He
was very much struck and interested by him, and he has a better opinion of him—you are not angry,
Milly—than some ill-natured people I could name; and he says that the cutting down of the trees will turn
out to have been a mere slip. But these slips don’t occur with clever men in other things; and some persons
have a way of always making them in their own favour. And, to talk of other things, I suspect that you and
Milly will probably see Ilbury at Bartram; for I think he likes you very much.’
So our pleasant visit was over. Milly’s good little curate had been much thrown in her way by our deep and
dangerous cousin Monica. He was most laudably steady; and his flirtation advanced upon the field of
theology, where, happily, Milly’s little reading had been concentrated. A mild and earnest interest in poor,
pretty Milly’s orthodoxy was the leading feature of his case; and I was highly amused at her references to
me, when we had retired at night, upon the points which she had disputed with him, and her anxious reports
of their low-toned conferences, carried on upon a sequestered ottoman, where he patted and stroked his
crossed leg, as he smiled tenderly and shook his head at her questionable doctrine. Milly’s reverence for her
instructor, and his admiration, grew daily; and he was known among us as Milly’s confessor.
He took luncheon with us on the day of our departure, and with an adroit privacy, which in a layman would
have been sly, presented her, in right of his holy calling, with a little book, the binding of which was
mediaeval and costly, and whose letter-press dealt in a way which he commended, with some points on
which she was not satisfactory; and she found on the fly-leaf this little inscription:—’Presented to Miss
Millicent Ruthyn by an earnest well-wisher, 1st December 1844.’ A text, very neatly penned, followed this;
- 288 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
and the ’presentation’ was made unctiously indeed, but with a blush, as well as the accustomed smile, and
with eyes that were lowered.
The early crimson sun of December had gone down behind the hills before we took our seats in the carriage.
Lord Ilbury leaned with his elbow on the carriage window, looking in, and he said to me—
[pg 279]
’I really don’t know what we shall do, Miss Ruthyn; we shall all feel so lonely. For myself, I think I shall
run away to Grange.’
His hand still rested on the window, and the Rev. Sprigge Biddlepen was standing with a saddened smirk on
the door steps, when the whip smacked, the horses scrambled into motion, and away we rolled down the
avenue, leaving behind us the pleasantest house and hostess in the world, and trotting fleetly into darkness
towards Bartram-Haugh.
We were both rather silent. Milly had her book in her lap, and I saw her every now and then try to read her
’earnest well-wisher’s’ little inscription, but there was not light to read by.
When we reached the great gate of Bartram-Haugh it was dark. Old Crowl, who kept the gate, I heard
enjoining the postilion to make no avoidable noise at the hall-door, for the odd but startling reason that he
believed my uncle ’would be dead by this time.’
Very much shocked and frightened, we stopped the carriage, and questioned the tremulous old porter.
Uncle Silas, it seemed, had been ’silly-ish’ all yesterday, and ’could not be woke this morning,’ and ’the
doctor had been here twice, being now in the house.’
’Not as I’m aweer on, Miss; he lay at God’s mercy two hours agone; ’appen he’s in heaven be this time.’
’Drive on—drive fast,’ I said to the driver. ’Don’t be frightened, Milly; please Heaven we shall find all
going well.’
- 289 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
After some delay, during which my heart sank, and I quite gave up Uncle Silas, the aged little servant-man
opened the door, and trotted shakily down the steps to the carriage side.
Uncle Silas had been at death’s door for hours; the question of life had trembled in the scale; but now the
doctor said ’he might do.’
I don’t think that Milly was so frightened as I. My heart beat, and I was trembling so that I could hardly get
up-stairs.
[pg 280]
CHAPTER XLIV
A FRIEND ARISES
At the top of the great staircase I was glad to see the friendly face of Mary Quince, who stood, candle in
hand, greeting us with many little courtesies, and a very haggard and pallid smile.
’All well, and you are well, Mary? and oh! tell us quickly how is Uncle Silas?’
’We thought he was gone, Miss, this morning, but doing fairly now; doctor says in a trance like. I was
helping old Wyat most of the day, and was there when doctor blooded him, an’ he spoke at last; but he must
be awful weak, he took a deal o’ blood from his arm, Miss; I held the basin.’
- 290 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Well, he’s better, doctor says; he talked some, and doctor says if he goes off asleep again, and begins
a-snoring like he did before, we’re to loose the bandage, and let him bleed till he comes to his self again;
which, it seems to me and Wyat, is the same thing a’most as saying he’s to be killed off-hand, for I don’t
believe he has a drop to spare, as you’ll say likewise, Miss, if you’ll please look in the basin.’
This was not an invitation with which I cared to comply. I thought I was going to faint. I sat on the stairs
and sipped a little water, and Quince sprinkled a little in my face, and my strength returned.
Milly must have felt her father’s danger more than I, for she was affectionate, and loved him from habit and
relation, although he was not kind to her. But I was more nervous and more impetuous, and my feelings
both stimulated and overpowered me more easily. The moment I was able to stand I said—thinking of
nothing but the one idea—
I entered his sitting-room; a common ’dip’ candle hanging [pg 281] like the tower of Pisa all to one side,
with a dim, long wick, in a greasy candlestick, profaned the table of the fastidious invalid. The light was
little better than darkness, and I crossed the room swiftly, still transfixed by the one idea of seeing my uncle.
His bed-room door beside the fireplace stood partly open, and I looked in.
Old Wyat, a white, high-cauled ghost, was pottering in her slippers in the shadow at the far side of the bed.
The doctor, a stout little bald man, with a paunch and a big bunch of seals, stood with his back to the
fireplace, which corresponded with that in the next room, eyeing his patient through the curtains of the bed
with a listless sort of importance.
The head of the large four-poster rested against the opposite wall. Its foot was presented toward the
fireplace; but the curtains at the side, which alone I could see from my position, were closed.
The little doctor knew me, and thinking me, I suppose, a person of consequence, removed his hands from
behind him, suffering the skirts of his coat to fall forward, and with great celerity and gravity made me a
low but important bow; then choosing more particularly to make my acquaintance he further advanced, and
with another reverence he introduced himself as Doctor Jolks, in a murmured diapason. He bowed me back
- 291 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
again into my uncle’s study, and the light of old Wyat’s dreadful candle.
Doctor Jolks was suave and pompous. I longed for a fussy practitioner who would have got over the ground
in half the time.
Coma, madam; coma. Miss Ruthyn, your uncle, I may tell you, has been in a very critical state; highly so.
Coma of the most obstinate type. He would have sunk—he must have gone, in fact, had I not resorted to a
very extreme remedy, and bled him freely, which happily told precisely as we could have wished. A
wonderful constitution—a marvellous constitution—prodigious nervous fibre; the greatest pity in the world
he won’t give himself fair play. His habits, you know, are quite, I may say, destructive. We do our best—we
do all we can, but if the patient won’t cooperate it can’t possibly end satisfactorily.’
And Jolks accompanied this with an awful shrug. ’Is there [pg 282] anything? Do you think change of air?
What an awful complaint it is,’ I exclaimed.
’Why, we can hardly call it a complaint, Miss Ruthyn. I look upon it he has been poisoned—he has had, you
understand me,’ he pursued, observing my startled look, ’an overdose of opium; you know he takes opium
habitually; he takes it in laudanum, he takes it in water, and, most dangerous of all, he takes it solid, in
lozenges. I’ve known people take it moderately. I’ve known people take it to excess, but they all were
particular as to measure, and that is exactly the point I’ve tried to impress upon him. The habit, of course,
you understand is formed, there’s no uprooting that; but he won’t measure—he goes by the eye and by
sensation, which I need not tell you, Miss Ruthyn, is going by chance; and opium, as no doubt you are
aware, is strictly a poison; a poison, no doubt, which habit will enable you to partake of, I may say, in
considerable quantities, without fatal consequences, but still a poison; and to exhibit a poison so, is, I need
scarcely tell you, to trifle with death. He has been so threatened, and for a time he changes his haphazard
mode of dealing with it, and then returns; he may escape—of course, that is possible—but he may any day
overdo the thing. I don’t think the present crisis will result seriously. I am very glad, independently of the
honour of making your acquaintance, Miss Ruthyn, that you and your cousin have returned; for, however
zealous, I fear the servants are deficient in intelligence; and as in the event of a recurrence of the
symptoms—which, however, is not probable—I would beg to inform you of their nature, and how exactly
best to deal with them.’
- 292 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
So upon these points he delivered us a pompous little lecture, and begged that either Milly or I would
remain in the room with the patient until his return at two or three o’clock in the morning; a reappearance of
the coma ’might be very bad indeed.’
Of course Milly and I did as we were directed. We sat by the fire, scarcely daring to whisper. Uncle Silas,
about whom a new and dreadful suspicion began to haunt me, lay still and motionless as if he were actually
dead.
[pg 283]
If he believed his position to be as desperate as Lady Knollys had described it, was this, after all,
improbable? There were strange wild theories, I had been told, mixed up in his religion.
Sometimes, at an hour’s interval, a sign of life would come—a moan from that tall sheeted figure in the
bed—a moan and a pattering of the lips. Was it prayer—what was it? who could guess what thoughts were
passing behind that white-fillited forehead?
I had peeped at him: a white cloth steeped in vinegar and water was folded round his head; his great eyes
were closed, so were his marble lips; his figure straight, thin, and long, dressed in a white dressing-gown,
looked like a corpse ’laid out’ in the bed; his gaunt bandaged arm lay outside the sheet that covered his
body.
With this awful image of death we kept our vigil, until poor Milly grew so sleepy that old Wyat proposed
that she should take her place and watch with me.
Little as I liked the crone with the high-cauled cap, she would, at all events, keep awake, which Milly could
not. And so at one o’clock this new arrangement began.
’He went away wi’ himself yesternight, to Cloperton, Miss, to see the wrestling; it was to come off this
morning.’
- 293 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Not he.’
’He would na’ leave the sport for this, I’m thinking,’ and the old woman grinned uglily.
’When is he to return?’
So we grew silent, and again I thought of suicide, and of the unhappy old man, who just then whispered a
sentence or two to himself with a sigh.
For the next hour he had been quite silent, and old Wyat informed me that she must go down for candles.
Ours were already burnt down to the sockets.
’There’s a candle in the next room,’ I suggested, hating the idea of being left alone with the patient.
[pg 284]
’Hoot! Miss. I dare na’ set a candle but wax in his presence,’ whispered the old woman, scornfully.
’I think if we were to stir the fire, and put on a little more coal, we should have a great deal of light.’
’He’ll ha’ the candles,’ said Dame Wyat, doggedly; and she tottered from the chamber, muttering to herself;
and I heard her take her candle from the next room and depart, shutting the outer door after her.
Here was I then alone, but for this unearthly companion, whom I feared inexpressibly, at two o’clock, in the
vast old house of Bartram.
I stirred the fire. It was low, and would not blaze. I stood up, and, with my hand on the mantelpiece,
endeavoured to think of cheerful things. But it was a struggle against wind and tide—vain; and so I drifted
away into haunted regions.
Uncle Silas was perfectly still. I would not suffer myself to think of the number of dark rooms and passages
which now separated me from the other living tenants of the house. I awaited with a false composure the
- 294 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Over the mantelpiece was a looking-glass. At another time this might have helped to entertain my solitary
moments, but now I did not like to venture a peep. A small thick Bible lay on the chimneypiece, and leaning
its back against the mirror, I began to read in it with a mind as attentively directed as I could. While so
engaged in turning over the leaves, I lighted upon two or three odd-looking papers, which had been folded
into it. One was a broad printed thing, with names and dates written into blank spaces, and was about the
size of a quarter of a yard of very broad ribbon. The others were mere scraps, with ’Dudley Ruthyn’ penned
in my cousin’s vulgar round-hand at the foot. While I folded and replaced these, I really don’t know what
caused me to fancy that something was moving behind me, as I stood with my back toward the bed. I do not
recollect any sound whatever; but instinctively I glanced into the mirror, and my eyes were instantly fixed
by what I saw.
The figure of Uncle Silas rose up, and dressed in a long white morning gown, slid over the end of the bed,
and with two or three swift noiseless steps, stood behind me, with a death-like scowl and a simper.
Preternaturally tall and thin, he stood for a moment almost touching me, with the white bandage [pg 285]
pinned across his forehead, his bandaged arm stiffly by his side, and diving over my shoulder, with his long
thin hand he snatched the Bible, and whispered over my head—’The serpent beguiled her and she did eat;’
and after a momentary pause, he glided to the farthest window, and appeared to look out upon the midnight
prospect.
It was cold, but he did not seem to feel it. With the same inflexible scowl and smile, he continued to look
out for several minutes, and then with a great sigh, he sat down on the side of his bed, his face immovably
turned towards me, with the same painful look.
It seemed to me an hour before old Wyat came back; and never was lover made happier at sight of his
mistress than I to behold that withered crone.
You may be sure I did not prolong my watch. There was now plainly no risk of my uncle’s relapsing into
lethargy. I had a long hysterical fit of weeping when I got into my room, with honest Mary Quince by my
side.
Whenever I closed my eyes, the face of Uncle Silas was before me, as I had seen it reflected in the glass.
The sorceries of Bartram were enveloping me once more.
- 295 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Next morning the doctor said he was quite out of danger, but very weak. Milly and I saw him; and again in
our afternoon walk we saw the doctor marching under the trees in the direction of the Windmill Wood.
’Going down to see that poor girl there?’ he said, when he had made his salutation, prodding with his
levelled stick in the direction. ’Hawke, or Hawkes, I think.’
’Hawkes. She’s upon my dispensary list. Yes,’ said the doctor, looking into his little note-book—’Hawkes.’
’Rheumatic fever.’
’Not infectious?’
’Not the least—no more, as we say, Miss Ruthyn, than a broken leg,’ and he laughed obligingly.
So soon as the doctor had departed, Milly and I agreed to follow to Hawkes’ cottage and enquire more
particularly how she was. To say truth, I am afraid it was rather for the sake of giving our walk a purpose
and a point of termination, than [pg 286] for any very charitable interest we might have felt in the patient.
Over the inequalities of the upland slope, clumped with trees, we reached the gabled cottage, with its
neglected little farm-yard. A rheumatic old woman was the only attendant; and, having turned her ear in an
attitude of attention, which induced us in gradually exalted keys to enquire how Meg was, she informed us
in very loud tones that she had long lost her hearing and was perfectly deaf. And added considerately—
’When the man comes in, ’appen he’ll tell ye what ye want.’
Through the door of a small room at the further end of that in which we were, we could see a portion of the
narrow apartment of the patient, and hear her moans and the doctor’s voice.
’We’ll see him, Milly, when he comes out. Let us wait here.’
So we stood upon the door-stone awaiting him. The sounds of suffering had moved my compassion and
interested us for the sick girl.
- 296 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And the weather-stained red coat, the swarthy forbidding face and sooty locks of old Hawkes loomed in
sight, as he stumped, steadying himself with his stick, over the uneven pavement of the yard. He touched his
hat gruffly to me, but did not seem half to like our being where we were, for he looked surlily, and scratched
his head under his wide-awake.
’Ay, that’s it; she be comfortable enough, I warrant—more nor I. It be all Meg, and nout o’ Dickon.’
’Day the mare wor shod—Saturday. I talked a bit wi’ the workus folk, but they won’t gi’e nout—dang
’em—an’ how be I to do’t? It be all’ays hard bread wi’ Silas, an’ a deal harder now she’ ta’en them pains. I
won’t stan’ it much longer. Gammon! If she keeps on that way I’ll just cut. See how the workus fellahs ’ill
like that!’
’An’ does nothin’, bless him! ha, ha. No more nor that old deaf gammon there that costs me three tizzies a
week, and haint [pg 287] worth a h’porth—no more nor Meg there, that’s making all she can o’ them pains.
They be all a foolin’ o’ me, an’ thinks I don’t know’t. Hey? we’ll see.’
All this time he was cutting a bit of tobacco into shreds on the window-stone.
’A workin’ man be same as a hoss; if he baint cared, he can’t work—’tisn’t in him:’ and with these words,
having by this time stuffed his pipe with tobacco, he poked the deaf lady, who was pattering about with her
back toward him, rather viciously with the point of his stick, and signed for a light.
’It baint in him, you can’t get it out o’ ’im, no more nor ye’ll draw smoke out o’ this,’ and he raised his pipe
an inch or two, with his thumb on the bowl, ’without backy and fire. ’Tisn’t in it.’
- 297 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Maybe,’ he rejoined.
By this time he received from the old deaf abigail a flaming roll of brown paper, and, touching his hat to
me, he withdrew, lighting his pipe and sending up little white puffs, like the salute of a departing ship.
So he did not care to hear how his daughter was, and had only come here to light his pipe!
’We have been waiting to hear how your poor patient is to-day?’ I said.
’Very ill, indeed, and utterly neglected, I fear. If she were equal to it—but she’s not—I think she ought to be
removed to the hospital immediately.’
’That poor old woman is quite deaf, and the man is so surly and selfish! Could you recommend a nurse who
would stay here till she’s better? I will pay her with pleasure, and anything you think might be good for the
poor girl.’
So this was settled on the spot. Doctor Jolks was kind, like most men of his calling, and undertook to send
the nurse from Feltram with a few comforts for the patient; and he called Dickon to the yard-gate, and I
suppose told him of the arrangement; and Milly and I went to the poor girl’s door and asked, ’May we come
in?’
There was no answer. So, with the conventional construction of silence, we entered. Her looks showed how
ill she was. We [pg 288] adjusted her bed-clothes, and darkened the room, and did what we could for
her—noting, beside, what her comfort chiefly required. She did not answer any questions. She did not thank
us. I should almost have fancied that she had not perceived our presence, had I not observed her dark,
sunken eyes once or twice turned up towards my face, with a dismal look of wonder and enquiry.
The girl was very ill, and we went every day to see her. Sometimes she would answer our
questions—sometimes not. Thoughtful, observant, surly, she seemed; and as people like to be thanked, I
sometimes wonder that we continued to throw our bread upon these ungrateful waters. Milly was specially
impatient under this treatment, and protested against it, and finally refused to accompany me into poor
Beauty’s bed-room.
- 298 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I think, my good Meg,’ said I one day, as I stood by her bed—she was now recovering with the sure
reascent of youth—’that you ought to thank Miss Milly.’
’Very well, Meg; I only thought I’d ask you, for I think you ought.’
As I spoke, she very gently took just the tip of my finger, which hung close to her coverlet, in her fingers,
and drew it beneath, and before I was aware, burying her head in the clothes, she suddenly clasped my hand
in both hers to her lips, and kissed it passionately, again and again, sobbing. I felt her tears.
I tried to withdraw my hand, but she held it with an angry pull, continuing to weep and kiss it.
’Nout, Miss,’ she sobbed gently; and she continued to kiss my hand and weep. But suddenly she said, ’I
won’t thank Milly, for it’s a’ you; it baint her, she hadn’t the thought—no, no, it’s a’ you, Miss. I cried
hearty in the dark last night, thinkin’ o’ the apples, and the way I knocked them awa’ wi’ a pur o’ my foot,
the day father rapped me ower the head wi’ his stick; it was kind o’ you and very bad o’ me. I wish you’d
beat me, Miss; ye’re better to me than father or mother—better to me than a’; an’ I wish I could die for you,
Miss, for I’m not fit to look at you.’
[pg 289]
I did not know her history. I have never learned it since. She used to talk with the most utter self-abasement
before me. It was no religious feeling—it was a kind of expression of her love and worship of me—all the
more strange that she was naturally very proud. There was nothing she would not have borne from me
except the slightest suspicion of her entire devotion, or that she could in the most trifling way wrong or
deceive me.
I am not young now. I have had my sorrows, and with them all that wealth, virtually unlimited, can
command; and through the retrospect a few bright and pure lights quiver along my life’s dark stream—dark,
but for them; and these are shed, not by the splendour of a splendid fortune, but by two or three of the
simplest and kindest remembrances, such as the poorest and homeliest life may count up, and beside which,
- 299 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
in the quiet hours of memory, all artificial triumphs pale, and disappear, for they are never quenched by
time or distance, being founded on the affections, and so far heavenly.
CHAPTER XLV
A CHAPTER-FULL OF LOVERS
We had about this time a pleasant and quite unexpected visit from Lord Ilbury. He had come to pay his
respects, understanding that my uncle Silas was sufficiently recovered to see visitors. ’And I think I’ll run
up-stairs first, and see him, if he admits me, and then I have ever so long a message from my sister, Mary,
for you and Miss Millicent; but I had better dispose of my business first—don’t you think so?—and I shall
return in a few minutes.’
And as he spoke our tremulous old butler returned to say that Uncle Silas would be happy to see him. So he
departed; [pg 290] and you can’t think how pleasant our homely sitting-room looked with his coat and stick
in it—guarantees of his return.
’Do you think, Milly, he is going to speak about the timber, you know, that Cousin Knollys spoke of? I do
hope not.’
’So do I,’ said Milly. ’I wish he’d stayed a bit longer with us first, for if he does, father will sure to turn him
out of doors, and we’ll see no more of him.’
’I’m sure he likes us both equally, Milly; he talked a great deal to you at Elverston, and used to ask you so
often to sing those two pretty Lancashire ballads,’ I said; ’but you know when you were at your
controversies and religious exercises in the window, with that pillar of the church, the Rev. Spriggs
- 300 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Biddlepen—’
’Get awa’ wi’ your nonsense, Maud; how could I help answering when he dodged me up and down my
Testament and catechism?—an I ’most hate him, I tell you, and Cousin Knollys, you’re such fools, I do.
And whatever you say, the lord likes you uncommon, and well you know it, ye hussy.’
’I know no such thing; and you don’t think it, you hussy, and I really don’t care who likes me or who
doesn’t, except my relations; and I make the lord a present to you, if you’ll have him.’
In this strain were we talking when he re-entered the room, a little sooner than we had expected to see him.
Milly, who, you are to recollect, was only in process of reformation, and still retained something of the
Derbyshire dairymaid, gave me a little clandestine pinch on the arm just as he made his appearance.
’I just refused a present from her,’ said odious Milly, in answer to his enquiring look, ’because I knew she
could not spare it.’
The effect of all this was that I blushed one of my overpowering blushes. People told me they became me
very much; I hope so, for the misfortune was frequent; and I think nature owed me that compensation.
’It places you both in a most becoming light,’ said Lord [pg 291] Ilbury, quite innocently. ’I really don’t
know which most to admire—the generosity of the offer or of the refusal.’
’Well, it was kind, if you but knew. I’m ’most tempted to tell him,’ said Milly.
I checked her with a really angry look, and said, ’Perhaps you have not observed it; but I really think, for a
sensible person, my cousin Milly here talks more nonsense than any twenty other girls.’
’A twenty-girl power! That’s an immense compliment. I’ve the greatest respect for nonsense, I owe it so
much; and I really think if nonsense were banished, the earth would grow insupportable.’
’Thank you, Lord Ilbury,’ said Milly, who had grown quite easy in his company during our long visit at
Elverston; ’and I tell you, Miss Maud, if you grow saucy, I’ll accept your present, and what will you say
then?’
’I really don’t know; but just now I want to ask Lord Ilbury how he thinks my uncle looks; neither I nor
Milly have seen him since his illness.’
- 301 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Very much weaker, I think; but he may be gaining strength. Still, as my business was not quite pleasant, I
thought it better to postpone it, and if you think it would be right, I’ll write to Doctor Bryerly to ask him to
postpone the discussion for a little time.’
I at once assented, and thanked him; indeed, if I had had my way, the subject should never have been
mentioned, I felt so hardhearted and rapacious; but Lord Ilbury explained that the trustees were constrained
by the provisions of the will, and that I really had no power to release them; and I hoped that Uncle Silas
also understood all this.
’And now,’ said he, ’we’ve returned to Grange, my sister and I, and it is nearer than Elverston, so that we
are really neighbours; and Mary wants Lady Knollys to fix a time she owes us a visit, you know—and you
really must come at the same time; it will be so very pleasant, the same party exactly meeting in a new
scene; and we have not half explored our neighbourhood; and I’ve got down all those Spanish engravings I
told you of, and the Venetian missals, and all the rest. I think I remember very accurately the things you
were most interested by, and they’re all there; and really you must promise, you and Miss [pg 292] Millicent
Ruthyn. And I forgot to mention—you know you complained that you were ill supplied with books, so
Mary thought you would allow her to share her supply—they are the new books, you know—and when you
have read yours, you and she can exchange.’
What girl was ever quite frank about her likings? I don’t think I was more of a cheat than others; but I never
could tell of myself. It is quite true that this duplicity and reserve seldom deceives. Our hypocrisies are
forced upon some of our sex by the acuteness and vigilance of all in this field of enquiry; but if we are sly,
we are also lynx-eyed, capital detectives, most ingenious in fitting together the bits and dovetails of a
cumulative case; and in those affairs of love and liking, have a terrible exploratory instinct, and so, for the
most part, when detected we are found out not only to be in love, but to be rogues moreover.
Lady Mary was very kind; but had Lady Mary of her own mere motion taken all this trouble? Was there no
more energetic influence at the bottom of that welcome chest of books, which arrived only half an hour
later? The circulating library of those days was not the epidemic and ubiquitous influence to which it has
grown; and there were many places where it could not find you out.
Altogether that evening Bartram had acquired a peculiar beauty—a bright and mellow glow, in which even
its gate-posts and wheelbarrow were interesting, and next day came a little cloud—Dudley appeared.
- 302 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You may be sure he wants money,’ said Milly. ’He and father had words this morning.’
He took a chair at our luncheon, found fault with everything in his own laconic dialect, ate a good deal
notwithstanding, and was sulky, and with Milly snappish. To me, on the contrary, when Milly went into the
hall, he was mild and whimpering, and disposed to be confidential.
’There’s the Governor says he hasn’t a bob! Danged if I know how an old fellah in his bed-room muddles
away money at that rate. I don’t suppose he thinks I can git along without tin, and he knows them trustees
won’t gi’e me a tizzy till they get what they calls an opinion—dang ’em! Bryerly says he doubts it must all
go under settlement. They’ll settle me nicely [pg 293] if they do; and Governor knows all about it, and
won’t gi’e me a danged brass farthin’, an’ me wi’ bills to pay, an’ lawyers—dang ’em—writing letters. He
knows summat o’ that hisself, does Governor; and he might ha’ consideration a bit for his own flesh and
blood, I say. But he never does nout for none but hisself. I’ll sell his books and his jewels next fit he
takes—that’s how I’ll fit him.’
This amiable young man, glowering, with his elbows on the table and his fingers in his great whiskers,
followed his homily, where clergymen append the blessing, with a muttered variety of very different matter.
’Now, Maud,’ said he, pathetically, leaning back suddenly in his chair, with all his conscious beauty and
misfortunes in his face, ’is not it hard lines?’
I thought the appeal was going to shape itself into an application for money; but it did not.
’I never know’d a reel beauty—first-chop, of course, I mean—that wasn’t kind along of it, and I’m a fellah
as can’t git along without sympathy—that’s why I say it—an’ isn’t it hard lines? Now, say it’s hard
lines—haint it, Maud?’
I did not know exactly what hard lines meant, but I said—
And with this concession, not caring to hear any more in the same vein, I rose, intending to take my
departure.
’No, that’s jest it. I knew ye’d say it, Maud. Ye’re a kind lass—ye be—’tis in yer pretty face. I like ye awful,
I do—there’s not a handsomer lass in Liverpool nor Lunnon itself—no where.’
- 303 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
He had seized my hand, and trying to place his arm about my waist, essayed that salute which I had so
narrowly escaped on my first introduction.
’Don’t, sir,’ I exclaimed in high indignation, escaping at the same moment from his grasp.
’No offence, lass; no harm, Maud; you must not be so shy—we’re cousins, you know—an’ I wouldn’t hurt
ye, Maud, no more nor I’d knock my head off. I wouldn’t.’
I did not wait to hear the rest of his tender protestations, but, without showing how nervous I was, I glided
out of the room quietly, making an orderly retreat, the more meritorious as I heard him call after me
persuasively—’Come [pg 294] back, Maud. What are ye afeard on, lass? Come back, I say—do now;
there’s a good wench.’
As Milly and I were taking our walk that day, in the direction of the Windmill Wood, to which, in
consequence perhaps of some secret order, we had now free access, we saw Beauty, for the first time since
her illness, in the little yard, throwing grain to the poultry.
’How do you find yourself to-day, Meg? I am very glad to see you able to be about again; but I hope it is not
too soon.’
We were standing at the barred gate of the little enclosure, and quite close to Meg, who, however, did not
choose to raise her head, but, continuing to shower her grain and potato-skins among her hens and chickens,
said in a low tone—
’Father baint in sight? Look jist round a bit and say if ye see him.’
So Meg looked up, pale and thin, and with her old grave, observant eyes, and she said quietly—
’’Tisn’t that I’m not glad to see ye; but if father was to spy me talking friendly wi’ ye, now that I’m hearty,
and you havin’ no more call to me, he’d be all’ays a watching and thinkin’ I was tellin’ o’ tales, and ’appen
he’d want me to worrit ye for money, Miss Maud; an’ ’tisn’t here he’d spend it, but in the Feltram pottusses,
he would, and we want for nothin’ that’s good for us. But that’s how ’twould be, an’ he’d all’ays be a
jawing and a lickin’ of I; so don’t mind me, Miss Maud, and ’appen I might do ye a good turn some day.’
- 304 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
A few days after this little interview with Meg, as Milly and I were walking briskly—for it was a clear
frosty day—along the pleasant slopes of the sheep-walk, we were overtaken by Dudley Ruthyn. It was not a
pleasant surprise. There was this mitigation, however: we were on foot, and he driving in a dog-cart along
the track leading to the moor, with his dogs and gun. He brought his horse for a moment to a walk, and with
a careless nod to me, removing his short pipe from his mouth, he said—
’Governor’s callin’ for ye, Milly; and he told me to send you slick home to him if I saw you, and I think
he’ll gi’e ye some money; but ye better take him while he’s in the humour, lass, or mayhap ye’ll go long
without.’
[pg 295]
And with those words, apparently intent on his game, he nodded again, and, pipe in mouth, drove at a quick
trot over the slope of the hill, and disappeared.
So I agreed to await Milly’s return while she ran home, and rejoined me where I was. Away she ran, in high
spirits, and I wandered listlessly about in search of some convenient spot to sit down upon, for I was a little
tired.
She had not been gone five minutes, when I heard a step approaching, and looking round, saw the dog-cart
close by, the horse browsing on the short grass, and Dudley Ruthyn within a few paces of me.
’Ye see, Maud, I’ve bin thinkin’ why you’re so vexed wi’ me, an’ I thought I’d jest come back an’ ask ye
what I may a’ done to anger ye so; there’s no sin in that, I think—is there?’
’I’m not angry. I did not say so. I hope that’s enough,’ I said, startled; and, notwithstanding my speech, very
angry, for I felt instinctively that Milly’s despatch homeward was a mere trick, and I the dupe of this coarse
stratagem.
’Well then, if ye baint angry, so much the better, Maud. I only want to know why you’re afeard o’ me. I
never struck a man foul, much less hurt a girl, in my days; besides, Maud, I likes ye too well to hurt ye.
Dang it, lass, you’re my cousin, ye know, and cousins is all’ays together and lovin’ like, an’ none says
again’ it.’
- 305 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I’ve nothing to explain—there is nothing to explain. I’ve been quite friendly,’ I said, hurriedly.
’Friendly! Well, if there baint a cram! How can ye think it friendly, Maud, when ye won’t a’most shake
hands wi’ me? It’s enough to make a fellah sware, or cry a’most. Why d’ye like aggravatin’ a poor devil?
Now baint ye an ill-natured little puss, Maud, an’ I likin’ ye so well? You’re the prettiest lass in Derbyshire;
there’s nothin’ I wouldn’t do for ye.’
’Be so good, then, as to re-enter your dog-cart and drive away,’ I replied, very much incensed.
’Now, there it is again! Ye can’t speak me civil. Another fellah’d fly out, an’ maybe kiss ye for spite; but I
baint that sort, I’m all for coaxin’ and kindness, an’ ye won’t let me. What be you drivin’ at, Maud?’
’I think I’ve said very plainly, sir, that I wish to be alone. [pg 296] You’ve nothing to say, except utter
nonsense, and I’ve heard quite enough. Once for all, I beg, sir, that you will be so good as to leave me.’
’Well, now, look here, Maud; I’ll do anything you like—burn me if I don’t—if you’ll only jest be kind to
me, like cousins should. What did I ever do to vex you? If you think I like any lass better than you—some
fellah at Elverston’s bin talkin’, maybe—it’s nout but lies an’ nonsense. Not but there’s lots o’ wenches
likes me well enough, though I be a plain lad, and speaks my mind straight out.’
’I can’t see that you are so frank, sir, as you describe; you have just played a shabby trick to bring about this
absurd and most disagreeable interview.’
’And supposin’ I did send that fool, Milly, out o’ the way, to talk a bit wi’ you here, where’s the harm?
Dang it, lass, ye mustn’t be too hard. Didn’t I say I’d do whatever ye wished?’
’Ye mean to get along out o’ this? Well, now, I will. There! No use, of course, askin’ you to kiss and be
friends, before I go, as cousins should. Well, don’t be riled, lass, I’m not askin’ it; only mind, I do like you
awful, and ’appen I’ll find ye in better humour another time. Good-bye, Maud; I’ll make ye like me at last.’
And with these words, to my comfort, he addressed himself to his horse and pipe, and was soon honestly on
his way to the moor.
- 306 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XLVI
THE RIVALS
All the time that Dudley chose to persecute me with his odious society, I continued to walk at a brisk pace
toward home, so that I had nearly reached the house when Milly met me, with a note which had arrived for
me by the post, in her hand.
[pg 297]
’Here, Milly, are more verses. He is a very persevering poet, whoever he is.’ So I broke the seal; but this
time it was prose. And the first words were ’Captain Oakley!’
I confess to an odd sensation as these remarkable words met my eye. It might possibly be a proposal. I did
not wait to speculate, however, but read these sentences traced in the identical handwriting which had
copied the lines with which I had been twice favoured.
’Captain Oakley presents his compliments to Miss Ruthyn, and trusts she will excuse his venturing to ask
whether, during his short stay in Feltram, he might be permitted to pay his respects at Bartram-Haugh. He
has been making a short visit to his aunt, and could not find himself so near without at least attempting to
renew an acquaintance which he has never ceased to cherish in memory. If Miss Ruthyn would be so very
good as to favour him with ever so short a reply to the question he ventures most respectfully to ask, her
decision would reach him at the Hall Hotel, Feltram.’
’Well, he’s a roundabout fellah, anyhow. Couldn’t he come up and see you if he wanted to? They poeters,
they do love writing long yarns—don’t they?’ And with this reflection, Milly took the note and read it
through again.
- 307 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’It’s jolly polite anyhow, isn’t it Maud?’ said Milly, who had conned it over, and accepted it as a model
composition.
I must have been, I think, naturally a rather shrewd girl; and considering how very little I had seen of the
world—nothing in fact—I often wonder now at the sage conclusions at which I arrived.
Were I to answer this handsome and cunning fool according to his folly, in what position should I find
myself? No doubt my reply would induce a rejoinder, and that compel another note from me, and that invite
yet another from him; and however his might improve in warmth, they were sure not to abate. Was it his
impertinent plan, with this show of respect and ceremony, to drag me into a clandestine correspondence?
Inexperienced girl as I was, I fired at the idea of becoming his dupe, and fancying, perhaps, that there was
more in merely answering his note than it would have amounted to, I said—
’That kind of thing may answer very well with button-makers, but ladies don’t like it. What would your
papa think [pg 298] of it if he found that I had been writing to him, and seeing him without his permission?
If he wanted to see me he could have’—(I really did not know exactly what he could have done)—’he could
have timed his visit to Lady Knollys differently; at all events, he has no right to place me in an embarrassing
situation, and I am certain Cousin Knollys would say so; and I think his note both shabby and impertinent.’
Decision was not with me an intellectual process. When quite cool I was the most undecided of mortals, but
once my feelings were excited I was prompt and bold.
’I’ll give the note to Uncle Silas,’ I said, quickening my pace toward home; ’he’ll know what to do.’
But Milly, who, I fancy, had no objection to the little romance which the young officer proposed, told me
that she could not see her father, that he was ill, and not speaking to anyone.
’And arn’t ye making a plaguy row about nothin’? I lay a guinea if ye had never set eyes on Lord Ilbury
you’d a told him to come, and see ye, an’ welcome.’
’Don’t talk like a fool, Milly. You never knew me do anything deceitful. Lord Ilbury has no more to do with
it, you know very well, than the man in the moon.’
I was altogether very indignant. I did not speak another word to Milly. The proportions of the house are so
great, that it is a much longer walk than you would suppose from the hall-door to Uncle Silas’s room. But I
- 308 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
did not cool all that way; and it was not till I had just reached the lobby, and saw the sour, jealous face, and
high caul of old Wyat, and felt the influence of that neighbourhood, that I paused to reconsider. I fancied
there was a cool consciousness of success behind all the deferential phraseology of Captain Oakley, which
nettled me extremely. No; there could be no doubt. I tapped softly at the door.
’What is it now, Miss?’ snarled the querulous old woman, with her shrivelled fingers on the door-handle.
’He’s tired, and not a word from him all day long.’
’Awful bad in the night,’ said the old crone, with a sudden savage glare in my face, as if I had brought it
about.
[pg 299]
’No one does but old Wyat. There’s Milly there never asks neither—his own child!’
’Weakness, or what?’
’One o’ them fits. He’ll slide awa’ in one o’ them some day, and no one but old Wyat to know nor ask word
about it; that’s how ’twill be.’
’Will you please hand him this note, if he is well enough to look at it, and say I am at the door?’
She took it with a peevish nod and a grunt, closing the door in my face, and in a few minutes returned—
Uncle Silas, who, after his nightly horror or vision, lay extended on a sofa, with his faded yellow silk
dressing-gown about him, his long white hair hanging toward the ground, and that wild and feeble smile
lighting his face—a glimmer I feared to look upon—his long thin arms lay by his sides, with hands and
fingers that stirred not, except when now and then, with a feeble motion, he wet his temples and forehead
with eau de Cologne from a glass saucer placed beside him.
- 309 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Excellent girl! dutiful ward and niece!’ murmured the oracle; ’heaven reward you—your frank dealing is
your own safety and my peace. Sit you down, and say who is this Captain Oakley, when you made his
acquaintance, what his age, fortune, and expectations, and who the aunt he mentions.’
’Wyat—the white drops,’ he called, in a thin, stern tone. ’I’ll write a line presently. I can’t see visitors, and,
of course, you can’t receive young captains before you’ve come out. Farewell! God bless you, dear.’
Wyat was dropping the ’white’ restorative into a wine-glass and the room was redolent of ether. I was glad
to escape. The figures and whole mise en scène were unearthly.
’Well, Milly,’ I said, as I met her in the hall, ’your papa is going to write to him.’
I sometimes wonder whether Milly was right, and how I should have acted a few months earlier.
Next day whom should we meet in the Windmill Wood but Captain Oakley. The spot where this interesting
rencontre occurred was near that ruinous bridge on my sketch of which I had received so many
compliments. It was so great a surprise [pg 300] that I had not time to recollect my indignation, and, having
received him very affably, I found it impossible, during our brief interview, to recover my lost altitude.
After our greetings were over, and some compliments neatly made, he said—
’I had such a curious note from Mr. Silas Ruthyn. I am sure he thinks me a very impertinent fellow, for it
was really anything but inviting—extremely rude, in fact. But I could not quite see that because he does not
want me to invade his bed-room—an incursion I never dreamed of—I was not to present myself to you, who
had already honoured me with your acquaintance, with the sanction of those who were most interested in
your welfare, and who were just as well qualified as he, I fancy, to say who were qualified for such an
honour.’
’My uncle, Mr. Silas Ruthyn, you are aware, is my guardian; and this is my cousin, his daughter.’
This was an opportunity of becoming a little lofty, and I improved it. He raised his hat and bowed to Milly.
’I’m afraid I’ve been very rude and stupid. Mr. Ruthyn, of course, has a perfect right to—to—in fact, I was
not the least aware that I had the honour of so near a relation’s—a—a—and what exquisite scenery you
- 310 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
have! I think this country round Feltram particularly fine; and this Bartram-Haugh is, I venture to say, about
the very most beautiful spot in this beautiful region. I do assure you I am tempted beyond measure to make
Feltram and the Hall Hotel my head-quarters for at least a week. I only regret the foliage; but your trees
show wonderfully, even in winter, so many of them have got that ivy about them. They say it spoils trees,
but it certainly beautifies them. I have just ten days’ leave unexpired; I wish I could induce you to advise me
how to apply them. What shall I do, Miss Ruthyn?’
’I am the worst person in the world to make plans, even for myself, I find it so troublesome. What do you
say? Suppose you try Wales or Scotland, and climb up some of those fine mountains that look so well in
winter?’
’I should much prefer Feltram. I so wish you would recommend it. What is this pretty plant?’
’We call that Maud’s myrtle. She planted it, and it’s very pretty when it’s full in blow,’ said Milly.
[pg 301]
’Oh! planted by you?’ he said, very softly, with a momentary corresponding glance. ’May I—ever so
little—just a leaf?’
And without waiting for permission, he held a sprig of it next his waistcoat.
’Yes, it goes very prettily with those buttons. They are very pretty buttons; are not they, Milly? A present, a
souvenir, I dare say?’
This was a terrible hit at the button-maker, and I thought he looked a little oddly at me, but my countenance
was so ’bewitchingly simple’ that I suppose his suspicions were allayed.
Now, it was very odd of me, I must confess, to talk in this way, and to receive all those tender allusions
from a gentleman about whom I had spoken and felt so sharply only the evening before. But Bartram was
abominably lonely. A civilised person was a valuable waif or stray in that region of the picturesque and the
brutal; and to my lady reader especially, because she will probably be hardest upon me, I put it—can you
not recollect any such folly in your own past life? Can you not in as many minutes call to mind at least six
similar inconsistencies of your own practising? For my part, I really can’t see the advantage of being the
- 311 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
There was, indeed, no revival of the little sentiment which I had once experienced. When these things once
expire, I do believe they are as hard to revive as our dead lap-dogs, guinea-pigs, and parrots. It was my
perfect coolness which enabled me to chat, I flatter myself, so agreeably with the refined Captain, who
plainly thought me his captive, and was probably now and then thinking what was to be done to utilise that
little bit of Bartram, or to beautify some other, when he should see fit to become its master, as we rambled
over these wild but beautiful grounds.
It was just about then that Milly nudged me rather vehemently, and whispered ’Look there!’
I followed with mine the direction of her eyes, and saw my odious cousin, Dudley, in a flagrant pair of
cross-barred peg-tops, and what Milly before her reformation used to call other ’slops’ of corresponding
atrocity, approaching our refined little party with great strides. I really think that Milly was very [pg 302]
nearly ashamed of him. I certainly was. I had no apprehension, however, of the scene which was imminent.
The charming Captain mistook him probably for some rustic servant of the place, for he continued his
agreeable remarks up to the very moment when Dudley, whose face was pale with anger, and whose rapid
advance had not served to cool him, without recollecting to salute either Milly or me, accosted our elegant
companion as follows:—
’By your leave, master, baint you summat in the wrong box here, don’t you think?’
He had planted himself directly in his front, and looked unmistakably menacing.
’May I speak to him? Will you excuse me?’ said the Captain blandly.
’Ow—ay, they’ll excuse ye ready enough, I dessay; you’re to deal wi’ me though. Baint ye in the wrong box
now?’
’I’m not conscious, sir, of being in a box at all,’ replied the Captain, with severe disdain. ’It strikes me you
are disposed to get up a row. Let us, if you please, get a little apart from the ladies if that is your purpose.’
’I mean to turn you out o’ this the way ye came. If you make a row, so much the wuss for you, for I’ll lick
ye to fits.’
- 312 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Tell him not to fight,’ whispered Milly; ’he’ll a no chance wi’ Dudley.’
’Mr. Hawkes,’ I said, drawing Milly with me toward that unpromising mediator, ’pray prevent
unpleasantness and go between them.’
’An’ git licked o’ both sides? Rather not, Miss, thank ye,’ grinned Dickon, tranquilly.
’Who are you, sir?’ demanded our romantic acquaintance, with military sternness.
’I’ll tell you who you are—you’re Oakley, as stops at the Hall, that Governor wrote, over-night, not to dare
show your nose inside the grounds. You’re a half-starved cappen, come down here to look for a wife,
and——’
Before Dudley could finish his sentence, Captain Oakley, than whose face no regimentals could possibly
have been more scarlet, [pg 303] at that moment, struck with his switch at Dudley’s handsome features.
I don’t know how it was done—by some ’devilish cantrip slight.’ A smack was heard, and the Captain lay
on his back on the ground, with his mouth full of blood.
’How do ye like the taste o’ that?’ roared Dickon, from his post of observation.
In an instant Captain Oakley was on his feet again, hatless, looking quite frantic, and striking out at Dudley,
who was ducking and dipping quite coolly, and again the same horrid sound, only this time it was double,
like a quick postman’s knock, and Captain Oakley was on the grass again.
’Drop it, Dudley, I tell ye; you’ll kill him,’ screamed Milly.
But the devoted Captain, whose nose, and mouth, and shirt-front formed now but one great patch of blood,
and who was bleeding beside over one eye, dashed at him again.
- 313 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I turned away. I felt quite faint, and on the point of crying, with mere horror.
’He’ll break it now, if it ain’t already,’ cried Milly, alluding, as I afterwards understood, to the Captain’s
Grecian nose.
’Hooray! the dinner-service again, by ——,’ roared Dickon. ’Stick to that. Over the same ground—subsoil,
I say. He han’t enough yet.’
In a perfect tremor of disgust, I was making as quick a retreat as I could, and as I did, I heard Captain
Oakley shriek hoarsely—
’But you’re the son of a gentleman, and by —— you shall fight me as a gentleman.’
A yell of hooting laughter from Dudley and Dickon followed this sally.
[pg 304]
’Gi’e my love to the Colonel, and think o’ me when ye look in the glass—won’t ye? An’ so you’re goin’
arter all; well, follow what’s left o’ yer nose. Ye forgot some o’ yer ivories, didn’t ye, on th’ grass?’
These and many similar jibes followed the mangled Captain in his retreat.
- 314 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER XLVII
No one who has not experienced it can imagine the nervous disgust and horror which such a spectacle as we
had been forced in part to witness leaves upon the mind of a young person of my peculiar temperament.
It affected ever after my involuntary estimate of the principal actors in it. An exhibition of such thorough
inferiority, accompanied by such a shock to the feminine sense of elegance, is not forgotten by any woman.
Captain Oakley had been severely beaten by a smaller man. It was pitiable, but also undignified; and Milly’s
anxieties about his teeth and nose, though in a certain sense horrible, had also a painful suspicion of the
absurd.
People say, on the other hand, that superior prowess, even in such barbarous contests, inspires in our sex an
interest akin to admiration. I can positively say in my case it was quite the reverse. Dudley Ruthyn stood
lower than ever in my estimation; for though I feared him more, it was by reason of these brutal and
cold-blooded associations.
After this I lived in constant apprehension of being summoned to my uncle’s room, and being called on for
an explanation of my meeting with Captain Oakley, which, notwithstanding my perfect innocence, looked
suspicious, but no such inquisition resulted. Perhaps he did not suspect me; or, perhaps, he thought, not in
his haste, all women are liars, and did not [pg 305] care to hear what I might say. I rather lean to the latter
interpretation.
The exchequer just now, I suppose, by some means, was replenished, for next morning Dudley set off upon
one of his fashionable excursions, as poor Milly thought them, to Wolverhampton. And the same day Dr.
Bryerly arrived.
Milly and I, from my room window, saw him step from his vehicle to the court-yard.
A lean man, with sandy hair and whiskers, was in the chaise with him. Dr. Bryerly descended in the
unchangeable black suit that always looked new and never fitted him.
- 315 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The Doctor looked careworn, and older, I thought, by several years, than when I last saw him. He was not
shown up to my uncle’s room; on the contrary, Milly, who was more actively curious than I, ascertained
that our tremulous butler informed him that my uncle was not sufficiently well for an interview. Whereupon
Dr. Bryerly had pencilled a note, the reply to which was a message from Uncle Silas, saying that he would
be happy to see him in five minutes.
As Milly and I were conjecturing what it might mean, and before the five minutes had expired, Mary
Quince entered.
’Wyat bid me tell you, Miss, your uncle wants you this minute.’
When I entered his room, Uncle Silas was seated at the table, with his desk before him. He looked up. Could
anything be more dignified, suffering, and venerable?
’I sent for you, dear,’ he said very gently, extending his thin, white hand, and taking mine, which he held
affectionately while he spoke, ’because I desire to have no secrets, and wish you thoroughly to know all that
concerns your own interests while subject to my guardianship; and I am happy to think, my beloved niece,
that you requite my candour. Oh, here is the gentleman. Sit down, dear.’
Doctor Bryerly was advancing, as it seemed, to shake hands with Uncle Silas, who, however, rose with a
severe and haughty air, not the least over-acted, and made him a slow, ceremonious bow. I wondered how
the homely Doctor could confront so tranquilly that astounding statue of hauteur.
A faint and weary smile, rather sad than comtemptuous, was the only sign he showed of feeling his repulse.
[pg 306]
’How do you do, Miss?’ he said, extending his hand, and greeting me after his ungallant fashion, as if it
were an afterthought.
’I think I may as well take a chair, sir,’ said Doctor Bryerly, sitting down serenely, near the table, and
crossing his ungainly legs.
My uncle bowed.
- 316 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You understand the nature of the business, sir. Do you wish Miss Ruthyn to remain?’ asked Doctor
Bryerly.
’I sent for her, sir,’ replied my uncle, in a very gentle and sarcastic tone, a smile on his thin lips, and his
strangely-contorted eyebrows raised for a moment contemptuously. ’This gentleman, my dear Maud, thinks
proper to insinuate that I am robbing you. It surprises me a little, and, no doubt, you—I’ve nothing to
conceal, and wished you to be present while he favours me more particularly with his views. I’m right, I
think, in describing it as robbery, sir?’
’Why,’ said Doctor Bryerly thoughtfully, for he was treating the matter as one of right, and not of feeling,
’it would be, certainly, taking that which does not belong to you, and converting it to your own use; but, at
the worst, it would more resemble thieving, I think, than robbery.’
I saw Uncle Silas’s lip, eyelid, and thin cheek quiver and shrink, as if with a thrill of tic-douloureux, as
Doctor Bryerly spoke this unconsciously insulting answer. My uncle had, however, the self-command
which is learned at the gaming-table. He shrugged, with a chilly, sarcastic, little laugh, and a glance at me.
’Yes, waste—the felling and sale of timber in the Windmill Wood, the selling of oak bark and burning of
charcoal, as I’m informed,’ said Bryerly, as sadly and quietly as a man might relate a piece of intelligence
from the newspaper.
’Detectives? or private spies of your own—or, perhaps, my servants, bribed with my poor brother’s money?
A very high-minded procedure.’
My uncle sneered.
’I mean, sir, there has been no undue canvass for evidence, [pg 307] and the question is simply one of right;
and it is our duty to see that this inexperienced young lady is not defrauded.’
- 317 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’By anyone,’ said Doctor Bryerly, with a natural impenetrability that excited my admiration.
’Of course you come armed with an opinion?’ said my smiling uncle, insinuatingly.
’The case is before Mr. Serjeant Grinders. These bigwigs don’t return their cases sometimes so quickly as
we could wish.’
’My solicitor is quite clear upon it; and it seems to me there can be no question raised, but for form’s sake.’
’Yes, for form’s sake you take one, and in the meantime, upon a nice question of law, the surmises of a
thick-headed attorney and of an ingenious apoth—I beg pardon, physician—are sufficient warrant for telling
my niece and ward, in my presence, that I am defrauding her!’
My uncle leaned back in his chair, and smiled with a contemptuous patience over Doctor Bryerly’s head, as
he spoke.
’I don’t know whether I used that expression, sir, but I am speaking merely in a technical sense. I mean to
say, that, whether by mistake or otherwise, you are exercising a power which you don’t lawfully possess,
and that the effect of that is to impoverish the estate, and, by so much as it benefits you, to wrong this young
lady.’
’I’m a technical defrauder, I see, and your manner conveys the rest. I thank my God, sir, I am a very
different man from what I once was.’ Uncle Silas was speaking in a low tone, and with extraordinary
deliberation. ’I remember when I should have certainly knocked you down, sir, or tried it, at least, for a
great deal less.’
’But seriously, sir, what do you propose?’ asked Doctor Bryerly, sternly and a little flushed, for I think the
old man was stirred within him; and though he did not raise his voice, his manner was excited.
’I propose to defend my rights, sir,’ murmured Uncle Silas, very grim. ’I’m not without an opinion, though
you are.’
You seem to think, sir, that I have a pleasure in annoying you; you are quite wrong. I hate annoying
anyone—constitutionally—I hate it; but don’t you see, sir, the position I’m [pg 308] placed in? I wish I
- 318 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I’ve brought with me the Scotch steward from Tolkingden, your estate, Miss, and if you let us we will visit
the spot and make a note of what we observe, that is, assuming that you admit waste, and merely question
our law.’
’If you please, sir, you and your Scotchman shall do no such thing; and, bearing in mind that I neither deny
nor admit anything, you will please further never more to present yourself, under any pretext whatsoever,
either in this house or on the grounds of Bartram-Haugh, during my lifetime.’
Uncle Silas rose up with the same glassy smile and scowl, in token that the interview was ended.
’Good-bye, sir,’ said Doctor Bryerly, with a sad and thoughtful air, and hesitating for a moment, he said to
me, ’Do you think, Miss, you could afford me a word in the hall?’
’Not a word, sir,’ snarled Uncle Silas, with a white flash from his eyes.
Another pause.
’If you have anything to say to my ward, sir, you will please to say it here.’
Doctor Bryerly’s dark and homely face was turned on me with an expression of unspeakable compassion.
’I was going to say, that if you think of any way in which I can be of the least service, Miss, I’m ready to
act, that’s all; mind, any way.’
He hesitated, looking at me with the same expression as if he had something more to say; but he only
repeated—
- 319 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Won’t you shake hands, Doctor Bryerly, before you go?’ I said, eagerly approaching him.
Without a smile, with the same sad anxiety in his face, with his mind, as it seemed to me, on something else,
and irresolute whether to speak it or be silent, he took my fingers in a very cold hand, and holding it so, and
slowly shaking it, his grave and troubled glance unconsciously rested on Uncle Silas’s face, while in a sad
tone and absent way he said—
’Good-bye, Miss.’
[pg 309]
From before that sad gaze my uncle averted his strange eyes quickly, and looked, oddly, to the window.
In a moment more Doctor Bryerly let my hand go with a sigh, and with an abrupt little nod to me, he left the
room; and I heard that dismallest of sounds, the retreating footsteps of a true friend, lost.
’Lead us not into temptation; if we pray so, we must not mock the eternal Majesty of Heaven by walking
into temptation of our own accord.’
This oracular sentence was not uttered by my uncle until Doctor Bryerly had been gone at least five
minutes.
’I’ve forbid him my house, Maud—first, because his perfectly unconscious insolence tries my patience
nearly beyond endurance; and again, because I have heard unfavourable reports of him. On the question of
right which he disputes, I am perfectly informed. I am your tenant, my dear niece; when I am gone you will
learn how scrupulous I have been; you will see how, under the pressure of the most agonising pecuniary
difficulties, the terrific penalty of a misspent youth, I have been careful never by a hair’s breadth to
transgress the strict line of my legal privileges; alike, as your tenant, Maud, and as your guardian; how,
amid frightful agitations, I have kept myself, by the miraculous strength and grace vouchsafed me—pure.
’The world,’ he resumed after a short pause, ’has no faith in any man’s conversion; it never forgets what he
was, it never believes him anything better, it is an inexorable and stupid judge. What I was I will describe in
blacker terms, and with more heartfelt detestation, than my traducers—a reckless prodigal, a godless
profligate. Such I was; what I am, I am. If I had no hope beyond this world, of all men most miserable; but
with that hope, a sinner saved.’
- 320 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Then he waxed eloquent and mystical. I think his Swedenborgian studies had crossed his notions of religion
with strange lights. I never could follow him quite in these excursions into the region of symbolism. I only
recollect that he talked of the deluge and the waters of Mara, and said, ’I am washed—I am sprinkled,’ and
then, pausing, bathed his thin temples and forehead with eau de Cologne; a process which was, perhaps,
suggested by his imagery of sprinkling and so forth.
[pg 310]
Thus refreshed, he sighed and smiled, and passed to the subject of Doctor Bryerly.
’Of Doctor Bryerly, I know that he is sly, that he loves money, was born poor, and makes nothing by his
profession. But he possesses many thousand pounds, under my poor brother’s will, of your money; and he
has glided with, of course a modest "nolo episcopari," into the acting trusteeship, with all its multitudinous
opportunities, of your immense property. That is not doing so badly for a visionary Swedenborgian. Such a
man must prosper. But if he expected to make money of me, he is disappointed. Money, however, he will
make of his trusteeship, as you will see. It is a dangerous resolution. But if he will seek the life of Dives, the
worst I wish him is to find the death of Lazarus. But whether, like Lazarus, he be borne of angels into
Abraham’s bosom, or, like the rich man, only dies and is buried, and the rest, neither living nor dying do I
desire his company.’
Uncle Silas here seemed suddenly overtaken by exhaustion. He leaned back with a ghastly look, and his
lean features glistened with the dew of faintness. I screamed for Wyat. But he soon recovered sufficiently to
smile his odd smile, and with it and his frown, nodded and waved me away.
CHAPTER XLVIII
- 321 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My uncle, after all, was not ill that day, after the strange fashion of his malady, be it what it might. Old
Wyat repeated in her sour laconic way that there was ’nothing to speak of amiss with him.’ But there
remained with me a sense of pain and fear. Doctor Bryerly, notwithstanding my uncle’s sarcastic
reflections, remained, in my estimation, a true and wise friend. I had all my life been accustomed to rely
upon others, and here, haunted by many unavowed and ill-defined alarms and doubts, the disappearance [pg
311] of an active and able friend caused my heart to sink.
Still there remained my dear Cousin Monica, and my pleasant and trusted friend, Lord Ilbury; and in less
than a week arrived an invitation from Lady Mary to the Grange, for me and Milly, to meet Lady Knollys. It
was accompanied, she told me, by a note from Lord Ilbury to my uncle, supporting her request; and in the
afternoon I received a message to attend my uncle in his room.
’An invitation from Lady Mary Carysbroke for you and Milly to meet Monica Knollys; have you received
it?’ asked my uncle, so soon as I was seated. Answered in the affirmative, he continued—
’Now, Maud Ruthyn, I expect the truth from you; I have been frank, so shall you. Have you ever heard me
spoken ill of by Lady Knollys?’
I felt my cheeks flushing. I was returning his fierce cold gaze with a stupid stare, and remained dumb.
’I know it; but it is right you should answer; have you or have you not?’
I had to clear my voice twice or thrice. There was a kind of spasm in my throat.
There was a little interval of silence. I would have given the world to be, on any conditions, anywhere else
in the world.
- 322 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Surely, Maud, you don’t wish to deceive your guardian? Come, the question is a plain one, and I know the
truth already. I ask you again—have you ever heard me spoken ill of by Lady Knollys?’
’Lady Knollys,’ I said, half articulately,’ speaks very freely, and often half in jest; but,’ I continued,
observing something menacing in his face, ’I have heard her express disapprobation of some things you
have done.’
’Come, Maud,’ he continued, in a stern, though still a low key, ’did she not insinuate that charge—then, I
suppose, in a state of incubation, the other day presented here full-fledged, [pg 312] with beak and claws, by
that scheming apothecary—the statement that I was defrauding you by cutting down timber upon the
grounds?’
’She certainly did mention the circumstance; but she also argued that it might have been through ignorance
of the extent of your rights.’
’Come, come, Maud, you must not prevaricate, girl. I will have it. Does she not habitually speak
disparagingly of me, in your presence, and to you? Answer.’
I hung my head.
’Yes or no?’
’There, don’t cry; it may well shock you. Did she not, to your knowledge, say the same things in presence of
my child Millicent? I know it, I repeat—there is no use in hesitating; and I command you to answer.’
He wrote, with the scowl and smile so painful to witness, as he looked down upon the paper, and then he
placed the note before me—
- 323 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
It began—
’MY DEAR LADY KNOLLYS.—You have favoured me with a note, adding your request to that of Lord
Ilbury, that I should permit my ward and my daughter to avail themselves of Lady Mary’s invitation. Being
perfectly cognisant of the ill-feeling you have always and unaccountably cherished toward me, and also of
the terms in which you have had the delicacy and the conscience to speak of me before and to my child and
my ward, I can only express my amazement at the modesty of your request, while peremptorily refusing it.
And I shall conscientiously adopt effectual measures to prevent your ever again having an opportunity of
endeavouring to destroy my influence and authority over my ward and my child, by direct or insinuated
slander.
SILAS RUTHYN.’
[pg 313]
I was stunned; yet what could I plead against the blow that was to isolate me? I wept aloud, with my hands
clasped, looking on the marble face of the old man.
Without seeming to hear, he folded and sealed his note, and then proceeded to answer Lord Ilbury.
When that note was written, he placed it likewise before me, and I read it also through. It simply referred
him to Lady Knollys ’for an explanation of the unhappy circumstances which compelled him to decline an
invitation which it would have made his niece and his daughter so happy to accept.’
’You see, my dear Maud, how frank I am with you,’ he said, waving the open note, which I had just read,
slightly before he folded it. ’I think I may ask you to reciprocate my candour.’
Dismissed from this interview, I ran to Milly, who burst into tears from sheer disappointment, so we wept
and wailed together. But in my grief I think there was more reason.
- 324 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I sat down to the dismal task of writing to my dear Lady Knollys. I implored her to make her peace with my
uncle. I told her how frank he had been with me, and how he had shown me his sad reply to her letter. I told
her of the interview to which he had himself invited me with Dr. Bryerly; how little disturbed he was by the
accusation—no sign of guilt; quite the contrary, perfect confidence. I implored of her to think the best, and
remembering my isolation, to accomplish a reconciliation with Uncle Silas. ’Only think,’ I wrote, ’I only
nineteen, and two years of solitude before me. What a separation!’ No broken merchant ever signed the
schedule of his bankruptcy with a heavier heart than did I this letter.
The griefs of youth are like the wounds of the gods—there is an ichor which heals the scars from which it
flows: and thus Milly and I consoled ourselves, and next day enjoyed our ramble, our talk and readings,
with a wonderful resignation to the inevitable.
Milly and I stood in the relation of Lord Duberly to Doctor Pangloss. I was to mend her ’cackleology,’ and
the occupation amused us both. I think at the bottom of our submission to destiny lurked a hope that Uncle
Silas, the inexorable, would relent, or that Cousin Monica, that siren, would win and melt him to her
purpose.
Whatever comfort, however, I derived from the absence of [pg 314] Dudley was not to be of very long
duration; for one morning, as I was amusing myself alone, with a piece of worsted work, thinking, and just
at that moment not unpleasantly, of many things, my cousin Dudley entered the room.
’Back again, like a bad halfpenny, ye see. And how a’ ye bin ever since, lass? Purely, I warrant, be your
looks. I’m jolly glad to see ye, I am; no cattle going like ye, Maud.’
’I think I must ask you to let go my hand, as I can’t continue my work,’ I said, very stiffly, hoping to chill
his enthusiasm a little.
’Anything to pleasure ye, Maud, ’tain’t in my heart to refuse ye nout. I a’bin to Wolverhampton, lass—jolly
row there—and run over to Leamington; a’most broke my neck, faith, wi’ a borrowed horse arter the dogs;
ye would na care, Maud, if I broke my neck, would ye? Well, ’appen, jest a little,’ he good-naturedly
supplied, as I was silent.
’Little over a week since I left here, by George; and to me it’s half the almanac like; can ye guess the
reason, Maud?’
- 325 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Have you seen your sister, Milly, or your father, since your return?’ I asked coldly.
’They’ll keep, Maud, never mind ’em; it be you I want to see—it be you I wor thinkin’ on a’ the time. I tell
ye, lass, I’m all’ays a thinkin’ on ye.’
’I think you ought to go and see your father; you have been away, you say, some time. I don’t think it is
respectful,’ I said, a little sharply.
’If ye bid me go I’d a’most go, but I could na quite; there’s nout on earth I would na do for you, Maud,
excep’ leaving you.’
’And that,’ I said, with a petulant flush, ’is the only thing on earth I would ask you to do.’
’It is too bad!’ I muttered, with an indignant little pat of my foot and mimic stamp.
’Well, you lasses be queer cattle; ye’re angry wi’ me now, cos ye think I got into mischief—ye do, Maud;
ye know’t, ye buxsom little fool, down there at Wolverhampton; and jest for [pg 315] that ye’re ready to
turn me off again the minute I come back; ’tisn’t fair.’
’I don’t understand you, sir; and I beg that you’ll leave me.’
’Now, didn’t I tell ye about leavin’ ye, Maud? ’tis the only thing I can’t compass for yer sake. I’m jest a
child in yere hands, I am, ye know. I can lick a big fellah to pot as limp as a rag, by George!’—(his oaths
were not really so mild)—’ye see summat o’ that t’other day. Well, don’t be vexed, Maud; ’twas all along o’
you; ye know, I wor a bit jealous, ’appen; but anyhow I can do it; and look at me here, jest a child, I say, in
yer hands.’
’I wish you’d go away. Have you nothing to do, and no one to see? Why can’t you leave me alone, sir?’
’’Cos I can’t, Maud, that’s jest why; and I wonder, Maud, how can you be so ill-natured, when you see me
like this; how can ye?’
- 326 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I wish Milly would come,’ said I peevishly, looking toward the door.
’Well, I’ll tell you how it is, Maud. I may as well have it out. I like you better than any lass that ever I saw, a
deal; you’re nicer by chalks; there’s none like ye—there isn’t; and I wish you’d have me. I ha’n’t much
tin—father’s run through a deal, he’s pretty well up a tree, ye know; but though I baint so rich as some folk,
I’m a better man, ’appen; and if ye’d take a tidy lad, that likes ye awful, and ’id die for your sake, why here
he is.’
’I mean, Maud, if ye’ll marry me, you’ll never ha’ cause to complain; I’ll never let ye want for nout, nor
gi’e ye a wry word.’
I stood with my hand on the back of a chair, staring at Dudley; and looking, I dare say, as stupefied as I felt.
’There’s a good lass, ye would na deny me,’ said the odious creature, with one knee on the seat of the chair
behind which I was standing, and attempting to place his arm lovingly round my neck.
[pg 316]
This effectually roused me, and starting back, I stamped upon the ground with actual fury.
’What has there ever been, sir, in my conduct, words, or looks, to warrant this unparalleled audacity? But
that you are as stupid as you are impertinent, brutal, and ugly, you must, long ago, sir, have seen how I
dislike you. How dare you, sir? Don’t presume to obstruct me; I’m going to my uncle.’
He in turn looked a little confounded; and I passed his extended but motionless arm with a quick and angry
step.
He followed me a pace or two, however, before I reached the door, looking horridly angry, but stopped, and
only swore after me some of those ’wry words’ which I was never to have heard. I was myself, however,
too much incensed, and moving at too rapid a pace, to catch their import; and I had knocked at my uncle’s
door before I began to collect my thoughts.
- 327 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
He looked at me with a cold curiosity steadly for a few seconds, as I stood panting before him with flaming
cheeks.
The ejaculation savoured of ’the old man,’ to borrow his scriptural phrase, more than anything I had heard
from him before.
’How?’ he continued; ’how has Dudley insulted you, my dear child? Come, you’re excited; sit down; take
time, and tell me all about it. I did not know that Dudley was here.’
’I—he—it is an insult. He knew very well—he must know I dislike him; and he presumed to make a
proposal of marriage to me.’
’O—o—oh!’ exclaimed my uncle, with a prolonged intonation which plainly said, Is that the mighty matter?
He looked at me as he leaned back with the same steady curiosity, this time smiling, which somehow
frightened me, and his countenance looked to me wicked, like the face of a witch, with a guilt I could not
understand.
’And that is the amount of your complaint. He made you a formal proposal of marriage!’
[pg 317]
As I cooled, I began to feel just a very little disconcerted, and a suspicion was troubling me that possibly an
indifferent person might think that, having no more to complain of, my language was perhaps a little
exaggerated, and my demeanour a little too tempestuous.
- 328 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My uncle, I dare say, saw some symptoms of this misgiving, for, smiling still, he said—
’My dear Maud, however just, you appear to me a little cruel; you don’t seem to remember how much you
are yourself to blame; you have one faithful friend at least, whom I advise your consulting—I mean your
looking-glass. The foolish fellow is young, quite ignorant in the world’s ways. He is in love—desperately
enamoured.
And suffering prompts to desperate remedies. We must not be too hard on a rough but romantic young fool,
who talks according to his folly and his pain.’
CHAPTER XLIX
AN APPARITION
’But, after all,’ he suddenly resumed, as if a new thought had struck him, ’is it quite such folly, after all? It
really strikes me, dear Maud, that the subject may be worth a second thought. No, no, you won’t refuse to
hear me,’ he said, observing me on the point of protesting. ’I am, of course, assuming that you are fancy
free. I am assuming, too, that you don’t care twopence about Dudley, and even that you fancy you dislike
him. You know in that pleasant play, poor Sheridan—delightful fellow!—all our fine spirits are dead—he
makes Mrs. Malaprop say there is nothing like beginning with a little aversion. Now, though in matrimony,
of course, that is only a joke, yet in love, believe me, it is no such thing. His own marriage with Miss Ogle, I
know, was a case in point. She expressed a positive horror of him at their first acquaintance; and yet, I
believe, she would, a few [pg 318] months later, have died rather than not have married him.’
I was again about to speak, but with a smile he beckoned me into silence.
- 329 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’There are two or three points you must bear in mind. One of the happiest privileges of your fortune is that
you may, without imprudence, marry simply for love. There are few men in England who could offer you
an estate comparable with that you already possess; or, in fact, appreciably increase the splendour of your
fortune. If, therefore, he were in all other respects eligible, I can’t see that his poverty would be an objection
to weigh for one moment. He is quite a rough diamond. He has been, like many young men of the highest
rank, too much given up to athletic sports—to that society which constitutes the aristocracy of the ring and
the turf, and all that kind of thing. You see, I am putting all the worst points first. But I have known so many
young men in my day, after a madcap career of a few years among prizefighters, wrestlers, and
jockeys—learning their slang and affecting their manners—take up and cultivate the graces and the
decencies. There was poor dear Newgate, many degrees lower in that kind of frolic, who, when he grew
tired of it, became one of the most elegant and accomplished men in the House of Peers. Poor Newgate, he’s
gone, too! I could reckon up fifty of my early friends who all began like Dudley, and all turned out, more or
less, like Newgate.’
At this moment came a knock at the door, and Dudley put in his head most inopportunely for the vision of
his future graces and accomplishments.
’My good fellow,’ said his father, with a sharp sort of playfulness, ’I happen to be talking about my son, and
should rather not be overheard; you will, therefore, choose another time for your visit.’
Dudley hesitated gruffly at the door, but another look from his father dismissed him.
’And now, my dear, you are to remember that Dudley has fine qualities—the most affectionate son in his
rough way that ever father was blessed with; most admirable qualities—indomitable courage, and a high
sense of honour; and lastly, that he has the Ruthyn blood—the purest blood, I maintain it, in England.’
My uncle, as he said this, drew himself up a little, unconsciously, [pg 319] his thin hand laid lightly over his
heart with a little patting motion, and his countenance looked so strangely dignified and melancholy, that in
admiring contemplation of it I lost some sentences which followed next.
’Therefore, dear, naturally anxious that my boy should not be dismissed from home—as he must be, should
you persevere in rejecting his suit—I beg that you will reserve your decision to this day fortnight, when I
will with much pleasure hear what you may have to say on the subject. But till then, observe me, not a
word.’
- 330 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
That evening he and Dudley were closeted for a long time. I suspect that he lectured him on the psychology
of ladies; for a bouquet was laid beside my plate every morning at breakfast, which it must have been
troublesome to get, for the conservatory at Bartram was a desert. In a few days more an anonymous green
parrot arrived, in a gilt cage, with a little note in a clerk’s hand, addressed to ’Miss Ruthyn (of Knowl),
Bartram-Haugh,’ &c. It contained only ’Directions for caring green parrot,’ at the close of which,
underlined, the words appeared—’The bird’s name is Maud.’
The bouquets I invariably left on the table-cloth, where I found them—the bird I insisted on Milly’s keeping
as her property. During the intervening fortnight Dudley never appeared, as he used sometimes to do before,
at luncheon, nor looked in at the window as we were at breakfast. He contented himself with one day
placing himself in my way in the hall in his shooting accoutrements, and, with a clumsy, shuffling kind of
respect, and hat in hand, he said—
’I think, Miss, I must a spoke uncivil t’other day. I was so awful put about, and didn’t know no more nor a
child what I was saying; and I wanted to tell ye I’m sorry for it, and I beg your pardon—very humble, I do.’
I did not know what to say. I therefore said nothing, but made a grave inclination, and passed on.
Two or three times Milly and I saw him at a little distance in our walks. He never attempted to join us. Once
only he passed so near that some recognition was inevitable, and he stopped and in silence lifted his hat with
an awkward respect. But although he did not approach us, he was ostentatious with a kind of telegraphic
civility in the distance. He opened gates, he [pg 320] whistled his dogs to ’heel,’ he drove away cattle, and
then himself withdrew. I really think he watched us occasionally to render these services, for in this distant
way we encountered him decidedly oftener than we used to do before his flattering proposal of marriage.
You may be sure that we discussed, Milly and I, that occurrence pretty constantly in all sorts of moods.
Limited as had been her experience of human society, she very clearly saw now how far below its
presentable level was her hopeful brother.
The fortnight sped swiftly, as time always does when something we dislike and shrink from awaits us at its
close. I never saw Uncle Silas during that period. It may seem odd to those who merely read the report of
our last interview, in which his manner had been more playful and his talk more trifling than in any other,
that from it I had carried away a profounder sense of fear and insecurity than from any other. It was with a
foreboding of evil and an awful dejection that on a very dark day, in Milly’s room, I awaited the summons
- 331 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
As I looked from the window upon the slanting rain and leaden sky, and thought of the hated interview that
awaited me, I pressed my hand to my troubled heart, and murmured, ’O that I had wings like a dove! then
would I flee away, and be at rest.’
Just then the prattle of the parrot struck my ear. I looked round on the wire cage, and remembered the
words, ’The bird’s name is Maud.’
’Poor bird!’ I said. ’I dare say, Milly, it longs to get out. If it were a native of this country, would not you
like to open the window, and then the door of that cruel cage, and let the poor thing fly away?’
’Master wants Miss Maud,’ said Wyat’s disagreeable tones, at the half-open door.
I followed in silence, with the pressure of a near alarm at my heart, like a person going to an operation.
When I entered the room, my heart beat so fast that I could hardly speak. The tall form of Uncle Silas rose
before me, and I made him a faltering reverence.
He darted from under his brows a wild, fierce glance at old [pg 321] Wyat, and pointed to the door
imperiously with his skeleton finger. The door shut, and we were alone.
He also stood—his white head bowed forward, the phosphoric glare of his strange eyes shone upon me from
under his brows—his finger-nails just rested on the table.
’You saw the luggage corded and addressed, as it stands ready for removal in the hall?’ he asked.
I had. Milly and I had read the cards which dangled from the trunk-handles and gun-case. The address
was—’Mr. Dudley R. Ruthyn, Paris, viâ Dover.’
’I am old—agitated—on the eve of a decision on which much depends. Pray relieve my suspense. Is my son
to leave Bartram to-day in sorrow, or to remain in joy? Pray answer quickly.’
- 332 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I stammered I know not what. I was incoherent—wild, perhaps; but somehow I expressed my meaning—my
unalterable decision. I thought his lips grew whiter and his eyes shone brighter as I spoke.
When I had quite made an end, he heaved a great sigh, and turning his eyes slowly to the right and the left,
like a man in a helpless distraction, he whispered—
I thought he was upon the point of fainting—a clay tint darkened the white of his face; and, seeming to
forget my presence, he sat down, looking with a despairing scowl on his ashy old hand, as it lay upon the
table.
I stood gazing at him, feeling almost as if I had murdered the old man—he still gazing askance, with an
imbecile scowl, upon his hand.
’Go?’ he said, looking up suddenly; and it seemed to me as if a stream of cold sheet-lightning had crossed
and enveloped me for a moment.
’Go?—oh!—a—yes—yes, Maud—go. I must see poor Dudley before his departure,’ he added, as it were, in
soliloquy.
Trembling lest he should revoke his permission to depart, I glided quickly and noiselessly from the room.
Old Wyat was prowling outside, with a cloth in her hand, pretending to dust the carved door-case. She
frowned a stare of enquiry [pg 322] over her shrunken arm on me, as I passed. Milly, who had been on the
watch, ran and met me. We heard my uncle’s voice, as I shut the door, calling Dudley. He had been waiting,
probably, in the adjoining room. I hurried into my chamber, with Milly at my side, and there my agitation
found relief in tears, as that of girlhood naturally does.
A little while after we saw from the window Dudley, looking, I thought, very pale, get into a vehicle, on the
top of which his luggage lay, and drive away from Bartram.
I began to take comfort. His departure was an inexpressible relief. His final departure! a distant journey!
- 333 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
We had tea in Milly’s room that night. Firelight and candles are inspiring. In that red glow I always felt and
feel more safe, as well as more comfortable, than in the daylight—quite irrationally, for we know the night
is the appointed day of such as love the darkness better than light, and evil walks thereby. But so it is.
Perhaps the very consciousness of external danger enhances the enjoyment of the well-lighted interior, just
as the storm does that roars and hurtles over the roof.
While Milly and I were talking, very cosily, a knock came to the room-door, and, without waiting for an
invitation to enter, old Wyat came in, and glowering at us, with her brown claw upon the door-handle, she
said to Milly—
’Ye must leave your funnin’, Miss Milly, and take your turn in your father’s room.’
’A wrought two hours in a fit arter Master Dudley went. ’Twill be the death o’ him, I’m thinkin’, poor old
fellah. I wor sorry myself when I saw Master Dudley a going off in the moist to-day, poor fellah. There’s
trouble enough in the family without a’ that; but ’twon’t be a family long, I’m thinkin’. Nout but trouble,
nout but trouble, since late changes came.’
Judging by the sour glance she threw on me as she said this, I concluded that I represented those ’late
changes’ to which all the sorrows of the house were referred.
I felt unhappy under the ill-will even of this odious old woman, being one of those unhappily constructed
mortals who cannot be indifferent when they reasonably ought, and always yearn after kindness, even that
of the worthless.
[pg 323]
’I must go. I wish you’d come wi’ me, Maud, I’m so afraid all alone,’ said Milly, imploringly.
’Certainly, Milly,’ I answered, not liking it, you may be sure; ’you shan’t sit there alone.’
So together we went, old Wyat cautioning us for our lives to make no noise.
- 334 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
We passed through the old man’s sitting-room, where that day had occurred his brief but momentous
interview with me, and his parting with his only son, and entered the bed-room at the farther end.
A low fire burned in the grate. The room was in a sort of twilight. A dim lamp near the foot of the bed at the
farther side was the only light burning there. Old Wyat whispered an injunction not to speak above our
breaths, nor to leave the fireside unless the sick man called or showed signs of weariness. These were the
directions of the doctor, who had been there.
So Milly and I sat ourselves down near the hearth, and old Wyat left us to our resources. We could hear the
patient breathe; but he was quite still. In whispers we talked; but our conversation flagged. I was, after my
wont, upbraiding myself for the suffering I had inflicted. After about half an hour’s desultory whispering,
and intervals, growing longer and longer, of silence, it was plain that Milly was falling asleep.
She strove against it, and I tried hard to keep her talking; but it would not do—sleep overcame her; and I
was the only person in that ghastly room in a state of perfect consciousness.
There were associations connected with my last vigil there to make my situation very nervous and
disagreeable. Had I not had so much to occupy my mind of a distinctly practical kind—Dudley’s audacious
suit, my uncle’s questionable toleration of it, and my own conduct throughout that most disagreeable period
of my existence,—I should have felt my present situation a great deal more.
As it was, I thought of my real troubles, and something of Cousin Knollys, and, I confess, a good deal of
Lord Ilbury. When looking towards the door, I thought I saw a human face, about the most terrible my fancy
could have called up, looking fixedly into the room. It was only a ’three-quarter,’ and not the whole
figure—the door hid that in a great measure, and I fancied I saw, too, a portion of the fingers. The face
gazed toward [pg 324] the bed, and in the imperfect light looked like a livid mask, with chalky eyes.
I had so often been startled by similar apparitions formed by accidental lights and shadows disguising
homely objects, that I stooped forward, expecting, though tremulously, to see this tremendous one in like
manner dissolve itself into its harmless elements; and now, to my unspeakable terror, I became perfectly
certain that I saw the countenance of Madame de la Rougierre.
With a cry, I started back, and shook Milly furiously from her trance.
- 335 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I clung so fast to Milly’s arm, cowering behind her, that she could not rise.
’Milly! Milly! Milly! Milly!’ I went on crying, like one struck with idiotcy, and unable to say anything else.
In a panic, Milly, who had seen nothing, and could conjecture nothing of the cause of my terror, jumped up,
and clinging to one another, we huddled together into the corner of the room, I still crying wildly, ’Milly!
Milly! Milly!’ and nothing else.
’What is it—where is it—what do you see?’ cried Milly, clinging to me as I did to her.
We heard a step softly approaching the open door, and, in a horrible sauve qui peut, we rushed and stumbled
together toward the light by Uncle Silas’s bed. But old Wyat’s voice and figure reassured us.
’Milly,’ I said, so soon as, pale and very faint, I reached my apartment, ’no power on earth shall ever tempt
me to enter that room again after dark.’
’Why, Maud dear, what, in Heaven’s name, did you see?’ said Milly, scarcely less terrified.
’Oh, I can’t; I can’t; I can’t, Milly. Never ask me. It is haunted. The room is haunted horribly.’
’Was it Charke?’ whispered Milly, looking over her shoulder, all aghast.
’No, no—don’t ask me; a fiend in a worse shape.’ I was [pg 325] relieved at last by a long fit of weeping;
and all night good Mary Quince sat by me, and Milly slept by my side. Starting and screaming, and drugged
with sal-volatile, I got through that night of supernatural terror, and saw the blessed light of heaven again.
Doctor Jolks, when he came to see my uncle in the morning, visited me also. He pronounced me very
hysterical, made minute enquiries respecting my hours and diet, asked what I had had for dinner yesterday.
There was something a little comforting in his cool and confident pooh-poohing of the ghost theory. The
result was, a regimen which excluded tea, and imposed chocolate and porter, earlier hours, and I forget all
- 336 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
beside; and he undertook to promise that, if I would but observe his directions, I should never see a ghost
again.
CHAPTER L
MILLY’S FAREWELL
A few days’ time saw me much better. Doctor Jolks was so contemptuously sturdy and positive on the
point, that I began to have comfortable doubts about the reality of my ghost; and having still a horror
indescribable of the illusion, if such it were, the room in which it appeared, and everything concerning it, I
would neither speak, nor, so far as I could, think of it.
So, though Bartram-Haugh was gloomy as well as beautiful, and some of its associations awful, and the
solitude that reigned there sometimes almost terrible, yet early hours, bracing exercise, and the fine air that
predominates that region, soon restored my nerves to a healthier tone.
But it seemed to me that Bartram-Haugh was to be to me a vale of tears; or rather, in my sad pilgrimage,
that valley of the shadow of death through which poor Christian fared alone and in the dark.
[pg 326]
One day Milly ran into the parlour, pale, with wet cheeks, and, without saying a word, threw her arms about
my neck, and burst into a paroxysm of weeping.
’What is it, Milly—what’s the matter, dear—what is it?’ I cried aghast, but returning her close embrace
heartily.
- 337 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Away, dear! where away? And leave me alone in this dreadful solitude, where he knows I shall die of fear
and grief without you? Oh! no—no, it must be a mistake.’
’I’m going to France, Maud—I’m going away. Mrs. Jolks is going to London, day ar’ter to-morrow, and
I’m to go wi’ her; and an old French lady, he says, from the school will meet me there, and bring me the rest
o’ the way.’
’Oh—ho—ho—ho—ho—o—o—o!’ cried poor Milly, hugging me closer still, with her head buried in my
shoulder, and swaying me about like a wrestler, in her agony.
’I never wor away from home afore, except that little bit wi’ you over there at Elverston; and you wor wi’
me then, Maud; an’ I love ye—better than Bartram—better than a’; an’ I think I’ll die, Maud, if they take
me away.’
I was just as wild in my woe as poor Milly; and it was not until we had wept together for a full
hour—sometimes standing—sometimes walking up and down the room—sometimes sitting and getting up
in turns to fall on one another’s necks,—that Milly, plucking her handkerchief from her pocket, drew a note
from it at the same time, which, as it fell upon the floor, she at once recollected to be one from Uncle Silas
to me.
’I wish to apprise my dear niece and ward of my plans. Milly proceeds to an admirable French school, as a
pensionnaire, and leaves this on Thursday next. If after three months’ trial she finds it in any way
objectionable, she returns to us. If, on the contrary, she finds it in all respects the charming residence it has
been presented to me, you, on the expiration of that period, join her there, until the temporary complication
of my affairs shall have been so far adjusted as to enable me to receive you once more at Bartram. Hoping
for happier days, and wishing to assure you that three months is the extreme limit of your separation [pg
327] from my poor Milly, I have written this, feeling alas! unequal to seeing you at present.
’Bartram, Tuesday.
- 338 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’P.S.—I can have no objection to your apprising Monica Knollys of these arrangements. You will
understand, of course, not a copy of this letter, but its substance.’
Over this document, scanning it as lawyers do a new Act of Parliament, we took comfort. After all, it was
limited; a separation not to exceed three months, possibly much shorter. On the whole, too, I pleased myself
with thinking Uncle Silas’s note, though peremptory, was kind.
Our paroxysms subsided into sadness; a close correspondence was arranged. Something of the bustle and
excitement of change supervened. If it turned out to be, in truth, a ’charming residence,’ how very delightful
our meeting in France, with the interest of foreign scenery, ways, and faces, would be!
So Thursday arrived—a new gush of sorrow—a new brightening up—and, amid regrets and anticipations,
we parted at the gate at the farther end of the Windmill Wood. Then, of course, were more good-byes, more
embraces, and tearful smiles. Good Mrs. Jolks, who met us there, was in a huge fuss; I believe it was her
first visit to the metropolis, and she was in proportion heated and important, and terrified about the train, so
we had not many last words.
I watched poor Milly, whose head was stretched from the window, her hand waving many adieux, until the
curve of the road, and the clump of old ash-trees, thick with ivy, hid Milly, carriage and all, from view. My
eyes filled again with tears. I turned towards Bartram. At my side stood honest Mary Quince.
’Don’t take on so, Miss; ’twon’t be no time passing; three months is nothing at all,’ she said, smiling kindly.
I smiled through my tears and kissed the good creature, and so side by side we re-entered the gate.
The lithe young man in fustian, whom I had seen talking with Beauty on the morning of our first encounter
with that youthful Amazon, was awaiting our re-entrance with the key in his hand. He stood half behind the
open wicket. One lean brown cheek, one shy eye, and his sharp upturned nose, I saw [pg 328] as we passed.
He was treating me to a stealthy scrutiny, and seemed to shun my glance, for he shut the door quickly, and
busied himself locking it, and then began stubbing up some thistles which grew close by, with the toe of his
thick shoe, his back to us all the time.
- 339 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’He brings up game for your uncle, sometimes, Miss, and lends a hand in the garden, I believe.’
Tom turned about, and approached slowly. He was more civil than the Bartram people usually were, for he
plucked off his shapeless cap of rabbit-skin with a clownish respect.
’Haven’t I seen you before, Tom Brice?’ I pursued, for my curiosity was excited, and with it much graver
feelings; for there certainly was a resemblance in Tom’s features to those of the postilion who had looked so
hard at me as I passed the carriage in the warren at Knowl, on the evening of the outrage which had scared
that quiet place.
’’Appen you may have, ma’am,’ he answered, quite coolly, looking down the buttons of his gaiters.
’Anan,’ he said.
- 340 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’That be very good,’ said Tom, with a nod, having glanced sharply at the coin.
I can’t say whether he applied that term to the coin, or to his luck, or to my generous self.
’Now, Tom, you’ll tell me, have you ever been to Knowl?’
[pg 329]
As Tom spoke this with great deliberation, like a man who loves truth, putting a strain upon his memory for
its sake, he spun the silver coin two or three times into the air and caught it, staring at it the while, with all
his might.
’Now, Tom, recollect yourself, and tell me the truth, and I’ll be a friend to you. Did you ride postilion to a
carriage having a lady in it, and, I think, several gentlemen, which came to the grounds of Knowl, when the
party had their luncheon on the grass, and there was a—a quarrel with the gamekeepers? Try, Tom, to
recollect; you shall, upon my honour, have no trouble about it, and I’ll try to serve you.’
Tom was silent, while with a vacant gape he watched the spin of his half-crown twice, and then catching it
with a smack in his hand, which he thrust into his pocket, he said, still looking in the same direction—
’I never rid postilion in my days, ma’am. I know nout o’ sich a place, though ’appen I maught a’ bin there;
Knowl, ye ca’t. I was ne’er out o’ Derbyshire but thrice to Warwick fair wi’ horses be rail, an’ twice to
York.’
And Tom made another loutish salute, and cut the conference short by turning off the path and beginning to
hollo after some trespassing cattle.
I had not felt anything like so nearly sure in this essay at identification as I had in that of Dudley. Even of
Dudley’s identity with the Church Scarsdale man, I had daily grown less confident; and, indeed, had it been
- 341 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
proposed to bring it to the test of a wager, I do not think I should, in the language of sporting gentlemen,
have cared to ’back’ my original opinion. There was, however, a sufficient uncertainty to make me
uncomfortable; and there was another uncertainty to enhance the unpleasant sense of ambiguity.
On our way back we passed the bleaching trunks and limbs of several ranks of barkless oaks lying side by
side, some squared by the hatchet, perhaps sold, for there were large letters and Roman numerals traced
upon them in red chalk. I sighed as I passed them by, not because it was wrongfully done, for I really rather
leaned to the belief that Uncle Silas was well advised in point of law. But, alas! here lay low the grand old
family [pg 330] decorations of Bartram-Haugh, not to be replaced for centuries to come, under whose
spreading boughs the Ruthyns of three hundred years ago had hawked and hunted!
On the trunk of one of these I sat down to rest, Mary Quince meanwhile pattering about in unmeaning
explorations. While thus listlessly seated, the girl Meg Hawkes, walked by, carrying a basket.
’Hish!’ she said quickly, as she passed, without altering a pace or raising her eyes; ’don’t ye speak nor
look—fayther spies us; I’ll tell ye next turn.’
’Next turn’—when was that? Well, she might be returning; and as she could not then say more than she had
said, in merely passing without a pause, I concluded to wait for a short time and see what would come of it.
After a short time I looked about me a little, and I saw Dickon Hawkes—Pegtop, as poor Milly used to call
him—with an axe in his hand, prowling luridly among the timber.
Observing that I saw him, he touched his hat sulkily, and by-and-by passed me, muttering to himself. He
plainly could not understand what business I could have in that particular part of the Windmill Wood, and
let me see it in his countenance.
His daughter did pass me again; but this time he was near, and she was silent. Her next transit occurred as
he was questioning Mary Quince at some little distance; and as she passed precisely in the same way, she
said—
’Don’t you be alone wi’ Master Dudley nowhere for the world’s worth.’
The injunction was so startling that I was on the point of questioning the girl. But I recollected myself, and
waited in the hope that in her future transits she might be more explicit. But one word more she did not
- 342 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
utter, and the jealous eye of old Pegtop was so constantly upon us that I refrained.
There was vagueness and suggestion enough in the oracle to supply work for many an hour of anxious
conjecture, and many a horrible vigil by night. Was I never to know peace at Bartram-Haugh?
Ten days of poor Milly’s absence, and of my solitude, had already passed, when my uncle sent for me to his
room.
[pg 331]
When old Wyat stood at the door, mumbling and snarling her message, my heart died within me.
It was late—just that hour when dejected people feel their anxieties most—when the cold grey of twilight
has deepened to its darkest shade, and before the cheerful candles are lighted, and the safe quiet of the night
sets in.
When I entered my uncle’s sitting-room—though his window-shutters were open and the wan streaks of
sunset visible through them, like narrow lakes in the chasms of the dark western clouds—a pair of candles
were burning; one stood upon the table by his desk, the other on the chimneypiece, before which his tall,
thin figure stooped. His hand leaned on the mantelpiece, and the light from the candle just above his bowed
head touched his silvery hair. He was looking, as it seemed, into the subsiding embers of the fire, and was a
very statue of forsaken dejection and decay.
’Uncle!’ I ventured to say, having stood for some time unperceived near his table.
He turned, and with the candle in his hand, smiling his silvery smile of suffering on me. He walked more
feebly and stiffly, I thought, than I had ever seen him move before.
’In my misery and my solitude, Maud, I have invoked you like a spirit, and you appear.’
- 343 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
With his two hands leaning on the table, he looked across at me, in a stooping attitude; he had not seated
himself. I continued silent until it should be his pleasure to question or address me.
At last he said, raising himself and looking upward, with a wild adoration—his finger-tips elevated and
glimmering in the faint mixed light—
Another silence, during which he looked steadfastly at me, and muttered, as if thinking aloud—
’My guardian angel!—my guardian angel! Maud, you have a heart.’ He addressed me suddenly—’Listen,
for a few moments, to the appeal of an old and broken-hearted man—your guardian—your uncle—your
suppliant. I had resolved never to [pg 332] speak to you more on this subject. But I was wrong. It was pride
that inspired me—mere pride.’
I felt myself growing pale and flushed by turns during the pause that followed.
’I’m very miserable—very nearly desperate. What remains for me—what remains? Fortune has done her
worst—thrown in the dust, her wheels rolled over me; and the servile world, who follow her chariot like a
mob, stamp upon the mangled wretch. All this had passed over me, and left me scarred and bloodless in this
solitude. It was not my fault, Maud—I say it was no fault of mine; I have no remorse, though more regrets
than I can count, and all scored with fire. As people passed by Bartram, and looked upon its neglected
grounds and smokeless chimneys, they thought my plight, I dare say, about the worst a proud man could be
reduced to. They could not imagine one half its misery. But this old hectic—this old epileptic—this old
spectre of wrongs, calamities, and follies, had still one hope—my manly though untutored son—the last
male scion of the Ruthyns. Maud, have I lost him? His fate—my fate—I may say Milly’s fate;—we all await
your sentence. He loves you, as none but the very young can love, and that once only in a life. He loves you
desperately—a most affectionate nature—a Ruthyn, the best blood in England—the last man of the race;
and I—if I lose him I lose all; and you will see me in my coffin, Maud, before many months. I stand before
you in the attitude of a suppliant—shall I kneel?’
His eyes were fixed on me with the light of despair, his knotted hands clasped, his whole figure bowed
toward me. I was inexpressibly shocked and pained.
- 344 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, uncle! uncle!’ I cried, and from very excitement I burst into tears.
I saw that his eyes were fixed on me with a dismal scrutiny. I think he divined the nature of my agitation;
but he determined, notwithstanding, to press me while my helpless agitation continued.
’You see my suspense—you see my miserable and frightful suspense. You are kind, Maud; you love your
father’s memory; your pity your father’s brother; you would not say no, and place a pistol at his head?’
’Oh! I must—I must—I must say no. Oh! spare me, uncle, [pg 333] for Heaven’s sake. Don’t question
me—don’t press me. I could not—I could not do what you ask.’
’I yield, Maud—I yield, my dear. I will not press you; you shall have time, your own time, to think. I will
accept no answer now—no, none, Maud.’
’There, Maud, enough. I have spoken, as I always do to you, frankly, perhaps too frankly; but agony and
despair will speak out, and plead, even with the most obdurate and cruel.’
With these words Uncle Silas entered his bed-chamber, and shut the door, not violently, but with a resolute
hand, and I thought I heard a cry.
I hastened to my own room. I threw myself on my knees, and thanked Heaven for the firmness vouchsafed
me; I could not believe it to have been my own.
I was more miserable in consequence of this renewed suit on behalf of my odious cousin than I can
describe. My uncle had taken such a line of importunity that it became a sort of agony to resist. I thought of
the possibility of my hearing of his having made away with himself, and was every morning relieved when I
heard that he was still as usual. I have often wondered since at my own firmness. In that dreadful interview
with my uncle I had felt, in the whirl and horror of my mind, on the very point of submitting, just as nervous
people are said to throw themselves over precipices through sheer dread of falling.
- 345 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER LI
Some time after this interview, one day as I sat, sad enough, in my room, looking listlessly from the
window, with good Mary Quince, whom, whether in the house or in my melancholy rambles, I always had
by my side, I was startled by the sound of a loud and shrill female voice, in violent hysterical action, [pg
334] gabbling with great rapidity, sobbing, and very nearly screaming in a sort of fury.
’Lord bless us!’ cried honest Mary Quince, with round eyes and mouth agape, staring in the same direction.
’Are they beating some one down yonder? I don’t know where it comes from,’ gasped Quince.
’I will—I will—I’ll see her. It’s her I want. Oo—hoo—hoo—hoo—oo—o—Miss Maud Ruthyn of Knowl.
Miss Ruthyn of Knowl. Hoo—hoo—hoo—hoo—oo!’
It was now plainly very near indeed, and I heard the voice of our mild and shaky butler evidently
remonstrating with the distressed damsel.
’I’ll see her,’ she continued, pouring a torrent of vile abuse upon me, which stung me with a sudden sense of
anger. What had I done to be afraid of anyone? How dared anyone in my uncle’s house—in my house—mix
my name up with her detestable scurrilities?
’For Heaven’s sake, Miss, don’t ye go out,’ cried poor Quince; ’it’s some drunken creature.’
But I was very angry, and, like a fool as I was, I threw open the door, exclaiming in a loud and haughty
key—
- 346 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
A pink and white young lady, with black tresses, violent, weeping, shrill, voluble, was flouncing up the last
stair, and shook her dress out on the lobby; and poor old Giblets, as Milly used to call him, was following in
her wake, with many small remonstrances and entreaties, perfectly unheeded.
The moment I looked at this person, it struck me that she was the identical lady whom I had seen in the
carriage at Knowl Warren. The next moment I was in doubt; the next, still more so. She was decidedly
thinner, and dressed by no means in such lady-like taste. Perhaps she was hardly like her at all. I began to
distrust all these resemblances, and to fancy, with a shudder, that they originated, perhaps, only in my own
sick brain.
On seeing me, this young lady—as it seemed to me, a good [pg 335] deal of the barmaid or lady’s-maid
species—dried her eyes fiercely, and, with a flaming countenance, called upon me peremptorily to produce
her ’lawful husband.’ Her loud, insolent, outrageous attack had the effect of enhancing my indignation, and
I quite forget what I said to her, but I well remember that her manner became a good deal more decent. She
was plainly under the impression that I wanted to appropriate her husband, or, at least, that he wanted to
marry me; and she ran on at such a pace, and her harangue was so passionate, incoherent, and unintelligible,
that I thought her out of her mind: she was far from it, however. I think if she had allowed me even a second
for reflection, I should have hit upon her meaning. As it was, nothing could exceed my perplexity, until,
plucking a soiled newspaper from her pocket, she indicated a particular paragraph, already sufficiently
emphasised by double lines of red ink at its sides. It was a Lancashire paper, of about six weeks since, and
very much worn and soiled for its age. I remember in particular a circular stain from the bottom of a vessel,
either of coffee or brown stout. The paragraph was as follows, recording an event a year or more anterior to
the date of the paper:—
’MARRIAGE.—On Tuesday, August 7, 18—, at Leatherwig Church, by the Rev. Arthur Hughes, Dudley R.
Ruthyn, Esq., only son and heir of Silas Ruthyn, Esq., of Bartram-Haugh, Derbyshire, to Sarah Matilda,
second daughter of John Mangles, Esq., of Wiggan, in this county.’
- 347 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
At first I read nothing but amazement in this announcement, but in another moment I felt how completely I
was relieved; and showing, I believe, my intense satisfaction in my countenance—for the young lady eyed
me with considerable surprise and curiosity—I said—
’This is extremely important. You must see Mr. Silas Ruthyn this moment. I am certain he knows nothing of
it. I will conduct you to him.’
’No more he does—I know that myself,’ she replied, following me with a self-asserting swagger, and a
great rustling of cheap silk.
[pg 336]
As we entered, Uncle Silas looked up from his sofa, and closed his Revue des Deux Mondes.
’This lady has brought with her a newspaper containing an extraordinary statement which affects our
family,’ I answered.
Uncle Silas raised himself, and looked with a hard, narrow scrutiny at the unknown young lady.
’A libel, I suppose, in the paper?’ he said, extending his hand for it.
’Not Monica?’ he said, as he took it. ’Pah, it smells all over of tobacco and beer,’ he added, throwing a little
eau de Cologne over it.
He raised it with a mixture of curiosity and disgust, saying again ’pah,’ as he did so.
He read the paragraph, and as he did his face changed from white, all over, to lead colour. He raised his
eyes, and looked steadily for some seconds at the young lady, who seemed a little awed by his strange
presence.
’And you are, I suppose, the young lady, Sarah Matilda née Mangles, mentioned in this little paragraph?’ he
said, in a tone you would have called a sneer, were it not that it trembled.
- 348 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’My son is, I dare say, within reach. It so happens that I wrote to arrest his journey, and summon him here,
some days since—some days since—some days since,’ he repeated slowly, like a person whose mind has
wandered far away from the theme on which he is speaking.
He had rung his bell, and old Wyat, always hovering about his rooms, entered.
’I want my son, immediately. If not in the house, send Harry to the stables; if not there, let him be followed,
instantly. Brice is an active fellow, and will know where to find him. If he is in Feltram, or at a distance, let
Brice take a horse, and Master Dudley can ride it back. He must be here without the loss of one moment.’
There intervened nearly a quarter of an hour, during which whenever he recollected her, Uncle Silas treated
the young lady with a hyper-refined and ceremonious politeness, which appeared to make her uneasy, and
even a little shy, and certainly prevented [pg 337] a renewal of those lamentations and invectives which he
had heard faintly from the stair-head.
But for the most part Uncle Silas seemed to forget us and his book, and all that surrounded him, lying back
in the corner of his sofa, his chin upon his breast, and such a fearful shade and carving on his features as
made me prefer looking in any direction but his.
At length we heard the tread of Dudley’s thick boots on the oak boards, and faint and muffled the sound of
his voice as he cross-examined old Wyat before entering the chamber of audience.
I think he suspected quite another visitor, and had no expectation of seeing the particular young lady, who
rose from her chair as he entered, in an opportune flood of tears, crying—
’Oh, Dudley, Dudley!—oh, Dudley, could you? Oh, Dudley, your own poor Sal! You could not—you
would not—your lawful wife!’
This and a good deal more, with cheeks that streamed like a window-pane in a thunder-shower, spoke Sarah
Matilda with all her oratory, working his arm, which she clung to, up and down all the time, like the handle
of a pump. But Dudley was, manifestly, confounded and dumbfoundered. He stood for a long time gaping at
his father, and stole just one sheepish glance at me; and, with red face and forehead, looked down at his
boots, and then again at his father, who remained just in the attitude I have described, and with the same
- 349 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Like a quarrelsome man worried in his sleep by a noise, Dudley suddenly woke up, as it were, with a start,
in a half-suppressed exasperation, and shook her off with a jerk and a muttered curse, as she whisked
involuntarily into a chair, with more violence than could have been pleasant.
’Judging by your looks and demeanour, sir, I can almost anticipate your answers,’ said my uncle, addressing
him suddenly. ’Will you be good enough—pray, madame (parenthetically to our visitor), command yourself
for a few moments. Is this young person the daughter of a Mr. Mangles, and is her name Sarah Matilda?’
[pg 338]
All this time Sarah Matilda was perpetually breaking into talk, and with difficulty silenced by my uncle.
’Mayhap she so considers it, after a fashion,’ he replied, with an impudent swagger, seating himself as he
did so.
’Is that account true?’ said my uncle, handing him the paper.
- 350 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Answer directly, sir. We have our thoughts upon it. If it be true, it is capable of every proof. For
expedition’s sake I ask you. There is no use in prevaricating.’
’There! I knew he would,’ screamed the young woman, hysterically, with a laugh of strange joy.
’Oh! no, no, no, Dudley. Ye know I wouldn’t. I could not—could not hurt ye, Dudley. No, no, no!’
’Wait a bit.’
’Oh, Dudley, don’t be vexed, dear. I did not mean it. I would not hurt ye for all the world. Never.’
’Well, never mind. You and yours tricked me finely; and now you’ve got me—that’s all.’
’I knew it, of course; and upon my word, madame, you and he make a very pretty couple,’ sneered Uncle
Silas.
And with this poor young wife, so recently wedded, the low villain had actually solicited me to marry him!
I am quite certain that my uncle was as entirely ignorant as I of Dudley’s connection, and had, therefore, no
participation in this appalling wickedness.
’And I have to congratulate you, my good fellow, on having [pg 339] secured the affections of a very
suitable and vulgar young woman.’
- 351 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I baint the first o’ the family as a’ done the same,’ retorted Dudley.
At this taunt the old man’s fury for a moment overpowered him. In an instant he was on his feet, quivering
from head to foot. I never saw such a countenance—like one of those demon-grotesques we see in the
Gothic side-aisles and groinings—a dreadful grimace, monkey-like and insane—and his thin hand caught up
his ebony stick, and shook it paralytically in the air.
’If ye touch me wi’ that, I’ll smash ye, by ——!’ shouted Dudley, furious, raising his hands and hitching his
shoulder, just as I had seen him when he fought Captain Oakley.
For a moment this picture was suspended before me, and I screamed, I know not what, in my terror. But the
old man, the veteran of many a scene of excitement, where men disguise their ferocity in calm tones, and
varnish their fury with smiles, had not quite lost his self-command. He turned toward me and said—
And with an icy laugh of contempt, his high, thin forehead still flushed, he sat down trembling.
’If you want to say aught, I’ll hear ye. Ye may jaw me all ye like, and I’ll stan’ it.’
’Oh, I may speak? Thank you,’ sneered Uncle Silas, glancing slowly round at me, and breaking into a cold
laugh.
’Ay, I don’t mind cheek, not I; but you must not go for to do that, ye know. Gammon. I won’t stand a
blow—I won’t fro no one.
’Well, sir, availing myself of your permission to speak, I may remark, without offence to the young lady,
that I don’t happen to recollect the name Mangles among the old families of England. I presume you have
chosen her chiefly for her virtues and her graces.’
Mrs. Sarah Matilda, not apprehending this compliment quite as Uncle Silas meant it, dropped a courtesy,
notwithstanding her agitation, and, wiping her eyes, said, with a blubbered smile—
[pg 340]
- 352 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I hope, for both your sakes, she has got a little money. I don’t see how you are to live else. You’re too lazy
for a game-keeper; and I don’t think you could keep a pot-house, you are so addicted to drinking and
quarrelling. The only thing I am quite clear upon is, that you and your wife must find some other abode than
this. You shall depart this evening: and now, Mr. and Mrs. Dudley Ruthyn, you may quit this room, if you
please.’
Uncle Silas had risen, and made them one of his old courtly bows, smiling a death-like sneer, and pointing
to the door with his trembling fingers.
’Come, will ye?’ said Dudley, grinding his teeth. ’You’re pretty well done here.’
Not half understanding the situation, but looking woefully bewildered, she dropped a farewell courtesy at
the door.
’Will ye cut?’ barked Dudley, in a tone that made her jump; and suddenly, without looking about, he strode
after her from the room.
’Maud, how shall I recover this? The vulgar villain—the fool! What an abyss were we approaching! and for
me the last hope gone—and for me utter, utter, irretrievable ruin.’
He was passing his fingers tremulously back and forward along the top of the mantelpiece, like a man in
search of something, and continued so, looking along it, feebly and vacantly, although there was nothing
there.
’I wish, uncle—you do not know how much I wish—I could be of any use to you. Maybe I can?’
’Maybe you can,’ he echoed slowly. ’Yes, maybe you can,’ he repeated more briskly.’ Let us—let us
see—let us think—that d—— fellow!—my head!’
’Oh! yes, very well. We’ll talk in the evening—I’ll send for you.’
I found Wyat in the next room, and told her to hasten, as I thought he was ill. I hope it was not very selfish,
but such had grown to be my horror of seeing him in one of his strange seizures, that I hastened from the
- 353 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The walls of Bartram House are thick, and the recess at the [pg 341] doorway deep. As I closed my uncle’s
door, I heard Dudley’s voice on the stairs. I did not wish to be seen by him or by his ’lady’, as his poor wife
called herself, who was engaged in vehement dialogue with him as I emerged, and not caring either to
re-enter my uncle’s room, I remained quietly ensconced within the heavy door-case, in which position I
overheard Dudley say with a savage snarl—
’You’ll jest go back the way ye came. I’m not goin’ wi’ ye, if that’s what ye be drivin’ at—dang your
impitins!’
’Oh! Dudley, dear, what have I done—what have I done—ye hate me so?’
’What a’ ye done? Ye vicious little beast, ye! You’ve got us turned out an’ disinherited wi’ yer d——d
bosh, that’s all; don’t ye think it’s enough?’
I could only hear her sobs and shrill tones in reply, for they were descending the stairs; and Mary Quince
reported to me, in a horrified sort of way, that she saw him bundle her into the fly at the door, like a truss of
hay into a hay-loft. And he stood with his head in at the window, scolding her, till it drove away.
’I knew he wor jawing her, poor thing! By the way he kep’ waggin’ his head—an’ he had his fist inside, a
shakin’ in her face I’m sure he looked wicked enough for anything; an’ she a crying like a babby, an’
lookin’ back, an’ wavin’ her wet hankicher to him—poor thing!—and she so young! ’Tis a pity. Dear me! I
often think, Miss, ’tis well for me I never was married. And see how we all would like to get husbands for
all that, though so few is happy together. ’Tis a queer world, and them that’s single is maybe the best off
after all.’
[pg 342]
- 354 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER LII
I went down that evening to the sitting-room which had been assigned to Milly and me, in search of a
book—my good Mary Quince always attending me. The door was a little open, and I was startled by the
light of a candle proceeding from the fireside, together with a considerable aroma of tobacco and brandy.
On my little work-table, which he had drawn beside the hearth, lay Dudley’s pipe, his brandy-flask, and an
empty tumbler; and he was sitting with one foot on the fender, his elbow on his knee, and his head resting in
his hand, weeping. His back being a little toward the door, he did not perceive us; and we saw him rub his
knuckles in his eyes, and heard the sounds of his selfish lamentation.
Mary and I stole away quietly, leaving him in possession, wondering when he was to leave the house,
according to the sentence which I had heard pronounced upon him.
I was delighted to see old ’Giblets’ quietly strapping his luggage in the hall, and heard from him in a
whisper that he was to leave that evening by rail—he did not know whither.
About half an hour afterwards, Mary Quince, going out to reconnoitre, heard from old Wyat in the lobby
that he had just started to meet the train.
Blessed be heaven for that deliverance! An evil spirit had been cast out, and the house looked lighter and
happier. It was not until I sat down in the quiet of my room that the scenes and images of that agitating day
began to move before my memory in orderly procession, and for the first time I appreciated, with a stunning
sense of horror and a perfect rapture of thanksgiving, the value of my escape and the immensity of the
danger which had threatened me. It may have been miserable weakness—I think it was. But I was young,
nervous, [pg 343] and afflicted with a troublesome sort of conscience, which occasionally went mad, and
insisted, in small things as well as great, upon sacrifices which my reason now assures me were absurd. Of
Dudley I had a perfect horror; and yet had that system of solicitation, that dreadful and direct appeal to my
compassion, that placing of my feeble girlhood in the seat of the arbiter of my aged uncle’s hope or despair,
been long persisted in, my resistance might have been worn out—who can tell?—and I self-sacrificed! Just
- 355 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
as criminals in Germany are teased, and watched, and cross-examined, year after year, incessantly, into a
sort of madness; and worn out with the suspense, the iteration, the self-restraint, and insupportable fatigue,
they at last cut all short, accuse themselves, and go infinitely relieved to the scaffold—you may guess, then,
for me, nervous, self-diffident, and alone, how intense was the comfort of knowing that Dudley was actually
married, and the harrowing importunity which had just commenced for ever silenced.
That night I saw my uncle. I pitied him, though I feared him. I was longing to tell him how anxious I was to
help him, if only he could point out the way. It was in substance what I had already said, but now strongly
urged. He brightened; he sat up perpendicularly in his chair with a countenance, not weak or fatuous now,
but resolute and searching, and which contracted into dark thought or calculation as I talked.
I dare say I spoke confusedly enough. I was always nervous in his presence; there was, I fancy, something
mesmeric in the odd sort of influence which, without effort, he exercised over my imagination.
Sometimes this grew into a dismal panic, and Uncle Silas—polished, mild—seemed unaccountably horrible
to me. Then it was no longer an accidental fascination of electro-biology. It was something more. His nature
was incomprehensible by me. He was without the nobleness, without the freshness, without the softness,
without the frivolities of such human nature as I had experienced, either within myself or in other persons. I
instinctively felt that appeals to sympathies or feelings could no more affect him than a marble monument.
He seemed to accommodate his conversation to the moral structure of others, just as spirits are said to
assume the shape of mortals. There were the sensualities of the gourmet for his body, and there ended his
[pg 344] human nature, as it seemed to me. Through that semi-transparent structure I thought I could now
and then discern the light or the glare of his inner life. But I understood it not.
He never scoffed at what was good or noble—his hardest critic could not nail him to one such sentence; and
yet, it seemed somehow to me that his unknown nature was a systematic blasphemy against it all. If fiend he
was, he was yet something higher than the garrulous, and withal feeble, demon of Goethe. He assumed the
limbs and features of our mortal nature. He shrouded his own, and was a profoundly reticent
Mephistopheles. Gentle he had been to me—kindly he had nearly always spoken; but it seemed like the mild
talk of one of those goblins of the desert, whom Asiatic superstition tells of, who appear in friendly shapes
to stragglers from the caravan, beckon to them from afar, call them by their names, and lead them where
they are found no more. Was, then, all his kindness but a phosphoric radiance covering something colder
and more awful than the grave?
- 356 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’It is very noble of you, Maud—it is angelic; your sympathy with a ruined and despairing old man. But I
fear you will recoil. I tell you frankly that less than twenty thousand pounds will not extricate me from the
quag of ruin in which I am entangled—lost!’
’Recoil! Far from it. I’ll do it. There must be some way.’
’Enough, my fair young protectress—celestial enthusiast, enough. Though you do not, yet I recoil. I could
not bring myself to accept this sacrifice. What signifies, even to me, my extrication? I lie a mangled wretch,
with fifty mortal wounds on my crown; what avails the healing of one wound, when there are so many
beyond all cure? Better to let me perish where I fall; and reserve your money for the worthier objects whom,
perhaps, hereafter may avail to save.’
’But I will do this. I must. I cannot see you suffer with the power in my hands unemployed to help you,’ I
exclaimed.
’Enough, dear Maud; the will is here—enough: there is balm in your compassion and good-will. Leave me,
ministering angel; for the present I cannot. If you will, we can talk of it again. Good-night.’
And so we parted.
The attorney from Feltram, I afterwards heard, was with him nearly all that night, trying in vain to devise by
their joint [pg 345] ingenuity any means by which I might tie myself up. But there were none. I could not
bind myself.
I was myself full of the hope of helping him. What was this sum to me, great as it seemed? Truly nothing. I
could have spared it, and never felt the loss.
I took up a large quarto with coloured prints, one of the few books I had brought with me from dear old
Knowl. Too much excited to hope for sleep in bed, I opened it, and turned over the leaves, my mind still full
of Uncle Silas and the sum I hoped to help him with.
Unaccountably one of those coloured engravings arrested my attention. It represented the solemn solitude of
a lofty forest; a girl, in Swiss costume, was flying in terror, and as she fled flinging a piece of meat behind
her which she had taken from a little market-basket hanging upon her arm. Through the glade a pack of
wolves were pursuing her.
- 357 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The narrative told, that on her return homeward with her marketing, she had been chased by wolves, and
barely escaped by flying at her utmost speed, from time to time retarding, as she did so, the pursuit, by
throwing, piece by piece, the contents of her basket, in her wake, to be devoured and fought for by the
famished beasts of prey.
This print had seized my imagination. I looked with a curious interest on the print: something in the
disposition of the trees, their great height, and rude boughs, interlacing, and the awful shadow beneath,
reminded me of a portion of the Windmill Wood where Milly and I had often rambled. Then I looked at the
figure of the poor girl, flying for her life, and glancing terrified over her shoulder. Then I gazed on the
gaping, murderous pack, and the hoary brute that led the van; and then I leaned back in my chair, and I
thought—perhaps some latent association suggested what seemed a thing so unlikely—of a fine print in my
portfolio from Vandyke’s noble picture of Belisarius. Idly I traced with my pencil, as I leaned back, on an
envelope that lay upon the table, this little inscription. It was mere fiddling; and, absurd as it looked, there
was nothing but an honest meaning in it:—’20,000l. Date Obolum Belisario!’ My dear father had translated
the little Latin inscription for me, and I had written it down as a sort of exercise of memory; and also,
perhaps, as expressive of that sort of compassion which my [pg 346] uncle’s fall and miserable fate excited
invariably in me. So I threw this queer little memorandum upon the open leaf of the book, and again the
flight, the pursuit, and the bait to stay it, engaged my eye. And I heard a voice near the hearthstone, as I
thought, say, in a stern whisper, ’Fly the fangs of Belisarius!’
Mary rose from her work at the fireside, staring at me with that odd sort of frown that accompanies fear and
curiosity.
’You spoke? Did you speak?’ I said, catching her by the arm, very much frightened myself.
’No, Miss; no, dear!’ answered she, plainly thinking that I was a little wrong in my head.
There could be no doubt it was a trick of the imagination, and yet to this hour I could recognise that clear
stern voice among a thousand, were it to speak again.
Jaded after a night of broken sleep and much agitation, I was summoned next morning to my uncle’s room.
- 358 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
He received me oddly, I thought. His manner had changed, and made an uncomfortable impression upon
me. He was gentle, kind, smiling, submissive, as usual; but it seemed to me that he experienced henceforth
toward me the same half-superstitous repulsion which I had always felt from him. Dream, or voice, or
vision—which had done it? There seemed to be an unconscious antipathy and fear. When he thought I was
not looking, his eyes were sometimes grimly fixed for a moment upon me. When I looked at him, his eyes
were upon the book before him; and when he spoke, a person not heeding what he uttered would have
fancied that he was reading aloud from it.
There was nothing tangible but this shrinking from the encounter of our eyes. I said he was kind as usual.
He was even more so. But there was this new sign of our silently repellant natures. Dislike it could not be.
He knew I longed to serve him. Was it shame? Was there not a shade of horror in it?
’I have not slept,’ said he. ’For me the night has passed in thought, and the fruit of it is this—I cannot,
Maud, accept your noble offer.’
’I know it, my dear niece, and appreciate your goodness; but there are many reasons—none of them, I trust,
ignoble—and [pg 347] which together render it impossible. No. It would be misunderstood—my honour
shall not be impugned.’
’But, sir, that could not be; you have never proposed it. It would be all, from first to last, my doing.’
’True, dear Maud, but I know, alas! more of this evil and slanderous world than your happy inexperience
can do. Who will receive our testimony? None—no, not one. The difficulty—the insuperable moral
difficulty is this—that I should expose myself to the plausible imputation of having worked upon you,
unduly, for this end; and more, that I could not hold myself quite free from blame. It is your voluntary
goodness, Maud. But you are young, inexperienced; and it is, I hold it, my duty to stand between you and
any dealing with your property at so unripe an age. Some people may call this Quixotic. In my mind it is an
imperious mandate of conscience; and I peremptorily refuse to disobey it, although within three weeks an
execution will be in this house!’
I did not quite know what an execution meant; but from two harrowing novels, with whose distresses I was
familiar, I knew that it indicated some direful process of legal torture and spoliation.
- 359 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, uncle I—oh, sir!—you cannot allow this to happen. What will people say of me? And—and there is
poor Milly—and everything! Think what it will be.’
’It cannot be helped—you cannot help it, Maud. Listen to me. There will be an execution here, I cannot say
exactly how soon, but, I think, in a little more than a fortnight. I must provide for your comfort. You must
leave. I have arranged that you shall join Milly, for the present, in France, till I have time to look about me.
You had better, I think, write to your cousin, Lady Knollys. She, with all her oddities, has a heart. Can you
say, Maud, that I have been kind?’
’That I’ve been self-denying when you made me a generous offer?’ he continued. ’That I now act to spare
you pain? You may tell her, not as a message from me, but as a fact, that I am seriously thinking of vacating
my guardianship—that I feel I have done her an injustice, and that, so soon as my mind is a little less
tortured, I shall endeavour to effect a reconciliation with her, and would wish ultimately to transfer the care
of your [pg 348] person and education to her. You may say I have no longer an interest even in vindicating
my name. My son has wrecked himself by a marriage. I forgot to tell you he stopped at Feltram, and this
morning wrote to pray a parting interview. If I grant it, it shall be the last. I shall never see him or
correspond with him more.’
The old man seemed much overcome, and held his hankerchief to his eyes.
’He and his wife are, I understand, about to emigrate; the sooner the better,’ he resumed, bitterly. ’Deeply,
Maud, I regret having tolerated his suit to you, even for a moment. Had I thought it over, as I did the whole
case last night, nothing could have induced me to permit it. But I have lived for so long like a monk in his
cell, my wants and observation limited to the narrow compass of this chamber, that my knowledge of the
world has died out with my youth and my hopes: and I did not, as I ought to have done, consider many
objections. Therefore, dear Maud, on this one subject, I entreat, be silent; its discussion can effect nothing
now. I was wrong, and frankly ask you to forget my mistake.’
I had been on the point of writing to Lady Knollys on this odious subject, when, happily, it was set at rest by
the disclosure of yesterday; and being so, I could have no difficulty in acceding to my uncle’s request. He
was conceding so much that I could not withhold so trifling a concession in return.
- 360 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Maud, you will not, I think, refuse to convey the substance of what I have just said in a letter to Lady
Knollys, and perhaps you would have no objection to let me see it when it is written. It will prevent the
possibility of its containing any misconception of what I have just spoken: and, Maud, you won’t forget to
say whether I have been kind. It would be a satisfaction to me to know that Monica was assured that I never
either teased or bullied my young ward.’
With these words he dismissed me; and forthwith I completed such a letter as would quite embody what he
had said; and in my own glowing terms, being in high good-humour with Uncle Silas, recorded my estimate
of his gentleness and good-nature; [pg 349] and when I submitted it to him, he expressed his admiration of
what he was pleased to call my cleverness in so exactly conveying what he wished, and his gratitude for the
handsome terms in which I had spoken of my old guardian.
CHAPTER LIII
AN ODD PROPOSAL
As I and Mary Quince returned from our walk that day, and had entered the hall, I was surprised most
disagreeably by Dudley’s emerging from the vestibule at the foot of the great staircase. He was, I suppose,
in his travelling costume—a rather soiled white surtout, a great coloured muffler in folds about his throat,
his ’chimney-pot’ on, and his fur cap sticking out from his pocket. He had just descended, I suppose, from
my uncle’s room. On seeing me he stepped back, and stood with his shoulders to the wall, like a mummy in
a museum.
I pretended to have a few words to say to Mary before leaving the hall, in the hope that, as he seemed to
wish to escape me, he would take the opportunity of getting quickly off the scene.
- 361 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
But he had changed his mind, it would seem, in the interval; for when I glanced in that direction again he
had moved toward us, and stood in the hall with his hat in his hand. I must do him the justice to say he
looked horribly dismal, sulky, and frightened.
’Ye’ll gi’e me a word, Miss—only a thing I ought to say—for your good; by ——, mind, it’s for your good,
Miss.’
Dudley stood a little way off, viewing me, with his hat in both hands and a ’glooming’ countenance.
I detested the idea of either hearing or speaking to him; but I had no resolution to refuse, and only saying ’I
can’t imagine what you can wish to speak to me about,’ I approached him. ’Wait there at the banister,
Quince.’
There was a fragrance of alcohol about the flushed face and [pg 350] gaudy muffler of this odious cousin,
which heightened the effect of his horribly dismal features. He was speaking, besides, a little thickly; but his
manner was dejected, and he was treating me with an elaborate and discomfited respect which reassured me.
’I’m a bit up a tree, Miss,’ he said shuffling his feet on the oak floor. ’I behaved a d—— fool; but I baint
one o’ they sort. I’m a fellah as ’ill fight his man, an’ stan’ up to ’m fair, don’t ye see? An’ baint one o’ they
sort—no, dang it, I baint.’
Dudley delivered his puzzling harangue with a good deal of undertoned vehemence, and was strangely
agitated. He, too, had got an unpleasant way of avoiding my eye, and glancing along the floor from corner
to corner as he spoke, which gave him a very hang-dog air.
He was twisting his fingers in his great sandy whisker, and pulling it roughly enough to drag his cheek
about by that savage purchase; and with his other hand he was crushing and rubbing his hat against his knee.
’The old boy above there be half crazed, I think; he don’t mean half as he says thof, not he. But I’m in a bad
fix anyhow—a regular sell it’s been, and I can’t get a tizzy out of him. So, ye see, I’m up a tree, Miss; and
he sich a one, he’ll make it a wuss mull if I let him. He’s as sharp wi’ me as one o’ them lawyer chaps, dang
’em, and he’s a lot of I O’s and rubbitch o’ mine; and Bryerly writes to me he can’t gi’e me my legacy,
’cause he’s got a notice from Archer and Sleigh a warnin’ him not to gi’e me as much as a bob; for I signed
it away to governor, he says—which I believe’s a lie. I may a’ signed some writing—’appen I did—when I
was a bit cut one night. But that’s no way to catch a gentleman, and ’twon’t stand. There’s justice to be had,
- 362 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
and ’twon’t stand, I say; and I’m not in ’is hands that way. Thof I may be a bit up the spout, too, I don’t
deny; only I baint agoin’ the whole hog all at once. I’m none o’ they sort. He’ll find I baint.’
Here Mary Quince coughed demurely from the foot of the stair, to remind me that the conversation was
protracted.
’I don’t very well understand,’ I said gravely; ’and I am now going up-stairs.’
’Don’t jest a minute, Miss; it’s only a word, ye see. We’ll be goin’ t’ Australia, Sary Mangles, an’ me,
aboard the Seamew, on the 5th. I’m for Liverpool to-night, and she’ll meet me there, [pg 351] an’—an’,
please God Almighty, ye’ll never see me more; an I’d rather gi’e ye a lift, Maud, before I go: an’ I tell ye
what, if ye’ll just gi’e me your written promise ye’ll gi’e me that twenty thousand ye were offering to gi’e
the Governor, I’ll take ye cleverly out o’ Bartram, and put ye wi’ your cousin Knollys, or anywhere ye like
best.’
’Take me from Bartram—for twenty thousand pounds! Take me away from my guardian! You seem to
forget, sir,’ my indignation rising as I spoke, ’that I can visit my cousin, Lady Knollys, whenever I please.’
’Well, that is as it may be,’ he said, with a sulky deliberation, scraping about a little bit of paper that lay on
the floor with the toe of his boot.
’It is as it may be, and that is as I say, sir; and considering how you have treated me—your mean,
treacherous, and infamous suit, and your cruel treason to your poor wife, I am amazed at your effrontery.’
’Don’t ye be a flying’ out,’ he said peremptorily, and catching me roughly by the wrist,’ I baint a-going to
vex ye. What a mouth you be, as can’t see your way! Can’t ye speak wi’ common sense, like a
woman—dang it—for once, and not keep brawling like a brat—can’t ye see what I’m saying? I’ll take ye
out o’ all this, and put ye wi’ your cousin, or wheresoever you list, if ye’ll gi’e me what I say.’
He was, for the first time, looking me in the face, but with contracted eyes, and a countenance very much
agitated.
- 363 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Ay, money—twenty thousand pounds—there. On or off?’ he replied, with an unpleasant sort of effort.
’You ask my promise for twenty thousand pounds, and you shan’t have it.’
If he had known how to appeal to my better feelings, I am sure I should have done, perhaps not quite that,
all at once at least, but something handsome, to assist him. But this application was so shabby and insolent!
What could he take me for? That I should suppose his placing me with Cousin Monica constituted her my
guardian? Why, he must fancy me the merest [pg 352] baby. There was a kind of stupid cunning in this that
disgusted my good-nature and outraged my self-importance.
’You won’t gi’e me that, then?’ he said, looking down again, with a frown, and working his mouth and
cheeks about as I could fancy a man rolling a piece of tobacco in his jaw.
’Take it, then,’ he replied, still looking down, very black and discontented.
I joined Mary Quince, extremely angry. As I passed under the carved oak arch of the vestibule, I saw his
figure in the deepening twilight. The picture remains in its murky halo fixed in memory. Standing where he
last spoke in the centre of the hall, not looking after me, but downward, and, as well as I could see, with the
countenance of a man who has lost a game, and a ruinous wager too—that is black and desperate. I did not
utter a syllable on the way up. When I reached my room, I began to reconsider the interview more at my
leisure. I was, such were my ruminations, to have agreed at once to his preposterous offer, and to have been
driven, while he smirked and grimaced behind my back at his acquaintances, through Feltram in his
dog-cart to Elverston; and then, to the just indignation of my uncle, to have been delivered up to Lady
Knolly’s guardianship, and to have handed my driver, as I alighted, the handsome fare of 20.000l. It
required the impudence of Tony Lumpkin, without either his fun or his shrewdness, to have conceived such
a prodigious practical joke.
’What impertinence!’ I exclaimed, with one of my angry stamps on the floor. ’Not you, dear old Quince,’ I
added. ’No—no tea just now.’
- 364 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And I resumed my ruminations, which soon led me to this train of thought—’Stupid and insulting as
Dudley’s proposition was, it yet involved a great treason against my uncle. Should I be weak enough to be
silent, may he not, wishing to forestall me, misrepresent all that has passed, so as to throw the blame
altogether upon me?’
This idea seized upon me with a force which I could not withstand; and on the impulse of the moment I
obtained admission to my uncle, and related exactly what had passed. When I had finished my narrative,
which he listened to without once raising [pg 353] his eyes, my uncle cleared his throat once or twice, as if
to speak. He was smiling—I thought with an effort, and with elevated brows. When I concluded, he
hummed one of those sliding notes, which a less refined man might have expressed by a whistle of surprise
and contempt, and again he essayed to speak, but continued silent. The fact is, he seemed to me very much
disconcerted. He rose from his seat, and shuffled about the room in his slippers, I believe affecting only to
be in search of something, opening and shutting two or three drawers, and turning over some books and
papers; and at length, taking up some loose sheets of manuscript, he appeared to have found what he was
looking for, and began to read them carelessly, with his back towards me, and with another effort to clear
his voice, he said at last—
’Not unlikely. He has lived in a stable, among horses and ostlers; he has always seemed to me something
like a centaur—that is a centaur composed not of man and horse, but of an ape and an ass.’
And upon this jibe he laughed, not coldly and sarcastically, as was his wont, but, I thought, flurriedly. And,
continuing to look into his papers, he said, his back still toward me as he read—
’And he did not favour you with an exposition of his meaning, which, except in so far as it estimated his
deserts at the modest sum you have named, appears to me too oracular to be interpreted without a kindred
inspiration?’
’As to your visiting your cousin, Lady Knollys, the stupid rogue had only five minutes before heard me
express my wish that you should do so before leaving this. I am quite resolved you shall—that is, unless,
- 365 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
dear Maud, you should yourself object; but, of course, we must wait for an invitation, which, I conjecture,
will not be long in coming. In fact, your letter will naturally bring it about, and, I trust, open the way to a
permanent residence with her. The more I think it over, the more am I convinced, dear niece, that as things
are likely to turn out, my roof would be no desirable shelter for you; and that, under all circumstances, hers
would. Such were my motives, Maud, [pg 354] in opening, through your letter, a door of reconciliation
between us.’
I felt that I ought to have kissed his hand—that he had indicated precisely the future that I most desired; and
yet there was within me a vague feeling, akin to suspicion—akin to dismay which chilled and overcast my
soul.
’But, Maud,’ he said, ’I am disquieted to think of that stupid jackanapes presuming to make you such an
offer! A creditable situation truly—arriving in the dark at Elverston, under the solitary escort of that wild
young man, with whom you would have fled from my guardianship; and, Maud, I tremble as I ask myself
the question, would he have conducted you to Elverston at all? When you have lived as long in the world as
I, you will appreciate its wickedness more justly.’ Here there was a little pause.
’I know, my dear, that were he convinced of his legal marriage with that young woman,’ he resumed,
perceiving how startled I looked, ’such an idea, of course, would not have entered his head; but he does not
believe any such thing. Contrary to fact and logic, he does honestly think that his hand is still at his disposal;
and I certainly do suspect that he would have employed that excursion in endeavouring to persuade you to
think as he does. Be that how it may, however, it is satisfactory to me to know that you shall never more be
troubled by one word from that ill-regulated young man. I made him my adieux, such as they were, this
evening; and never more shall he enter the walls of Bartram-Haugh while we two live.’
Uncle Silas replaced the papers which had ostensibly interested him so much, and returned. There was a
vein which was visible near the angle of his lofty temple, and in moments of agitation stood out against the
surrounding pallor in a knotted blue cord; and as he came back smiling askance, I saw this sign of inward
tumult.
’We can, however, afford to despise the follies and knaveries of the world, Maud, as long as we act, as we
have hitherto done, with perfect confidence in each other. Heaven bless you, dear Maud! Your report
troubled me, I believe, more than it need—troubled me a good deal; but reflection assures me it is nothing.
He is gone. In a few days’ time he will be on the sea. I will issue my orders to-morrow morning, and he will
- 366 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
never more, during [pg 355] his brief stay in England, gain admission to Bartram-Haugh. Good-night, my
good niece; I thank you.’
And so I returned to Mary Quince, on the whole happier than I had left her, but still with the confused and
jarring vision I could not interpret perpetually rising before me; and as, from time to time, shapeless
anxieties agitated me, relieving them by appeals to Him who alone is wise and strong.
Next day brought me a goodnatured gossiping letter from dear Milly, written in compulsory French, which
was, in some places, very difficult to interpret. She gave me a very pleasant account of the place, and her
opinion of the girls who were inmates, and mentioned some of the nuns with high commendation. The
language plainly cramped poor Milly’s genius; but although there was by no means so much fun as an
honest English letter would have brought me, there could be no mistake about her liking the place, and she
expressed her honest longing to see me in the most affectionate terms.
This letter came enclosed in one to my uncle, from the proper authority in the convent; and as there was
neither address within, nor post-mark without, I was as much in the dark as ever as to poor Milly’s
whereabouts.
Pencilled across the envelope of this letter, in my uncle’s hand, were the words, ’Let me have your answer
when sealed, and I will transmit it.—S.R.’
When, accordingly, some days later, I did place my letter to Milly in my uncle’s hands, he told me the
reason of his reserves on the subject.
’I thought it best, dear Maud, not to plague you with a secret, and Milly’s present address is one. It will in a
few weeks become the rallying-point of our diverse routes, when you shall meet her, and I join you both.
Nobody, until the storm shall have blown over, must know where I am to be found, except my lawyer; and I
think you would prefer ignorance to the trouble of keeping a secret on which so much may depend.’
In that interval there reached me such a charming, gay, and affectionate letter—a very long letter,
too—though the writer was scarcely seven miles away, from dear Cousin Monica, full of pleasant gossip,
and rose-coloured and golden castles in the air, [pg 356] and the kindest interest in poor Milly, and the
warmest affection for me.
- 367 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
One other incident varied that interval, if possible more pleasantly than those. It was the announcement, in a
Liverpool paper, of the departure of the Seamew, bound for Melbourne; and among the passengers were
reported ’Dudley Ruthyn, Esquire, of Bartram-H., and Mrs. D. Ruthyn.’
And now I began to breathe freely, I plainly saw the end of my probation approaching: a short excursion to
France, a happy meeting with Milly, and then a delightful residence with Cousin Monica for the remainder
of my nonage.
You will say then that my spirits and my serenity were quite restored. Not quite. How marvellously lie our
anxieties, in filmy layers, one over the other! Take away that which has lain on the upper surface for so
long—the care of cares—the only one, as it seemed to you, between your soul and the radiance of
Heaven—and straight you find a new stratum there. As physical science tells us no fluid is without its skin,
so does it seem with this fine medium of the soul, and these successive films of care that form upon its
surface on mere contact with the upper air and light.
What was my new trouble? A very fantastic one, you will say—the illusion of a self-tormentor. It was the
face of Uncle Silas which haunted me. Notwithstanding the old pale smile, there was a shrinking grimness,
and the always-averted look.
Sometimes I fancied his mind was disordered. I could not account for the eerie lights and shadows that
flickered on his face, except so. There was a look of shame and fear of me, amazing as that seems, in the
sheen of his peaked smile.
I thought, ’Perhaps he blames himself for having tolerated Dudley’s suit—for having urged it on grounds of
personal distress—for having altogether lowered, though under sore temptation, both himself and his office;
and he thinks that he has forfeited my respect.’
Such was my analysis; but in the coup-d’oeil of that white face that dazzled me in darkness, and haunted my
daily reveries with a faded light, there was an intangible character of the insidious and the terrible.
[pg 357]
- 368 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER LIV
On the whole, however, I was unspeakably relieved. Dudley Ruthyn, Esq., and Mrs. D. Ruthyn, were now
skimming the blue waves on the wings of the Seamew, and every morning widened the distance between us,
which was to go on increasing until it measured a point on the antipodes. The Liverpool paper containing
this golden line was carefully preserved in my room; and like the gentleman who, when much tried by the
shrewish heiress whom he had married, used to retire to his closet and read over his marriage settlement, I
used, when blue devils haunted me, to unfold my newspaper and read the paragraph concerning the
Seamew.
The day I now speak of was a dismal one of sleety snow. My own room seemed to me cheerier than the
lonely parlour, where I could not have had good Mary Quince so decorously.
A good fire, that kind and trusty face, the peep I had just indulged in at my favourite paragraph, and the
certainty of soon seeing my dear cousin Monica, and afterwards affectionate Milly, raised my spirits.
’So,’ said I, ’as old Wyat, you say, is laid up with rheumatism, and can’t turn up to scold me, I think I’ll run
up stairs and make an exploration, and find poor Mr. Charke’s skeleton in a closet.’
’Oh, law, Miss Maud, how can you say such things!’ exclaimed good old Quince, lifting up her honest grey
head and round eyes from her knitting.
I had grown so familiar with the frightful tradition of Mr. Charke and his suicide, that I could now afford to
frighten old Quince with him.
’I am quite serious. I am going to have a ramble up-stairs [pg 358] and down-stairs, like
goosey-goosey-gander; and if I do light upon his chamber, it is all the more interesting. I feel so like
Adelaide, in the "Romance of the Forest," the book I was reading to you last night, when she commenced
her delightful rambles through the interminable ruined abbey in the forest.’
- 369 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’No, Quince; stay there; keep a good fire, and make some tea. I suspect I shall lose heart and return very
soon;’ and with a shawl about me, cowl fashion, over my head, I stole up-stairs.
I shall not recount with the particularity of the conscientious heroine of Mrs. Ann Radcliffe, all the suites of
apartments, corridors, and lobbies, which I threaded in my ramble. It will be enough to mention that I
lighted upon a door at the end of a long gallery, which, I think, ran parallel with the front of the house; it
interested me because it had the air of having been very long undisturbed. There were two rusty bolts, which
did not evidently belong to its original securities, and had been, though very long ago, somewhat clumsily
superadded. Dusty and rusty they were, but I had no difficulty in drawing them back. There was a rusty key,
I remember it well, with a crooked handle in the lock; I tried to turn it, but could not. My curiosity was
piqued. I was thinking of going back and getting Mary Quince’s assistance. It struck me, however, that
possibly it was not locked, so I pulled the door and it opened quite easily. I did not find myself in a
strangely-furnished suite of apartments, but at the entrance of a gallery, which diverged at right angles from
that through which I had just passed; it was very imperfectly lighted, and ended in total darkness.
I began to think how far I had already come, and to consider whether I could retrace my steps with accuracy
in case of a panic, and I had serious thoughts of returning.
The idea of Mr. Charke was growing unpleasantly sharp and menacing; and as I looked down the long space
before me, losing itself among ambiguous shadows, lulled in a sinister silence, and as it were inviting my
entrance like a trap, I was very near yielding to the cowardly impulse.
But I took heart of grace and determined to see a little more. I opened a side-door, and entered a large room,
where were, in a corner, some rusty and cobwebbed bird-cages, but nothing more. It was a wainscoted
room, but a white mildew stained the [pg 359] panels. I looked from the window: it commanded that dismal,
weed-choked quadrangle into which I had once looked from another window. I opened a door at its farther
end, and entered another chamber, not quite so large, but equally dismal, with the same prison-like look-out,
not very easily discerned through the grimy panes and the sleet that was falling thickly outside. The door
through which I had entered made a little accidental creak, and, with my heart at my lips, I gazed at it,
expecting to see Charke, or the skeleton of which I had talked so lightly, stalk in at the half-open aperture.
But I had an odd sort of courage which was always fighting against my cowardly nerves, and I walked to the
door, and looking up and down the dismal passage, was reassured.
- 370 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Well, one room more—just that whose deep-set door fronted me, with a melancholy frown, at the opposite
end of the chamber. So to it I glided, shoved it open, advancing one step, and the great bony figure of
Madame de la Rougierre was before me.
The drowsy traveller who opens his sheets to slip into bed, and sees a scorpion coiled between them, may
have experienced a shock the same in kind, but immeasurably less in degree.
She sat in a clumsy old arm-chair, with an ancient shawl about her, and her bare feet in a delft tub. She
looked a thought more withered. Her wig shoved back disclosed her bald wrinkled forehead, and enhanced
the ugly effect of her exaggerated features and the gaunt hollows of her face. With a sense of incredulity and
terror I gazed, freezing, at this evil phantom, who returned my stare for a few seconds with a shrinking
scowl, dismal and grim, as of an evil spirit detected.
The meeting, at least then and there, was as complete a surprise for her as for me. She could not tell how I
might take it; but she quickly rallied, burst into a loud screeching laugh, and, with her old Walpurgis gaiety,
danced some fantastic steps in her bare wet feet, tracking the floor with water, and holding out with finger
and thumb, in dainty caricature, her slammakin old skirt, while she sang some of her nasal patois with an
abominable hilarity and emphasis.
With a gasp, I too recovered from the fascination of the surprise. I could not speak though for some seconds,
and Madame was first.
[pg 360]
’Ah, dear Maud, what surprise! Are we not overjoy, dearest, and cannot speak? I am full of joy—quite
charmed—ravie—of seeing you. So are you of me, your face betray. Ah! yes, thou dear little baboon! here
is poor Madame once more! Who could have imagine?’
’And so I was, dear Maud; I ’av just arrive. Your uncle Silas he wrote to the superioress for gouvernante to
accompany a young lady—that is you, Maud—on her journey, and she send me; and so, ma chère, here is
poor Madame arrive to charge herself of that affair.’
- 371 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Wyat,’ I suggested.
’Oh! oui, Waiatt;—she says two, three week. And who conduct you to poor Madame’s apartment, my dear
Maud?’ She inquired insinuatingly.
’No one, I answered promptly: ’I reached it quite accidentally, and I can’t imagine why you should conceal
yourself.’ Something like indignation kindled in my mind as I began to wonder at the sly strategy which had
been practised upon me.
’I ’av not conceal myself, Mademoiselle,’ retorted the governness. ’I ’av act precisally as I ’av been ordered.
Your uncle, Mr. Silas Ruthyn, he is afraid, Waiatt says, to be interrupted by his creditors, and everything
must be done very quaitly. I have been commanded to avoid me faire voir, you know, and I must obey my
employer—voilà tout!’
’And for how long have you been residing here?’ I persisted, in the same resentful vein.
’’Bout a week. It is soche triste place! I am so glad to see you, Maud! I’ve been so isolée, you dear leetle
fool!’
’You are not glad, Madame; you don’t love me—you never did,’ I exclaimed with sudden vehemence.
’Yes, I am very glad; you know not, chère petite niaise, how I ’av desire to educate you a leetle more. Let us
understand one another. You think I do not love you, Mademoiselle, because you have mentioned to your
poor papa that little dérèglement in his library. I have repent very often that so great indiscretion of my life.
I thought to find some letters of Dr. Braierly. I [pg 361] think that man was trying to get your property, my
dear Maud, and if I had found something I would tell you all about. But it was very great sottise, and you
were very right to denounce me to Monsieur. Je n’ai point de rancune contre vous. No, no, none at all. On
the contrary, I shall be your gardienne tutelaire—wat you call?—guardian angel—ah, yes, that is it. You
think I speak par dérision; not at all. No, my dear cheaile, I do not speak par moquerie, unless perhaps the
very least degree in the world.’
- 372 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And with these words Madame laughed unpleasantly, showing the black caverns at the side of her mouth,
and with a cold, steady malignity in her gaze.
’Oh! wat great ogly word! I am shock! vous me faites honte. Poor Madame, she never hate any one; she
loves all her friends, and her enemies she leaves to Heaven; while I am, as you see, more gay, more joyeuse
than ever, they have not been ’appy—no, they have not been fortunate these others. Wen I return, I find
always some of my enemy they ’av die, and some they have put themselves into embarrassment, or there
has arrived to them some misfortune;’ and Madame shrugged and laughed a little scornfully.
’You see, my dear Maud, it is very natural you should think I hate you. When I was with Mr. Austin
Ruthyn, at Knowl, you know you did not like a me—never. But in consequence of our intimacy I confide
you that which I ’av of most dear in the world, my reputation. It is always so. The pupil can calomniate,
without been discover, the gouvernante. ’Av I not been always kind to you, Maud? Which ’av I use of
violence or of sweetness the most? I am, like other persons, jalouse de ma réputation; and it was difficult to
suffer with patience the banishment which was invoked by you, because chiefly for your good, and for an
indiscretion to which I was excited by motives the most pure and laudable. It was you who spied so
cleverly—eh! and denounce me to Monsieur Ruthyn? Helas! wat bad world it is!’
’I do not mean to speak at all about that occurrence, Madame; I will not discuss it. I dare say what you tell
me of the cause of your engagement here is true, and I suppose we must [pg 362] travel, as you say, in
company; but you must know that the less we see of each other while in this house the better.’
’I am not so sure of that, my sweet little béte; your education has been neglected, or rather entirely
abandoned, since you ’av arrive at this place, I am told. You must not be a bestiole. We must do, you and I,
as we are ordered. Mr. Silas Ruthyn he will tell us.’
All this time Madame was pulling on her stockings, getting her boots on, and otherwise proceeding with her
dowdy toilet. I do not know why I stood there talking to her. We often act very differently from what we
would have done upon reflection. I had involved myself in a dialogue, as wiser generals than I have
entangled themselves in a general action when they meant only an affair of outposts. I had grown a little
angry, and would not betray the least symptom of fear, although I felt that sensation profoundly.
- 373 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’My beloved father thought you so unfit a companion for me that he dismissed you at an hour’s notice, and I
am very sure that my uncle will think as he did; you are not a fit companion for me, and had my uncle
known what had passed he would never have admitted you to this house—never!’
’Helas! Quelle disgrace! And you really think so, my dear Maud,’ exclaimed Madame, adjusting her wig
before her glass, in the corner of which I could see half of her sly, grinning face, as she ogled herself in it.
’It may be—we shall see; but everyone is not so cruel as you, ma chère petite calomniatrice.’
’Calomniatrice—that is an insult.’
’Why, my most foolish little Maud, we may say rogue, and a thousand other little words in play which we
do not say seriously.
’You are not playing—you never play—you are angry, and you hate me,’ I exclaimed, vehemently.
’Oh, fie!—wat shame! Do you not perceive, dearest cheaile, how much education you still need? You are
proud, little demoiselle; you must become, on the contrary, quaite humble. Je [pg 363] ferai baiser le
babouin à vous—ha, ha, ha! I weel make a you to kees the monkey. You are too proud, my dear cheaile.’
’I am not such a fool as I was at Knowl,’ I said; ’you shall not terrify me here. I will tell my uncle the whole
truth,’ I said.
’Well, it may be that is the best,’ she replied, with provoking coolness.
- 374 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’We shall see, my dear,’ she replied, with an air of mock contrition.
’Adieu, Madame!’
I made her no answer, but more agitated than I cared to show her, I left the room. I hurried along the
twilight passage, and turned into the long gallery that opened from it at right angles. I had not gone
half-a-dozen steps on my return when I heard a heavy tread and a rustling behind me.
’I am ready, my dear; I weel accompany you,’ said the smirking phantom, hurrying after me.
’Very well,’ was my reply; and threading our way, with a few hesitations and mistakes, we reached and
descended the stairs, and in a minute more stood at my uncle’s door.
My uncle looked hard and strangely at us as we entered. He looked, indeed, as if his temper was violently
excited, and glared and muttered to himself for a few seconds; and treating Madame to a stare of disgust, he
asked peevishly—
’Miss Maud a Ruthyn, she weel explain,’ replied Madame, with a great courtesy, like a boat going down in
a ground swell.
’Will you explain, my dear?’ he asked, in his coldest and most sarcastic tone.
I was agitated, and I am sure my statement was confused. I succeeded, however, in saying what I wanted.
Madame, with the coolest possible effrontery, denied it all; with the most solemn asseverations, and with
streaming eyes and clasped hands, conjured me melodramatically to withdraw [pg 364] that intolerable
story, and to do her justice. I stared at her for a while astounded, and turning suddenly to my uncle, as
vehemently asserted the truth of every syllable I had related.
’You hear, my dear child, you hear her deny everything; what am I to think? You must excuse the
bewilderment of my old head. Madame de la—that lady has arrived excellently recommended by the
- 375 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
superioress of the place where dear Milly awaits you, and such persons are particular. It strikes me, my dear
niece, that you must have made a mistake.’
’I know, my dear Maud, that you are quite incapable of wilfully deceiving anyone; but you are liable to be
deceived like other young people. You were, no doubt, very nervous, and but half awake when you fancied
you saw the occurrence you describe; and Madame de—de—’
’Yes, thank you—Madame de la Rougierre, who has arrived with excellent testimonials, strenuously denies
the whole thing. Here is a conflict, my dear—in my mind a presumption of mistake. I confess I should
prefer that theory to a peremptory assumption of guilt.’
I felt incredulous and amazed; it seemed as if a dream were being enacted before me. A transaction of the
most serious import, which I had witnessed with my own eyes, and described with unexceptionable
minuteness and consistency, is discredited by that strange and suspicious old man with an imbecile
coolness. It was quite in vain my reiterating my statement, backing it with the most earnest asseverations. I
was beating the air. It did not seem to reach his mind. It was all received with a simper of feeble incredulity.
He patted and smoothed my head—he laughed gently, and shook his while I insisted; and Madame protested
her purity in now tranquil floods of innocent tears, and murmured mild and melancholy prayers for my
enlightenment and reformation. I felt as if I should lose my reason.
’There now, dear Maud, we have heard enough; it is, I do believe, a delusion. Madame de la Rougierre will
be your companion, at the utmost, for three or four weeks. Do exercise a little of your self-command and
good sense—you know how I am [pg 365] tortured. Do not, I entreat, add to my perplexities. You may
make yourself very happy with Madame if you will, I have no doubt.’
’I propose to Mademoiselle,’ said Madame, drying her eyes with a gentle alacrity, ’to profit of my visit for
her education. But she does not seem to weesh wat I think is so useful.’
’She threatened me with some horrid French vulgarism—de faire baiser le babouin à moi, whatever that
means; and I know she hates me,’ I replied, impetuously.
- 376 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Doucement—doucement!’ said my uncle, with a smile at once amused and compassionate. ’Doucement!
ma chère.’
With great hands and cunning eyes uplifted, Madame tearfully—for her tears came on short notice—again
protested her absolute innocence. She had never in all her life so much as heard one so villain phrase.
’You see, my dear, you have misheard; young people never attend. You will do well to take advantage of
Madame’s short residence to get up your French a little, and the more you are with her the better.’
’I understand then, Mr. Ruthyn, you weesh I should resume my instructions?’ asked Madame.
’Certainly; and converse all you can in French with Mademoiselle Maud. You will be glad, my dear, that
I’ve insisted on it,’ he said, turning to me, ’when you have reached France, where you will find they speak
nothing else. And now, dear Maud—no, not a word more—you must leave me. Farewell, Madame!’
And he waved us out a little impatiently; and I, without one look toward Madame de la Rougierre, stunned
and incensed, walked into my room and shut the door.
[pg 366]
CHAPTER LV
I stood at the window—still the same leaden sky and feathery sleet before me—trying to estimate the
magnitude of the discovery I had just made. Gradually a kind of despair seized me, and I threw myself
passionately on my bed, weeping aloud.
Good Mary Quince was, of course, beside me in a moment, with her pale, concerned face.
- 377 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, Mary, Mary, she’s come—that dreadful woman, Madame de la Rougierre, has come to be my
governess again; and Uncle Silas won’t hear or believe anything about her. It is vain talking; he is
prepossessed. Was ever so unfortunate a creature as I? Who could have fancied or feared such a thing? Oh,
Mary, Mary, what am I to do? what is to become of me? Am I never to shake off that vindictive, terrible
woman?’
Mary said all she could to console me. I was making too much of her. What was she, after all, more than a
governess?—she could not hurt me. I was not a child no longer—she could not bully me now; and my
uncle, though he might be deceived for a while, would not be long finding her out.
Thus and soforth did good Mary Quince declaim, and at last she did impress me a little, and I began to think
that I had, perhaps, been making too much of Madame’s visit. But still imagination, that instrument and
mirror of prophecy, showed her formidable image always on its surface, with a terrible moving background
of shadows.
In a few minutes there was a knock at my door, and Madame herself entered. She was in walking costume.
There had been a brief clearing of the weather, and she proposed our making a promenade together.
On seeing Mary Quince she broke into a rapture of compliment and greeting, and took what Mr. Richardson
would have [pg 367] called her passive hand, and pressed it with wonderful tenderness.
Honest Mary suffered all this somewhat reluctantly, never smiling, and, on the contrary, looking rather
ruefully at her feet.
’Weel you make a some tea? When I come back, dear Mary Quince, I ’av so much to tell you and dear Miss
Maud of all my adventures while I ’av been away; it will make a you laugh ever so much. I was—what you
theenk?—near, ever so near to be married!’ And upon this she broke into a screeching laugh, and shook
Mary Quince merrily by the shoulder.
I sullenly declined going out, or rising; and when she had gone away, I told Mary that I should confine
myself to my room while Madame stayed.
But self-denying ordinances self-imposed are not always long observed by youth. Madame de la Rougierre
laid herself out to be agreeable; she had no end of stories—more than half, no doubt, pure fictions—to tell,
but all, in that triste place, amusing. Mary Quince began to entertain a better opinion of her. She actually
- 378 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
helped to make beds, and tried to be in every way of use, and seemed to have quite turned over a new leaf;
and so gradually she moved me, first to listen, and at last to talk.
On the whole, these terms were better than a perpetual skirmish; but, notwithstanding all her gossip and
friendliness, I continued to have a profound distrust and even terror of her.
She seemed curious about the Bartram-Haugh family, and all their ways, and listened darkly when I spoke. I
told her, bit by bit, the whole story of Dudley, and she used, whenever there was news of the Seamew, to
read the paragraph for my benefit; and in poor Milly’s battered little Atlas she used to trace the ship’s
course with a pencil, writing in, from point to point, the date at which the vessel was ’spoken’ at sea. She
seemed amused at the irrepressible satisfaction with which I received these minutes of his progress; and she
used to calculate the distance;—on such a day he was two hundred and sixty miles, on such another five
hundred; the last point was more than eight hundred—good, better, best—best of all would be those
’deleecious antipode, w’ere he would so soon promener on his head twelve thousand mile away;’ and at the
conceit she would fall into screams of laughter.
[pg 368]
Laugh as she might, however, there was substantial comfort in thinking of the boundless stretch of blue
wave that rolled between me and that villainous cousin.
I was now on very odd terms with Madame. She had not relapsed into her favourite vein of oracular sarcasm
and menace; she had, on the contrary, affected her good-humoured and genial vein. But I was not to be
deceived by this. I carried in my heart that deep-seated fear of her which her unpleasant goodhumour and
gaiety never disturbed for a moment. I was very glad, therefore, when she went to Todcaster by rail, to
make some purchases for the journey which we were daily expecting to commence; and happy in the
opportunity of a walk, good old Mary Quince and I set forth for a little ramble.
As I wished to make some purchases in Feltram, I set out, with Mary Quince for my companion. On
reaching the great gate we found it locked. The key, however, was in it, and as it required more than the
strength of my hand to turn, Mary tried it. At the same moment old Crowle came out of the sombre lodge by
its side, swallowing down a mouthful of his dinner in haste. No one, I believe, liked the long suspicious face
of the old man, seldom shorn or washed, and furrowed with great, grimy perpendicular wrinkles. Leering
fiercely at Mary, not pretending to see me, he wiped his mouth hurriedly with the back of his hand, and
- 379 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
growled—
’Drop it.’
’Open it, please, Mr. Crowle,’ said Mary, renouncing the task.
Crowle wiped his mouth as before, looking inauspicious; shuffling to the spot, and muttering to himself, he
first satisfied himself that the lock was fast, and then lodged the key in his coat-pocket, and still muttering,
retraced his steps.
No answer.
’We wants many a thing we can’t get,’ he growled, stepping into his habitation.
He half turned on his threshold, and made a dumb show of touching his hat, although he had none on.
[pg 369]
’Can’t, ma’am; without an order from master, no one goes out here.’
’’Tisn’t me, ma’am,’ said he; ’but I can’t break orders, and no one goes out without the master allows.’
And without awaiting further parley, he entered, shutting his hatch behind him.
So Mary and I stood, looking very foolish at one another. This was the first restraint I had experienced since
Milly and I had been refused a passage through the Windmill paling. The rule, however, on which Crowle
insisted I felt confident could not have been intended to apply to me. A word to Uncle Silas would set all
right; and in the meantime I proposed to Mary that we should take a walk—my favourite ramble—into the
Windmill Wood.
- 380 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I looked toward Dickon’s farmstead as we passed, thinking that Beauty might have been there. I did see the
girl, who was plainly watching us. She stood in the doorway of the cottage, withdrawn into the shade, and, I
fancied, anxious to escape observation. When we had passed on a little, I was confirmed in that belief by
seeing her run down the footpath which led from the rear of the farmyard in the direction contrary to that in
which we were moving.
Mary Quince and I rambled on through the wood, till we reached the windmill itself, and seeing its low
arched door open, we entered the chiaro-oscuro of its circular basement. As we did so I heard a rush and the
creak of a plank, and looking up, I saw just a foot—no more—disappearing through the trap-door.
In the case of one we love or fear intensely, what feats of comparative anatomy will not the mind
unconsciously perform? Constructing the whole living animal from the turn of an elbow, the curl of a
whisker, a segment of a hand. How instantaneous and unerring is the instinct!
’Oh, Mary, what have I seen!’ I whispered, recovering from the fascination that held my gaze fast to the
topmost rounds of the ladder, that disappeared in the darkness above the open door in the loft. ’Come,
Mary—come away.’
At the same instant appeared the swarthy, sullen face of Dickon Hawkes in the shadow of the aperture.
Having but one [pg 370] serviceable leg, his descent was slow and awkward, and having got his head to the
level of the loft he stopped to touch his hat to me, and to hasp and lock the trap-door.
When this was done, the man again touched his hat, and looked steadily and searchingly at me for a second
or so, while he got the key into his pocket.
’These fellahs stores their flour too long ’ere, ma’am. There’s a deal o’ trouble a-looking arter it. I’ll talk
wi’ Silas, and settle that.’
By this time he had got upon the worn-tiled floor, and touching his hat again, he said—
- 381 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I feel very faint, Mary,’ said I. ’Come quickly. There’s nobody following us?’
’No, Miss, dear. That man with the wooden leg is putting a padlock on the door.’
’Come very fast,’ I said; and when we had got a little farther, I said, ’Look again, and see whether anyone is
following.’
’No one, Miss,’ answered Mary, plainly surprised. ’He’s putting the key in his pocket, and standin’ there
a-lookin’ after us.’
’Come on, Mary. Don’t pause. They will observe us,’ I whispered, hurrying her forward.
’Mr. Dudley,’ I whispered, with a terrified emphasis, not daring to turn my head as I spoke.
’Lawk, Miss!’ remonstrated honest Quince, with a protracted intonation of wonder and incredulity, which
plainly implied a suspicion that I was dreaming.
’Yes, Mary. When we went into that dreadful room—that dark, round place—I saw his foot on the ladder.
His foot, Mary I can’t be mistaken. I won’t be questioned. You’ll find I’m right. He’s here. He never went in
that ship at all. A fraud has been practised on me—it is infamous—it is terrible. I’m frightened out of my
life. For heaven’s sake, look back again, and tell me what you see.’
[pg 371]
’Nothing, Miss,’ answered Mary, in contagious whispers, ’but that wooden-legged chap, standin’ hard by
the door.’
- 382 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
We got without pursuit through the gate in the paling. I drew breath so soon as we had reached the cover of
the thicket near the chestnut hollow, and I began to reflect that whoever the owner of the foot might
be—and I was still instinctively certain that it was no other than Dudley—concealment was plainly his
object. I need not, then, be at all uneasy lest he should pursue us.
As we walked slowly and in silence along the grassy footpath, I heard a voice calling my name from behind.
Mary Quince had not heard it at all, but I was quite certain.
It was repeated twice or thrice, and, looking in considerable doubt and trepidation under the hanging
boughs, I saw Beauty, not ten yards away, standing among the underwood.
I remember how white the eyes and teeth of the swarthy girl looked, as with hand uplifted toward her ear,
she watched us while, as it seemed, listening for more distant sounds.
Beauty beckoned eagerly to me, advancing, with looks of great fear and anxiety, two or three short steps
toward me.
’She baint to come,’ said Beauty, under her breath, so soon as I had nearly reached her, pointing without
raising her hand at Mary Quince.
’Tell her to sit on the ash-tree stump down yonder, and call ye as loud as she can if she sees any fellah
a-comin’ this way, an’ rin ye back to me;’ and she impatiently beckoned me away on her errand.
When I returned, having made this dispositions, I perceived how pale the girl was.
’Never ye mind. Well enough. Listen, Miss; I must tell it all in a crack, an’ if she calls, rin awa’ to her, and
le’ me to myself, for if fayther or t’other un wor to kotch me here, I think they’d kill me a’most. Hish!’
She paused a second, looking askance, in the direction where she fancied Mary Quince was. Then she
resumed in a whisper—
- 383 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Now, lass, mind ye, ye’ll keep what I say to yourself. You’re [pg 372] not to tell that un nor any other for
your life, mind, a word o’ what I’m goin’ to tell ye.’
’In the mill? Ha! that’s him. He never went beyond Todcaster. He staid in Feltram after.’
CHAPTER LVI
I CONSPIRE
’That’s a bad un, he is—oh, Miss, Miss Maud! It’s nout that’s good as keeps him an’ fayther—(mind, lass,
ye promised you would not tell no one)—as keeps them two a-talkin’ and a-smokin’ secret-like together in
the mill. An’ fayther don’t know I found him out. They don’t let me into the town, but Brice tells me, and he
knows it’s Dudley; and it’s nout that’s good, but summat very bad. An’ I reckon, Miss, it’s all about you. Be
ye frightened, Miss Maud?’
’Not much, Meg. Go on, for Heaven’s sake. Does Uncle Silas know he is here?’
’Well, Miss, they were with him, Brice told me, from eleven o’clock to nigh one o’ Tuesday night, an’ went
in and come out like thieves, ’feard ye’d see ’em.’
- 384 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’And how does Brice know anything bad?’ I asked, with a strange freezing sensation creeping from my
heels to my head and down again—I am sure deadly pale, but speaking very collectedly.
’Brice said, Miss, he saw Dudley a-cryin’ and lookin’ awful black, and says he to fayther, "’Tisn’t in my
line nohow, an’ I can’t;" and says fayther to he, "No one likes they soart o’ [pg 373] things, but how can ye
help it? The old boy’s behind ye wi’ his pitchfork, and ye canna stop." An’ wi’ that he bethought him o’
Brice, and says he, "What be ye a-doin’ there? Get ye down wi’ the nags to blacksmith, do ye." An’ oop gits
Dudley, pullin’ his hat ower his brows, an’ says he, "I wish I was in the Seamew. I’m good for nout wi’ this
thing a-hangin’ ower me." An’ that’s all as Brice heard. An’ he’s afeard o’ fayther and Dudley awful.
Dudley could lick him to pot if he crossed him, and he and fayther ’ud think nout o’ havin’ him afore the
justices for poachin’, and swearin’ him into gaol.’
’Hish!’ said Meg, who fancied she heard a sound, but all was quiet. ’I can’t say—we’re in danger, lass. I
don’t know why—but he does, an’ so do I, an’, for that matter, so do ye.’
’Ye can’t.’
’They won’t let ye oot. The gates is all locked. They’ve dogs—they’ve bloodhounds, Brice says. Ye can’t
git oot, mind; put that oot o’ your head.
’I tell ye what ye’ll do. Write a bit o’ a note to the lady yonder at Elverston; an’ though Brice be a wild
fellah, and ’appen not ower good sometimes, he likes me, an’ I’ll make him take it. Fayther will be grindin’
at mill to-morrow. Coom ye here about one o’clock—that’s if ye see the mill-sails a-turnin’—and me and
Brice will meet ye here. Bring that old lass wi’ ye. There’s an old French un, though, that talks wi’ Dudley.
Mind ye, that un knows nout o’ the matter. Brice be a kind lad to me, whatsoe’er he be wi’ others, and I
think he won’t split. Now, lass, I must go. God help ye; God bless ye; an’, for the world’s wealth, don’t ye
let one o’ them see ye’ve got ought in your head, not even that un.’
- 385 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Before I could say another word, the girl had glided from me, with a wild gesture of silence, and a shake of
her head.
I can’t at all account for the state in which I was. There are resources both of energy and endurance in
human nature which we never suspect until the tremendous voice of necessity summons them into play.
Petrified with a totally new horror, but with something of the coldness and impassiveness of the
transformation, [pg 374] I stood, spoke, and acted—a wonder, almost a terror, to myself.
I met Madame on my return as if nothing had happened. I heard her ugly gabble, and looked at the fruits of
her hour’s shopping, as I might hear, and see, and talk, and smile, in a dream.
But the night was dreadful. When Mary Quince and I were alone, I locked the door. I continued walking up
and down the room, with my hands clasped, looking at the inexorable floor, the walls, the ceiling, with a
sort of imploring despair. I was afraid to tell my dear old Mary. The least indiscretion would be failure, and
failure destruction.
I answered her perplexed solicitudes by telling her that I was not very well—that I was uneasy; but I did not
fail to extract from her a promise that she would not hint to mortal, either my suspicions about Dudley, or
our rencontre with Meg Hawkes.
I remember how, when, after we had got, late at night, into bed, I sat up, shivering with horror, in mine,
while honest Mary’s tranquil breathing told how soundly she slept. I got up, and looked from the window,
expecting to see some of those wolfish dogs which they had brought to the place prowling about the
court-yard. Sometimes I prayed, and felt tranquillised, and fancied that I was perhaps to have a short
interval of sleep. But the serenity was delusive, and all the time my nerves were strung hysterically.
Sometimes I felt quite wild, and on the point of screaming. At length that dreadful night passed away.
Morning came, and a less morbid, though hardly a less terrible state of mind. Madame paid me an early
visit. A thought struck me. I knew that she loved shopping, and I said, quite carelessly—
’Your yesterday’s shopping tempts me, Madame, and I must get a few things before we leave for France.
Suppose we go into Feltram to-day, and make my purchases, you and I?’
She looked from the corner of her cunning eye in my face without answering. I did not blench, and she
said—
- 386 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Vary good. I would be vary ’appy,’ and again she looked oddly at me.
’Wat hour, my dear Maud? One o’clock? I think that weel de very well, eh?’
[pg 375]
I wonder whether I did look as careless as I tried. I do not know. Through the whole of this awful period I
was, I think, supernatural; and I even now look back with wonder upon my strange self-command.
Madame, I hoped, had heard nothing of the order which prohibited my exit from the place. She would
herself conduct me to Feltram, and secure, by accompanying me, my free egress.
Once in Feltram, I would assert my freedom, and manage to reach my dear cousin Knollys. Back to Bartram
no power should convey me. My heart swelled and fluttered in the awful suspense of that hour.
Oh, Bartram-Haugh! how came you by those lofty walls? Which of my ancestors had begirt me with an
impassable barrier in this horrible strait?
Suddenly I remembered my letter to Lady Knollys. If I were disappointed in effecting my escape through
Feltram, all would depend upon it.
’Oh, my beloved cousin, as you hope for comfort in your hour of fear, aid me now. Dudley has returned,
and is secreted somewhere about the grounds. It is a fraud. They all pretend to me that he is gone away in
the Seamew; and he or they had his name published as one of the passengers. Madame de la Rougierre has
appeared! She is here, and my uncle insists on making her my close companion. I am at my wits’ ends. I
cannot escape—the walls are a prison; and I believe the eyes of my gaolers are always upon me. Dogs are
kept for pursuit—yes, dogs! and the gates are locked against my escape. God help me! I don’t know where
to look, or whom to trust. I fear my uncle more than all. I think I could bear this better if I knew what their
plans are, even the worst. If ever you loved or pitied me, dear cousin, I conjure you, help me in this
extremity. Take me away from this. Oh, darling, for God’s sake take me away!
- 387 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
MAUD’
’Bartram-Haugh.’
[pg 376]
I sealed this letter jealously, as if the inanimate missive would burst its cerements, and proclaim my
desperate appeal through all the chambers and passages of silent Bartram.
Old Quince, greatly to cousin Monica’s amusement, persisted in furnishing me with those capacious pockets
which belonged to a former generation. I was glad of this old-world eccentricity now, and placed my guilty
letter, that, amidst all my hypocrisies, spoke out with terrible frankness, deep in this receptacle, and having
hid away the pen and ink, my accomplices, I opened the door, and resumed my careless looks, awaiting
Madame’s return.
’I was to demand to Mr. Ruthyn the permission to go to Feltram, and I think he will allow. He want to speak
to you.’
With Madame I entered my uncle’s room. He was reclining on a sofa, his back towards us, and his long
white hair, as fine as spun glass, hung over the back of the couch.
’I was going to ask you, dear Maud, to execute two or three little commissions for me in Feltram.’
’But I have just recollected that this is a market-day, and Feltram will be full of doubtful characters and
tipsy persons, so we must wait till to-morrow; and Madame says, very kindly, that she will, as she does not
so much mind, make any little purchases to-day which cannot conveniently wait.’
Madame assented with a courtesy to Uncle Silas, and a great hollow smile to me.
By this time Uncle Silas had raised himself from his reclining posture, and was sitting, gaunt and white,
upon the sofa.
- 388 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’News of my prodigal to-day,’ he said, with a peevish smile, drawing the newspaper towards him. ’The
vessel has been spoken again. How many miles away, do you suppose?’
He spoke in a plaintive key, looking at me, with hungry eyes, and a horribly smiling countenance.
’How far do you suppose Dudley is to-day?’ and he laid the palm of his hand on the paragraph as he spoke.
Guess!’
For a moment I fancied this was a theatric preparation to give point to the disclosure of Dudley’s real
whereabouts.
So, stammering a little and pale, I performed the required hypocrisy, after which my uncle read aloud for
my benefit the [pg 377] line or two in which were recorded the event, and the latitude and longitude of the
vessel at the time, of which Madame made a note in her memory, for the purpose of making her usual
tracing in poor Milly’s Atlas.
I cannot say how it really was, but I fancied that Uncle Silas was all the time reading my countenance, with
a grim and practised scrutiny; but nothing came of it, and we were dismissed.
Madame loved shopping, even for its own sake, but shopping with opportunities of peculation still more.
She she had had her luncheon, and was dressed for the excursion, she did precisely what I now most
desired—she proposed to take charge of my commissions and my money; and thus entrusted, left me at
liberty to keep tryst at the Chestnut Hollow.
So soon as I had seen Madame fairly off, I hurried Mary Quince, and got my things on quickly. We left the
house by the side entrance, which I knew my uncle’s windows did not command. Glad was I to feel a slight
breeze, enough to make the mill-sails revolve; and as we got further into the grounds, and obtained a distant
view of the picturesque old windmill, I felt inexpressibly relieved on seeing that it was actually working.
We were now in the Chestnut Hollow, and I sent Mary Quince to her old point of observation, which
commanded a view of the path in the direction of the Windmill Wood, with her former order to call ’I’ve
found it,’ as loudly as she could, in case she should see anyone approaching.
- 389 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I stopped at the point of our yesterday’s meeting. I peered under the branches, and my heart beat fast as I
saw Meg Hawkes awaiting me.
[pg 378]
CHAPTER LVII
THE LETTER
’Come away, lass,’ whispered Beauty, very pale; ’he’s here—Tom Brice.’
And she led the way, shoving aside the leafless underwood, and we reached Tom. The slender youth, groom
or poacher—he might answer for either—with his short coat and gaitered legs, was sitting on a low
horizontal bough, with his shoulder against the trunk.
’Don’t ye mind; sit ye still, lad,’ said Meg, observing that he was preparing to rise, and had entangled his
hat in the boughs. ’Sit ye still, and hark to the lady. He’ll take it, Miss Maud, if he can; wi’ na ye, lad?’
’Noa, sure,’ said Tom and Meg nearly in the same breath.
’You are an honest English lad, Tom—you would not betray me?’ I was speaking imploringly.
There was something a little unsatisfactory in the countenance of this light-haired youth, with the sharpish
upturned nose. Throughout our interview he said next to nothing, and smiled lazily to himself, like a man
listening to a child’s solemn nonsense, and leading it on, with an amused irony, from one wise sally to
- 390 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
another.
Thus it seemed to me that this young clown, without in the least intending to be offensive, was listening to
me with a profound and lazy mockery.
I could not choose, however; and, such as he was, I must employ him or none.
[pg 379]
’That’s true for her, Tom Brice,’ said Meg, who now and then confirmed my asseverations.
’I’ll give you a pound now, Tom,’ and I placed the coin and the letter together in his hand. ’And you are to
give this letter to Lady Knollys, at Elverston; you know Elverston, don’t you?’
’E’es.’
’You’ll take the letter, Tom? ’I said, in much greater trepidation as to his answer than I showed.
’E’es, I’ll take the letter,’ said he, rising, and turning it about in his fingers under his eye, like a curiosity.
’Tom Brice,’ I said, ’If you can’t be true to me, say so; but don’t take the letter except to give it to Lady
Knollys, at Elverston. If you won’t promise that, let me have the note back. Keep the pound; but tell me that
you won’t mention my having asked you to carry a letter to Elverston to anyone.’
For the first time Tom looked perfectly serious. He twiddled the corner of my letter between his finger and
thumb, and wore very much the countenance of a poacher about to be committed.
- 391 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I don’t want to chouce ye, Miss; but I must take care o’ myself, ye see. The letters goes all through Silas’s
fingers to the post, and he’d know damn well this worn’t among ’em. They do say he opens ’em, and reads
’em before they go; an’ that’s his diversion. I don’t know; but I do believe that’s how it be; an’ if this one
turned up, they’d all know it went be hand, and I’d be spotted for’t.’
’But you know who I am, Tom, and I’d save you,’ said I, eagerly.
’Ye’d want savin’ yerself, I’m thinkin’, if that feel oot,’ said Tom, cynically. ’I don’t say, though, I’ll not
take it—only this—I won’t run my head again a wall for no one.’
’Tom,’ I said, with a sudden inspiration, ’give me back the letter, and take me out of Bartram; take me to
Elverston; it will be the best thing—for you, Tom, I mean—it will indeed—that ever befell you.’
With this clown I was pleading, as for my life; my hand was on his sleeve. I was gazing imploringly in his
face.
[pg 380]
But it would not do; Tom Brice looked amused again, swung his head a little on one side, grinning
sheepishly over his shoulder on the roots of the trees beside him, as if he were striving to keep himself from
an uncivil fit of laughter.
’I’ll do what a wise lad may, Miss; but ye don’t know they lads; they bain’t that easy come over; and I won’t
get knocked on the head, nor sent to gaol ’appen, for no good to thee nor me. There’s Meg there, she knows
well enough I could na’ manage that; so I won’t try it, Miss, by no chance; no offence, Miss; but I’d rayther
not, an’ I’ll just try what I can make o’this; that’s all I can do for ye.’
Tom Brice, with these words, stood up, and looked uneasily in the direction of the Windmill Wood.
’Mind ye, Miss, coom what will, ye’ll not tell o’ me?’
’Never ye mind, lass,’ answered he, breaking his way through the thicket, and soon disappearing.
’E’es that ’ill be it—he’ll git into the sheepwalk behind the mound. They’re all down yonder; git ye back,
Miss, to the hoose—be the side-door; mind ye, don’t go round the corner; and I’ll jest sit awhile among the
- 392 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
bushes, and wait a good time for a start. And good-bye, Miss; and don’t ye show like as if there was aught
out o’ common on your mind. Hish!’
’That be fayther!’ she whispered, with a very blank countenance, and listened with her sunburnt hand to her
ear.
’Tisn’t me, only Davy he’ll be callin’,’ she said, with a great sigh, and a joyless smile. ’Now git ye away i’
God’s name.’
So running lightly along the path, under cover of this thick wood, I recalled Mary Quince, and together we
hastened back again to the house, and entered, as directed, by the side-door, which did not expose us to be
seen from the Windmill Wood, and, like two criminals, we stole up by the backstairs, and so through the
side-gallery to my room; and there sat down to collect my wits, and try to estimate the exact effect of what
had just occurred.
Madame had not returned. That was well; she always visited my room first, and everything was precisely as
I had left it—a certain sign that her prying eyes and busy fingers had not been at work during my absence.
[pg 381]
When she did appear, strange to say, it was to bring me unexpected comfort. She had in her hand a letter
from my dear Lady Knollys—a gleam of sunlight from the free and happy outer world entered with it. The
moment Madame left me to myself, I opened it and read as follows:—
’I am so happy, my dearest Maud, in the immediate prospect of seeing you. I have had a really kind letter
from poor Silas—poor I say, for I really compassionate his situation, about which he has been, I do believe,
quite frank—at least Ilbury says so, and somehow he happens to know. I have had quite an affecting,
changed letter. I will tell you all when I see you. He wants me ultimately to undertake that which would
afford me the most unmixed happiness—I mean the care of you, my dear girl. I only fear lest my too eager
acceptance of the trust should excite that vein of opposition which is in most human beings, and induce him
to think over his offer less favourably again. He says I must come to Bartram, and stay a night, and promises
- 393 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
to lodge me comfortably; about which last I honestly do not care a pin, when the chance of a comfortable
evening’s gossip with you is in view. Silas explains his sad situation, and must hold himself in readiness for
early flight, if he would avoid the risk of losing his personal liberty. It is a sad thing that he should have so
irretrievably ruined himself, that poor Austin’s liberality seems to have positively precipitated his extremity.
His great anxiety is that I should see you before you leave for your short stay in France. He thinks you must
leave before a fortnight. I am thinking of asking you to come over here; I know you would be just as well at
Elverston as in France; but perhaps, as he seems disposed to do what we all wish, it may be safer to let him
set about it in his own way. The truth is, I have so set my heart upon it that I fear to risk it by crossing him
even in a trifle. He says I must fix an early day next week, and talks as if he meant to urge me to make a
longer visit than he defined. I shall be only too happy. I begin, my dear Maud, to think that there is no use in
trying to control events, and that things often turn out best, and most exactly to our wishes, by being left
quite to themselves. I think it was Talleyrand who praised the talent of waiting so much. In high spirits, and
with [pg 382] my head brimful of plans, I remain, dearest Maud, ever your affectionate cousin,
MONICA.’
Here was an inexplicable puzzle! A faint radiance of hope, however, began to overspread a landscape only a
few minutes before darkened by total eclipse; but construct what theory I might, all were inconsistent with
many well-established and awful incongruities, and their wrecks lay strown over the troubled waters of the
gulf into which I gazed.
Why was Madame here? Why was Dudley concealed about the place? Why was I a prisoner within the
walls? What were those dangers which Meg Hawkes seemed to think so great and so imminent as to induce
her to risk her lover’s safety for my deliverance? All these menacing facts stood grouped together against
the dark certainty that never were men more deeply interested in making away with one human being, than
were Uncle Silas and Dudley in removing me.
Sometimes to these dreadful evidences I abandoned my soul. Sometimes, reading Cousin Monica’s sunny
letter, the sky would clear, and my terrors melt away like nightmares in the morning. I never repented,
however, that I had sent my letter by Tom Brice. Escape from Bartram-Haugh was my hourly longing.
That evening Madame invited herself to tea with me. I did not object. It was better just then to be on
friendly relations with everybody, if possible, even on their own terms. She was in one of her boisterous and
hilarious moods, and there was a perfume of brandy.
- 394 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
She narrated some compliments paid her that morning in Feltram by that ’good crayature’ Mrs. Litheways,
the silk-mercer, and what ’’ansom faylow’ was her new foreman—(she intended plainly that I should
’queez’ her)—and how ’he follow’ her with his eyes wherever she went. I thought, perhaps, he fancied she
might pocket some of his lace or gloves. And all the time her great wicked eyes were rolling and glancing
according to her ideas of fascination, and her bony face grinning and flaming with the ’strong drink’ in
which she delighted. She sang twaddling chansons, and being, as was her wont under such exhilarating
influences, in a vapouring mood, she vowed that I should have my carriage and horses immediately.
[pg 383]
’I weel try what I can do weeth your Uncle Silas. We are very good old friends, Mr. Ruthyn and I,’ she said
with a leer which I did not understand, and which yet frightened me.
I never could quite understand why these Jezebels like to insinuate the dreadful truth against themselves; but
they do. Is it the spirit of feminine triumph overcoming feminine shame, and making them vaunt their fall as
an evidence of bygone fascination and existing power? Need we wonder? Have not women preferred hatred
to indifference, and the reputation of witchcraft, with all its penalties, to absolute insignificance? Thus, as
they enjoyed the fear inspired among simple neighbours by their imagined traffic with the father of ill, did
Madame, I think, relish with a cynical vainglory the suspicion of her satanic superiority.
Next morning Uncle Silas sent for me. He was seated at his table, and spoke his little French greeting,
smiling as usual, pointing to a chair opposite.
’How far, I forget,’ he said, carelessly laying his newspaper on the table, ’did you yesterday guess Dudley to
be?’
’Oh yes, so it was;’ and then there was an abstracted pause. ’I have been writing to Lord Ilbury, your
trustee,’ he resumed. I ventured to say, my dear Maud—(for having thoughts of a different arrangement for
you, more suitable under my distressing circumstances, I do not wish to vacate without some expression of
your estimate of my treatment of you while under my roof)—I ventured to say that you thought me kind,
considerate, indulgent,—may I say so?’
- 395 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’I said you had enjoyed our poor way of living here—our rough ways and liberty. Was I right?’
Again I assented.
’And, in fact, that you had nothing to object against your poor old uncle, except indeed his poverty, which
you forgave. I think I said truth. Did I, dear Maud?’
Again I acquiesced.
All this time he was fumbling among the papers in his coatpocket.
[pg 384]
On a sudden a frightful change spread across his face. He rose like a spectre with a white scowl.
’Then how do you account for that?’ he shrieked in a voice of thunder, and smiting my open letter to Lady
Knollys, face upward, upon the table.
I stared at my uncle, unable to speak, until I seemed to lose sight of him; but his voice, like a bell, still
yelled in my ears.
’There! young hypocrite and liar! explain that farrago of slander which you bribed my servant to place in
the hands of my kinswoman, Lady Knollys.’
And so on and on it went, I gazing into darkness, until the voice itself became indistinct, grew into a buzz,
and hummed away into silence.
When I came to myself I was drenched with water, my hair, face, neck, and dress. I did not in the least know
where I was. I thought my father was ill, and spoke to him. Uncle Silas was standing near the window,
looking unspeakably grim. Madame was seated beside me, and an open bottle of ether, one of Uncle Silas’s
restoratives, on the table before me.
- 396 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
At last I was relieved by long paroxysms of weeping. When I was sufficiently recovered, I was conveyed
into my own room.
CHAPTER LVIII
Next morning—it was Sunday—I lay on my bed in my dressing-gown, dull, apathetic, with all my limbs
sore, and, as I thought, rheumatic, and feeling so ill that I did not care to speak or lift my head. My
recollection of what had passed in Uncle Silas’s room was utterly confused, and it seemed to me as if my
poor father had been there and taken a share—I could not remember how—in the conference.
[pg 385]
I was too exhausted and stupid to clear up this horrible muddle, and merely lay with my face toward the
wall, motionless and silent, except for a great sigh every now and then.
Good Mary Quince was in the room—there was some comfort in that; but I felt quite worn out, and had
rather she did not speak to me; and indeed for the time I felt absolutely indifferent as to whether I lived or
died.
Cousin Monica this morning, at pleasant Elverston, all-unconscious of my sad plight, proposed to Lady
Mary Carysbroke and Lord Ilbury, her guests, to drive over to church at Feltram, and then pay us a visit at
Bartram-Haugh, to which they readily agreed.
Accordingly, at about two o’clock, this pleasant party of three arrived at Bartram. They walked, having left
the carriage to follow when the horses were fed; and Madame de la Rougierre, who was in my uncle’s room
when little Giblets arrived to say that the party were in the parlour, whispered for a little with my uncle,
- 397 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Miss Maud Ruthyn has gone out to drive, but I shall be happy to see Lady Knollys here, if she will do me
the favour to come up-stairs and see me for a few moments; and you can mention that I am very far from
well.’
Madame followed him out upon the lobby, and added, holding him by the collar, and whispering earnestly
in his ear—
And the next moment Madame entered my room, with long tiptoe steps, and looking, Mary Quince said, as
if she were going to be hanged.
On entering she looked sharply round, and being satisfied of Mary Quince’s presence, she turned the key in
the door, and made some affectionate enquiries about me in a whisper; and then she stole to the window and
peeped out, standing back some way; after which she came to my bedside, murmured some tender
sentences, drew the curtain a little, and making some little fidgety adjustments about the room; among the
rest she took the key from the lock, quietly, and put it into her pocket.
This was so odd a procedure that honest Mary Quince rose stoutly from her chair, pointing to the lock, with
her frank little blue eyes fixed on Madame, and she whispered—’Won’t [pg 386] you put the key in the
lock, please?’
’Oh, certainly, Mary Queence; but it is better it shall be locked, for I think her uncle he is coming to see her,
and I am sure she would be very much frightened, for he is very much displease, don’t you see? and we can
tell him she is not well enough, or asleep, and so he weel go away again, without any trouble.’
I heard nothing of this, which was conducted in close whispers; and Mary, although she did not give
Madame credit for caring whether I was frightened or not, and suspected her motives in everything,
acquiesced grudgingly, fearing lest her alleged reason might possibly be the true one.
So Madame hovered about the door, uneasily; and of what went on elsewhere during that period Lady
Knollys afterwards gave me the following account:—
- 398 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’We were very much disappointed; but of course I was glad to see Silas, and your little hobgoblin butler led
me up-stairs to his room a different way, I think, from that I came before; but I don’t know the house of
Bartram well enough to speak positively. I only know that I was conducted quite across his bedroom, which
I had not seen on my former visit, and so into his sitting-room, where I found him.
’He seemed very glad to see me, came forward smiling—I disliked his smile always—with both hands out,
and shook mine with more warmth than I ever remembered in his greeting before, and said—
’"My dear, dear Monica, how very good of you—the very person I longed to see! I have been miserably ill,
the sad consequence of still more miserable anxiety. Sit down, pray, for a moment."
’"I think Maud is by this time about halfway to Elverston," said the old gentleman. "I persuaded her to take
a drive, and advised a call there, which seemed to please her, so I conjecture she obeyed."
’"My poor Maud will be sadly disappointed, but you will console her by a visit—you have promised to
come, and I shall [pg 387] try to make you comfortable. I shall be happier, Monica, with this proof of our
perfect reconciliation. You won’t deny me?"
’"Certainly not. I am only too glad to come," said I; "and I want to thank you, Silas."
’"I did not suggest it, I must say, Monica, with the least intention of obliging you," said Silas.
’"But I am obliged to you—very much obliged to you, Silas; and you sha’n’t refuse my thanks."
- 399 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’"I am happy, at all events, Monica, in having won your good-will; we learn at last that in the affections
only are our capacities for happiness; and how true is St. Paul’s preference of love—the principle that
abideth! The affections, dear Monica, are eternal; and being so, celestial, divine, and consequently happy,
deriving happiness, and bestowing it."
’I was always impatient of his or anybody else’s metaphysics; but I controlled myself, and only said, with
my customary impudence—
’"Lady Mary and Ilbury will be leaving me on Tuesday morning. I can come to you in the afternoon, if you
think Tuesday a good day."
’"Thank you, dear Monica. I shall be, I trust, enlightened by that day as to my enemies’ plans. It is a
humiliating confession, Monica, but I am past feeling that. It is quite possible that an execution may be sent
into this house to-morrow, and an end of all my schemes. It is not likely, however—hardly possible—before
three weeks, my attorney tells me. I shall hear from him to-morrow morning, and then I shall ask you to
name a very early day. If we are to have an unmolested fortnight certain, you shall hear, and name your own
day."
’Then he asked me who had accompanied me, and lamented ever so much his not being able to go down to
receive them; and he offered luncheon, with a sort of Ravenswood smile, and a shrug, and I declined, telling
him that we had but a few [pg 388] minutes, and that my companions were walking in the grounds near the
house.
’"Certainly not before five o’clock." He thought we should probably meet her on our way back to Elverston;
but could not be certain, as she might have changed her plans.
’So then came—no more remaining to be said—a very affectionate parting. I believe all about his legal
dangers was strictly true. How he could, unless that horrid woman had deceived him, with so serene a
countenance tell me all those gross untruths about Maud, I can only admire.’
- 400 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
In the meantime, as I lay in my bed, Madame, gliding hither and thither, whispering sometimes, listening at
others, I suddenly startled them both by saying—
’Whose carriage?’
’What carriage, dear?’ inquired Quince, whose ears were not so sharp as mine.
’’Tis the physician, Doctor Jolks. He is come to see your uncle, my dear,’ said Madame.
’No, my dear; there is only the doctor,’ said Madame. ’He is come to your uncle. I tell you he is getting out
of his carriage,’ and she affected to watch the doctor’s descent.
But I had sprung from my bed, and was looking over her shoulder, before she perceived me.
’It is Lady Knollys!’ I screamed, seizing the window-frame to force it up, and, vainly struggling to open it, I
cried—
’I’m here, Cousin Monica. For God’s sake, Cousin Monica—Cousin Monica!’
’You are mad, Meess—go back,’ screamed Madame, exerting her superior strength to force me back.
But I saw deliverance and escape gliding away from my reach, and, strung to unnatural force by
desperation, I pushed past her, and beat the window wildly with my hands, screaming—
’Save me—save me! Here, here, Monica, here! Cousin, cousin, oh! save me!’
Madame had seized my wrists, and a wild struggle was going [pg 389] on. A window-pane was broken, and
I was shrieking to stop the carriage. The Frenchwoman looked black and haggard as a fury, as if she could
have murdered me.
- 401 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Nothing daunted—frantic—I screamed in my despair, seeing the carriage drive swiftly away—seeing
Cousin Monica’s bonnet, as she sat chatting with her vis-à-vis.
’Oh, oh, oh!’ I shrieked, in vain and prolonged agony, as Madame, exerting her strength and matching her
fury against my despair, forced me back in spite of my wild struggles, and pushed me sitting on the bed,
where she held me fast, glaring in my face, and chuckling and panting over me.
I remember the face of poor Mary Quince—its horror, its wonder—as she stood gaping into my face, over
Madame’s shoulder, and crying—
’What is it, Miss Maud? What is it, dear?’ And turning fiercely on Madame, and striving to force her grasp
from my wrists, ’Are you hurting the child? Let her go—let her go.’
’I weel let her go. Wat old fool are you, Mary Queence! She is mad, I think. She ’as lost hair head.’
’Oh, Mary, cry from the window. Stop the carriage!’ I cried.
Mary looked out, but there was by this time, of course, nothing in sight.
’Why don’t a you stop the carriage?’ sneered Madame. ’Call a the coachman and the postilion. W’ere is the
footman? Bah! elle a le cerveau mal timbré.’
’Oh, Mary, Mary, is it gone—is it gone? Is there nothing there?’ cried I, rushing to the window; and turning
to Madame, after a vain straining of my eyes, my face against the glass—
’Oh, cruel, cruel, wicked woman! why have you done this? What was it to you? Why do you persecute me?
What good can you gain by my ruin?’
’Rueen! Par bleu! ma chère, you talk too fast. Did not a you see it, Mary Queence? It was the doctor’s
carriage, and Mrs. Jolks, and that eempudent faylow, young Jolks, staring up to the window, and
Mademoiselle she come in soche shocking déshabille to show herself knocking at the window. ’Twould be
very nice thing, Mary Queence, don’t you think?’
I was sitting now on the bedside, crying in mere despair. I [pg 390] did not care to dispute or to resist. Oh!
why had rescue come so near, only to prove that it could not reach me? So I went on crying, with a clasping
- 402 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
of my hands and turning up of my eyes, in incoherent prayer. I was not thinking of Madame, or of Mary
Quince, or any other person, only babbling my anguish and despair helplessly in the ear of heaven.
’I did not think there was soche fool. Wat enfant gaté! My dear cheaile, wat a can you mean by soche
strange language and conduct? Wat for should a you weesh to display yourself in the window in soche
’orrible déshabille to the people in the doctor’s coach?’
’It was Cousin Knollys—Cousin Knollys. Oh, Cousin Knollys! You’re gone—you’re gone—you’re gone!’
’And if it was Lady Knollys’ coach, there was certainly a coachman and a footman; and whoever has the
coach there was young gentlemen in it. If it was Lady Knollys’ carriage it would ’av been worse than the
doctor.’
’It is no matter—it is all over. Oh, Cousin Monica, your poor Maud—where is she to turn? Is there no
help?’
That evening Madame visited me again, in one of her sedate and moral moods. She found me dejected and
passive, as she had left me.
’Oh!’ I said, in a tone which I am sure implied the absolute indifference of dejection.
’But, my dear Maud, if’t be so, we shall go at once, you and me, to join Meess Millicent in France. La belle
France! You weel like so moche! We shall be so gay. You cannot imagine there are such naice girl there.
They all love a me so moche, you will be delight.’
’I do not know. Bote I was to bring in a case of eau de cologne that came this evening, and he laid down a
letter and say:—"The blow has descended, Madame! My niece must hold herself in readiness." I said, "For
what, Monsieur?" twice; bote he did not answer. I am sure it is un procès. They ’av ruin him. Eh bien, my
dear. I suppose we shall leave this triste place [pg 391] immediately. I am so rejoice. It appears to me un
- 403 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
cimetière!’
’Yes, I should like to leave it,’ I said, sitting up, with a great sigh and sunken eyes. It seemed to me that I
had quite lost all sense of resentment towards Madame. A debility of feeling had supervened—the fatigue, I
suppose, and prostration of the passions.
’I weel make excuse to go into his room again,’ said Madame; ’and I weel endeavor to learn something
more from him, and I weel come back again to you in half an hour.’
She departed. But in half an hour did not return. I had a dull longing to leave Bartram-Haugh. For me, since
the departure of poor Milly, it had grown like the haunt of evil spirits, and to escape on any terms from it
was a blessing unspeakable.
Another half-hour passed, and another, and I grew insufferably feverish. I sent Mary Quince to the lobby to
try and see Madame, who, I feared, was probably to-ing and fro-ing in and out of Uncle Silas’s room.
Mary returned to tell me that she had seen old Wyat, who told her that she thought Madame had gone to her
bed half an hour before.
CHAPTER LIX
A SUDDEN DEPARTURE
’Mary,’ said I, ’I am miserably anxious to hear what Madame may have to tell; she knows the state I am in,
and she would not like so much trouble as to look in at my door to say a word. Did you hear what she told
me?’
- 404 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’She thinks we are going to France immediately, and to leave this place perhaps for ever.’
’Heaven be praised for that, if it be so, Miss!’ said Mary, with more energy than was common with her, ’for
there is no [pg 392] luck about it, and I don’t expect to see you ever well or happy in it.’
’You must take your candle, Mary, and make out her room, up-stairs; I found it accidentally myself one
evening.’
’Don’t mind her, Mary; I tell you to go. You must try. I can’t sleep till we hear.’
’Somewhere in that direction, Mary,’ I answered, pointing. ’I cannot describe the turns; but I think you will
find it if you go along the great passage to your left, on getting to the top of the stairs, till you come to the
cross-galleries, and then turn to your left; and when you have passed four or perhaps five doors, you must
be very near it, and I am sure she will hear if you call.’
’But will she tell me—she is such a rum un, Miss?’ suggested Mary.
’Tell her exactly what I have said to you, and when she learns that you already know as much as I do, she
may—unless, indeed, she wishes to torture me. If she won’t, perhaps at least you can persuade her to come
to me for a moment. Try, dear Mary; we can but fail.’
’Will you be very lonely, Miss, while I am away?’ asked Mary, uneasily, as she lighted her candle.
’I can’t help it, Mary. Go. I think if I heard we were going, I could almost get up and dance and sing. I can’t
bear this dreadful uncertainty any longer.’
’If old Wyat is outside, I’ll come back and wait here a bit, till she’s out o’ the way,’ said Mary; ’and,
anyhow, I’ll make all the haste I can. The drops and the sal-volatile is here, Miss, by your hand.’
And with an anxious look at me, she made her exit, softly, and did not immediately return, by which I
concluded that she had found the way clear, and had gained the upper story without interruption.
- 405 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
This little anxiety ended, its subsidence was followed by a sense of loneliness, and with it, of vague
insecurity, which increased at last to such a pitch, that I wondered at my own madness in sending my
companion away; and at last my terrors so grew, that I drew back into the farthest corner of the bed, with
[pg 393] my shoulders to the wall, and my bed-clothes huddled about me, with only a point open to peep at.
’Me, Miss,’ whispered Mary Quince, to my unutterable relief; and with her candle flared, and a wild and
pallid face, Mary Quince glided into the room, locking the door as she entered.
I do not know how it was, but I found myself holding Mary fast with both my hands as we stood side by
side on the floor.
’Mary, you are terrified; for God’s sake, what is the matter?’ I cried.
’Let me sit down, Miss. I’ll tell you what I saw; only I’m just a bit queerish.’
’Get in, Miss; you’ll take cold. Get into bed, and I’ll tell you. It is not much.’
I did get into bed, and gazing on Mary’s frightened face, I felt a corresponding horror.
So again assuring me ’it was not much,’ she gave me in a somewhat diffuse and tangled narrative the
following facts:—
On closing my door, she raised her candle above her head and surveyed the lobby, and seeing no one there
she ascended the stairs swiftly. She passed along the great gallery to the left, and paused a moment at the
cross gallery, and then recollected my directions clearly, and followed the passage to the right.
- 406 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
There are doors at each side, and she had forgotten to ask me at which Madame’s was. She opened several.
In one room she was frightened by a bat, which had very nearly put her candle out. She went on a little,
paused, and began to lose heart in the dismal solitude, when on a sudden, a few doors farther on, she
thought she heard Madame’s voice.
She said that she knocked at the door, but receiving no answer, and hearing Madame still talking within, she
opened it.
There was a candle on the chimneypiece, and another in a stable lantern near the window. Madame was
conversing volubly on the hearth, with her face toward the window, the entire [pg 394] frame of which had
been taken from its place: Dickon Hawkes, the Zamiel of the wooden leg, was supporting it with one hand,
as it leaned imperfectly against the angle of the recess. There was a third figure standing, buttoned up in a
surtout, with a bundle of tools under his arm, like a glazier, and, with a silent thrill of fear, she distinctly
recognised the features as those of Dudley Ruthyn.
’’Twas him, Miss, so sure as I sit here! Well, like that, they were as mute as mice; three pairs of eyes were
on me. I don’t know what made me so study like, but som’at told me I should not make as though I knew
any but Madame; and so I made a courtesy, as well as I could, and I said, "Might I speak a word wi’ ye,
please, on the lobby?"
’Mr. Dudley was making belief be this time to look out at window, wi’ his back to me, and I kept looking
straight on Madame, and she said, "They’re mendin’ my broken glass, Mary," walking between them and
me, and coming close up to me very quick; and so she marched me backward out o’ the door, prating all the
time.
’When we were on the lobby, she took my candle from my hand, shutting the door behind her, and she held
the light a bit behind her ear; so’twas full on my face, as she looked sharp into it; and, after a bit, she said
again, in her queer lingo—there was two panes broke in her room, and men sent for to mend it.
’I was awful frightened when I saw Mr. Dudley, for I could not believe any such thing before, and I don’t
know how I could look her in the face as I did and not show it. I was as smooth and cool as yonder
chimneypiece, and she has an awful evil eye to stan’ against; but I never flinched, and I think she’s puzzled,
for as cunning as she is, whether I believe all she said, or knowed ’twas a pack o’ stories. So I told her your
message, and she said she had not heard another word since; but she did believe we had not many more days
- 407 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
here, and would tell you if she heard to-night, when she brought his soup to your uncle, in half an hour’s
time.’
I asked her, as soon as I could speak, whether she was perfectly certain as to the fact that the man in the
surtout was Dudley, and she made answer—
[pg 395]
So far from any longer wishing Madame’s return that night, I trembled at the idea of it. Who could tell who
might enter the room with her when the door opened to admit her?
Dudley, so soon as he recovered the surprise, had turned about, evidently anxious to prevent recognition;
Dickon Hawkes stood glowering at her. Both might have hope of escaping recognition in the imperfect
light, for the candle on the chimneypiece was flaring in the air, and the light from the lantern fell in spots,
and was confusing.
What could that ruffian, Hawkes, be doing in the house? Why was Dudley there? Could a more ominous
combination be imagined? I puzzled my distracted head over all Mary Quince’s details, but could make
nothing of their occupation. I know of nothing so terrifying as this kind of perpetual puzzling over ominous
problems.
You may imagine how the long hours of that night passed, and how my heart beat at every fancied sound
outside my door.
But morning came, and with its light some reassurance. Early, Madame de la Rougierre made her
appearance; she searched my eyes darkly and shrewdly, but made no allusion to Mary Quince’s visit.
Perhaps she expected some question from me, and, hearing none, thought it as well to leave the subject at
rest.
She had merely come in to say that she had heard nothing since, but was now going to make my uncle’s
chocolate; and that so soon as her interview was ended she would see me again, and let me hear anything
she should have gleaned.
- 408 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
In a little while a knock came to my door, and Mary Quince was ordered by old Wyat into my uncle’s room.
She returned flushed, in a huge fuss, to say that I was to be up and dressed for a journey in half an hour, and
to go straight, when dressed, to my uncle’s room.
It was good news; at the same time it was a shock. I was glad. I was stunned. I jumped out of bed, and set
about my toilet with an energy quite new to me. Good Mary Quince was busily packing my boxes, and
consulting as to what I should take with me, and what not.
Was Mary Quince to accompany me? He had not said a word on that point; and I feared from his silence she
was to remain. There was comfort, however, in this—that the separation would not be for long; I felt
confident of that; and I was about to [pg 396] join Milly, whom I loved better than I could have believed
before our separation; but whatsoever the conditions might be, it was an indescribable relief to have done
with Bartram-Haugh, and leave behind me its sinister lines of circumvallation, its haunted recesses, and the
awful spectres that had lately appeared within its walls.
I stood too much in awe of my uncle to fail in presenting myself punctually at the close of the half-hour. I
entered his sitting-room under the shadow of sour old Wyat’s high-cauled cap; she closed the door behind
me, and the conference commenced.
Madame de la Rougierre sat there, dressed and draped for a journey, and with a thick black lace veil on. My
uncle rose, gaunt and venerable, and with a harsh and severe countenance. He did not offer his hand; he
made me a kind of bow, more of repulsion than of respect. He remained in a standing position, supporting
his crooked frame by his hand, which he leaned on a despatch-box; he glared on me steadily with his wild
phosphoric eyes, from under the dark brows I have described to you, now corrugated in lines indescribably
stern.
’You shall join my daughter at the Pension, in France; Madame de la Rougierre shall accompany you,’ said
my uncle, delivering his directions with the stern monotony and the measured pauses of a person dictating
an important despatch to a secretary.’ Old Mrs. Quince shall follow with me, or, if alone, in a week. You
shall pass to-night in London; to-morrow night you proceed thence to Dover, and cross by the mail-packet.
You shall now sit down and write a letter to your cousin Monica Knollys, which I will first read and then
despatch. Tomorrow you shall write a note to Lady Knollys, from London, telling her how you have got
over so much of your journey, and that you cannot write from Dover, as you must instantly start by the
packet on reaching it; and that until my affairs are a little settled, you cannot write to her from France, as it
- 409 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
is of high importance to my safety that no clue should exist as to our address. Intelligence, however, shall
reach her through my attorneys, Archer and Sleigh, and I trust we shall soon return. You will, please, submit
that latter note to Madame de la Rougierre, who has my directions to see that it contains no libels upon my
character. Now, sit down.’
[pg 397]
’Write,’ said he, when I was duly placed. ’You shall convey the substance of what I say in your own
language. The immiment danger this morning announced of an execution—rememher the word,’ and he
spelled it for me—’being put into this house either this afternoon or to-morrow, compels me to anticipate
my plans, and despatch you for France this day. That you are starting with an attendant.’ Here an uneasy
movement from Madame, whose dignity was perhaps excited. ’An attendant,’ he repeated, with a
discordant emphasis; ’and you can, if you please—but I don’t solicit that justice—say that you have been as
kindly treated here as my unfortunate circumstances would permit. That is all. You have just fifteen minutes
to write. Begin.’
I wrote accordingly. My hysterical state had made me far less combative than I might have proved some
months since, for there was much that was insulting as well as formidable in his manner. I completed my
letter, however, to his satisfaction in the prescribed time; and he said, as he laid it and its envelope on the
table—
’Please to remember that this lady is not your attendant only, but that she has authority to direct every detail
respecting your journey, and will make all the necessary payments on the way. You will please, then,
implicitly to comply with her directions. The carriage awaits you at the hall-door.’
Having thus spoken, with another grim bow, and ’I wish you a safe and pleasant journey,’ he receded a step
or two, and I, with an undefinable kind of melancholy, though also with a sense of relief, withdrew.
My letter, I afterwards found, reached Lady Knollys, accompanied by one from Uncle Silas, who
said—’Dear Maud apprises me that she has written to tell you something of our movements. A sudden crisis
in my miserable affairs compels a break-up as sudden here. Maud joins my daughter at the Pension, in
France. I purposely omit the address, because I mean to reside in its vicinity until this storm shall have
blown over; and as the consequences of some of my unhappy entanglements might pursue me even there, I
- 410 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
must only for the present spare you the pain and trouble of keeping a secret. I am sure that for some little
time you will excuse the girl’s silence; in the meantime you shall hear of them, and perhaps circuitously,
from me. Our dear [pg 398] Maud started this morning en route for her destination, very sorry, as am I, that
she could not enjoy first a flying visit to Elverston, but in high spirits, notwithstanding, at the new life and
sights before her.’
’I’m not,’ said Mary, very sorrowfully; ’and I never was from you yet, Miss, since you wasn’t the length of
my arm.’
’Bote you are coming in a few days, Mary Quince,’ expostulated Madame. ’I wonder you are soche fool.
What is two, three days? Bah! nonsense, girl.’
Another farewell to poor Mary Quince, quite bewildered at the suddenness of her bereavement. A serious
and tremulous bow from our little old butler on the steps. Madame bawling through the open window to the
driver to make good speed, and remember that we had but nineteen minutes to reach the station. Away we
went. Old Crowle’s iron grille rolled back before us. I looked on the receding landscape, the giant
trees—the palatial, time-stained mansion. A strange conflict of feelings, sweet and bitter, rose and mingled
in the reverie. Had I been too hard and suspicious with the inhabitants of that old house of my family? Was
my uncle justly indignant? Was I ever again to know such pleasant rambles as some of those I had enjoyed
with dear Millicent through the wild and beautiful woodlands I was leaving behind me? And there, with my
latest glimpse of the front of Bartram-Haugh, I beheld dear old Mary Quince gazing after us. Again my tears
flowed. I waved my handkerchief from the window; and now the park-wall hid all from view, and at a great
pace, throught the steep wooded glen, with the rocky and precipitous character of a ravine, we glided; and
when the road next emerged, Bartram-Haugh was a misty mass of forest and chimneys, slope and hollow,
and we within a few minutes of the station.
- 411 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 399]
CHAPTER LX
THE JOURNEY
Waiting for the train, as we stood upon the platform, I looked back again toward the wooded uplands of
Bartram; and far behind, the fine range of mountains, azure and soft in the distance, beyond which lay
beloved old Knowl, and my lost father and mother, and the scenes of my childhood, never embittered except
by the sibyl who sat beside me.
Under happier circumstances I should have been, at my then early age, quite wild with pleasurable
excitement on entering London for the first time. But black Care sat by me, with her pale hand in mine: a
voice of fear and warning, whose words I could not catch, was always in my ear. We drove through
London, amid the glare of lamps, toward the West-end, and for a little while the sense of novelty and
curiosity overcame my despondency, and I peeped eagerly from the window; while Madame, who was in
high good-humour, spite of the fatigues of our long railway flight, screeched scraps of topographic
information in my ear; for London was a picture-book in which she was well read.
’That is Euston Square, my dear—Russell Square. Here is Oxford Street—Haymarket. See, there is the
Opera House—Hair Majesty’s Theatre. See all the carriages waiting;’ and so on, till we reached at length a
little narrow street, which she told me was off Piccadilly, where we drew up before a private house, as it
seemed to me—a family hotel—and I was glad to be at rest for the night.
Fatigued with the peculiar fatigue of railway travelling, dusty, a little chilly, with eyes aching and wearied, I
ascended the stairs silently, our garrulous and bustling landlady leading the way, and telling her oft-told
story of the house, its noble owner in old time, and how those fine drawing-rooms were taken every [pg
400] year during the Session by the Bishop of Rochet-on-Copeley, and at last into our double-bedded room.
- 412 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I would fain have been alone, but I was too tired and dejected to care very much for anything.
At tea, Madame expanded in spirit, like a giant refreshed, and chattered and sang; and at last, seeing that I
was nodding, advised my going to bed, while she ran across the street to see ’her dear old friend,
Mademoiselle St. Eloi, who was sure to be up, and would be offended if she failed to make her ever so short
a call.’
I cared little what she said, and was glad to be rid of her even for a short time, and was soon fast asleep.
I saw her, I know not how much later, poking about the room, like a figure in a dream, and taking off her
things.
She had her breakfast in bed next morning, and I was, to my comfort, left to take mine in solitary possession
of our sitting-room; where I began to wonder how little annoyance I had as yet suffered from her company,
and began to speculate upon the chances of my making the journey with tolerable comfort.
Our hostess gave me five minutes of her valuable time. Her talk ran chiefly upon nuns and convents, and her
old acquaintance with Madame; and it seemed to me that she had at one time driven a kind of trade, no
doubt profitable enough, in escorting young ladies to establishments on the Continent; and although I did
not then quite understand the tone in which she spoke to me, I often thought afterwards that Madame had
represented me as a young person destined for the holy vocation of the veil.
When she was gone, I sat listlessly looking out of the window, and saw some chance equipages drive by,
and now and then a fashionable pedestrian; and wondered if this quiet thoroughfare could really be one of
the arteries so near the heart of the tumultuous capital.
I think my nervous vitality must have burnt very low just then, for I felt perfectly indifferent about all the
novelty and world of wonders beyond, and should have hated to leave the dull tranquillity of my window for
an excursion through the splendours of the unseen streets and palaces that surrounded me.
It was one o’clock before Madame joined me; and finding me [pg 401] in this dull mood, she did not press
me to accompany her in her drive, no doubt well pleased to be rid of me.
After tea that evening, as we sat alone in our room, she entertained me with some very odd conversation—at
the time unintelligible—but which acquired a tolerably distinct meaning from the events that followed.
- 413 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Two or three times that day Madame appeared to me on the point of saying something of grave import, as
she scanned me with her bleak wicked stare.
It was a peculiarity of hers, that whenever she was pressed upon by an anxiety that really troubled her, her
countenance did not look sad or solicitous, as other people’s would, but simply wicked. Her great gaunt
mouth was compressed and drawn down firmly at the corners, and her eyes glared with a dismal scowl.
’And how do you show your gratitude? For instance, would a you do great deal for a person who would run
risque for your sake?’
It struck me all at once that she was sounding me about poor Meg Hawkes, whose fidelity, notwithstanding
the treason or cowardice of her lover, Tom Brice, I never doubted; and I grew at once wary and reserved.
’I know of no opportunity, thank Heaven, for any such service, Madame. How can anyone serve me at
present, by themselves incurring danger? What do you mean?’
’Do you like, for example, to go to that French Pension? Would you not like better some other
arrangement?’
’Of course there are other arrangements I should like better; but I see no use in talking of them; they are not
to be,’ I answered.
’What other arrangements do you mean, my dear cheaile?’ enquired Madame. ’You mean, I suppose, you
would like better to go to Lady Knollys?’
’My uncle does not choose it at present; and except with his consent nothing can be done!’
[pg 402]
- 414 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’But he has consented—not immediately indeed, but in a short time, when his affairs are settled.’
’At all events, for the present I am to go to France. Milly seems very happy, and I dare say I shall like it too.
I am very glad to leave Bartram-Haugh, at all events.’
’But your uncle weel bring you back there,’ said Madame, drily.
’Ah!’ said Madame, with a long-drawn nasal intonation, ’you theenk I hate you. You are quaite wrong, my
dear Maud. I am, on the contrary, very much interested for you—I am, I assure you, dear a cheaile.’
And she laid her great hand, with joints misshapen by old chilblains, upon the back of mine. I looked up in
her face. She was not smiling. On the contrary, her wide mouth was drawn down at the corners ruefully, as
before, and she gazed on my face with a scowl from her abysmal eyes.
I used to think the flare of that irony which lighted her face so often immeasurably worse than any other
expression she could assume; but this lack-lustre stare and dismal collapse of feature was more wicked still.
’Suppose I should bring you to Lady Knollys, and place you in her charge, what would a you do then for
poor Madame?’ said this dark spectre.
I was inwardly startled at these words. I looked into her unsearchable face, but could draw thence nothing
but fear. Had she made the same overture only two days since, I think I would have offered her half my
fortune. But circumstances were altered. I was no longer in the panic of despair. The lesson I had received
from Tom Brice was fresh in my mind, and my profound distrust of her was uppermost. I saw before me
only a tempter and betrayer, and said—
’Do you mean to imply, Madame, that my guardian is not to be trusted, and that I ought to make my escape
from him, and that you are really willing to aid me in doing so?’
This, you see, was turning the tables upon her. I looked her steadily in the face as I spoke. She returned my
gaze with a [pg 403] strange stare and a gape, which haunted me long after; and it seemed as we sat in utter
silence that each was rather horribly fascinated by the other’s gaze.
- 415 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
At last she shut her mouth sternly, and eyes me with a more determined and meaning scowl, and then said in
a low tone—
’I believe, Maud, that you are a cunning and wicked little thing.’
’Wisdom is not cunning, Madame; nor is it wicked to ask your meaning in explicit language,’ I replied.
’And so, you clever cheaile, we two sit here, playing at a game of chess, over this little table, to decide
which shall destroy the other—is it not so?’
’I will not allow you to destroy me,’ I retorted, with a sudden flash.
Madame stood up, and rubbed her mouth with her open hand. She looked to me like some evil being seen in
a dream. I was frightened.
’You are going to hurt me!’ I ejaculated, scarce knowing what I said.
’If I were, you deserve it. You are very malicious, ma chère: or, it may be, only very stupid.’
A maid entered.
Madame broke the seal, and read. It seemed but a word, for she turned it about after the first momentary
glance, and examined the interior of the envelope, and then returned to the line she had already read.
She folded the letter again, drawing her nails in a sharp pinch along the creases, as she stared in a blank,
hesitating way at me.
- 416 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You are stupid little ingrate, I am employ by Monsieur Ruthyn, and of course I am faithful to my employer.
I do not want to talk to you. There, you may read that.’
She jerked the letter before me on the table. It contained but these words:—
[pg 404]
Bartram-Haugh:
’Be so good as to take the half-past eight o’clock train to Dover to-night. Beds are prepared.—Yours very
truly,
SILAS RUTHYN.’
I cannot say what it was in this short advice that struck me with fear. Was it the thick line beneath the word
’Dover,’ that was so uncalled for, and gave me a faint but terrible sense of something preconcerted?
I said to Madame—
’I do not know, little fool, no more than you. How can I tell what is passing in your oncle’s head when he
make that a mark?’
’How can you talk like that?’ she answered, more in her old way. ’You are either mocking of me, or you are
becoming truly a fool!’
- 417 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
She rang the bell, called for our bill, saw our hostess; while I made a few hasty prepartions in my room.
’You need not look after the trunks—they will follow us all right. Let us go, cheaile—we ’av half an hour
only to reach the train.’
No one ever fussed like Madame when occasion offered. There was a cab at the door, into which she
hurried me. I assumed that she would give all needful directions, and leaned back, very weary and sleepy
already, though it was so early, listening to her farewell screamed from the cab-step, and seeing her black
cloak flitting and flapping this way and that, like the wings of a raven disturbed over its prey.
In she got, and away we drove through a glare of lamps, and shop-windows, still open; gas everywhere, and
cabs, busses, and carriages, still thundering through the streets. I was too tired and too depressed to look at
those things. Madame, on the contrary, had her head out of the window till we reached the station.
’Where are the rest of the boxes?’ I asked, as Madame placed [pg 405] me in charge of her box and my bag
in the office of the terminus.
’They will follow with Boots in another cab, and will come safe with us in this train. Mind those two, we
weel bring in the carriage with us.’
So into a carriage we got; in came Madame’s box and my bag; Madame stood at the door, and, I think,
frightened away intending passengers, by her size and shrillness.
At last the bell rang her into her place, the door clapt, the whistle sounded, and we were off.
CHAPTER LXI
OUR BED-CHAMBER
- 418 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I had passed a miserable night, and, indeed, for many nights had not had my due proportion of sleep. Still I
sometimes fancy that I may have swallowed something in my tea that helped to make me so irresistibly
drowsy. It was a very dark night—no moon, and the stars soon hid by the gathering clouds. Madame sat
silent, and ruminating in her place, with her rugs about her. I, in my corner similarly enveloped, tried to
keep awake. Madame plainly thought I was asleep already, for she stole a leather flask from her pocket, and
applied it to her lips, causing an aroma of brandy.
But it was vain struggling against the influence that was stealing over me, and I was soon in a profound and
dreamless slumber.
Madame awoke me at last, in a huge fuss. She had got out all our things and hurried them away to a close
carriage which was awaiting us. It was still dark and starless. We got along the platform, I half asleep, the
porter carrying our rugs, by the glare of a pair of gas-jets in the wall, and out by a small door at the end.
I remember that Madame, contrary to her wont, gave the man [pg 406] some money. By the puzzling light
of the carriage-lamps we got in and took our seats.
’Go on,’ screamed Madame, and drew up the window with a great chuck; and we were enclosed in darkness
and silence, the most favourable conditions for thought.
My sleep had not restored me as it might; I felt feverish, fatigued, and still very drowsy, though unable to
sleep as I had done.
I dozed by fits and starts, and lay awake, or half-awake, sometimes, not thinking but in a way imagining
what kind of a place Dover would be; but too tired and listless to ask Madame any questions, and merely
seeing the hedges, grey in the lamplight, glide backward into darkness, as I leaned back.
We turned off the main road, at right angles, and drew up.
’Get down and poosh it, it is open,’ screamed Madame from the window.
A gate, I suppose, was thus passed; for when we resumed our brisk trot, Madame bawled across the
carriage—
- 419 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And so all again was darkness and silence, and I fell into another doze, from which, on waking, I found that
we had come to a standstill, and Madame was standing on the low step of an open door, paying the driver.
She, herself, pulled her box and the bag in. I was too tired to care what had become of the rest of our
luggage.
I descended, glancing to the right and left, but there was nothing visible but a patch of light from the lamps
on a paved ground and on the wall.
We stepped into the hall or vestibule, and Madame shut the door, and I thought I heard the key turn in it. We
were in total darkness.
’Where are the lights, Madame—where are the people?’ I asked, more awake than I had been.
’’Tis pass three o’clock, cheaile, bote there is always light here.’ She was groping at the side; and in a
moment more lighted a lucifer match, and so a bedroom candle.
We were in a flagged lobby, under an archway at the right, and at the left of which opened long flagged
passages, lost in darkness; a winding stair, barely wide enough to admit Madame, [pg 407] dragging her
box, led upward under a doorway, in a corner at the right.
’Come, dear cheaile, take your bag; don’t mind the rugs, they are safe enough.’
’But where are we to go? There is no one!’ I said, looking round in wonder. It certainly was a strange
reception at an hotel.
’Never mind, my dear cheaile. They know me here, and I have always the same room ready when I write for
it. Follow me quaitely.’
So she mounted, carrying the candle. The stair was steep, and the march long. We halted at the second
landing, and entered a gaunt, grimy passage. All the way up we had not heard a single sound of life, nor
seen a human being, nor so much as passed a gaslight.
And so I did. The room was large and lofty, but shabby and dismal. There was a tall four-post bed, with its
foot beside the window, hung with dark-green curtains, of some plush or velvet texture, that looked like a
- 420 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
dusty pall. The remaining furniture was scant and old, and a ravelled square of threadbare carpet covered a
patch of floor at the bedside. The room was grim and large, and had a cold, vault-like atmosphere, as if long
uninhabited; but there were cinders in the grate and under it. The imperfect light of our mutton-fat candle
made all this look still more comfortless.
Madame placed the candle on the chimneypiece, locked the door, and put the key in her pocket.
And, then with a long ’ha!’ expressive of fatigue and relief, she threw herself into a chair.
’So ’ere we are at last!’ said she; ’I’m glad. There’s your bed, Maud. Mine is in the dressing-room.’
She took the candle, and I went in with her. A shabby press bed, a chair, and table were all its furniture; it
was rather a closet than a dressing-room, and had no door except that through which we had entered. So we
returned, and very tired, wondering, I sat down on the side of my bed and yawned.
[pg 408]
’Oh yes, they never fail,’ she answered, looking steadfastly on her box, which she was diligently uncording.
Uninviting as was my bed, I was longing to lie down in it; and having made those ablutions which our
journey rendered necessary, I at length lay down, having first religiously stuck my talismanic pin, with the
head of sealing-wax, into the bolster.
’Wat is that, dear cheaile?’ she enquired, drawing near and scrutinising the head of the gipsy charm, which
showed like a little ladybird newly lighted on the sheet.
So, with another look and a little twiddle between her finger and thumb, she seemed satisfied; but,
unhappily for me, she did not seem at all sleepy. She busied herself in unpacking and displaying over the
back of the chair a whole series of London purchases—silk dresses, a shawl, a sort of lace demi-coiffure
- 421 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The vainest and most slammakin of women—the merest slut at home, a milliner’s lay figure out of
doors—she had one square foot of looking-glass upon the chimneypiece, and therein tried effects, and
conjured up grotesque simpers upon her sinister and weary face.
I knew that the sure way to prolong this worry was to express my uneasiness under it, so I bore it as quietly
as I could; and at last fell fast asleep with the gaunt image of Madame, with a festoon of grey silk with a
cerise stripe, pinched up in her finger and thumb, and smiling over her shoulder across it into the little
shaving-glass that stood on the chimney.
I awoke suddenly in the morning, and sat up in my bed, having for a moment forgotten all about our
travelling. A moment more, however, brought all back again.
’For the packet?’ she enquired, with one of her charming smiles, and cutting a caper on the floor. ’To be
sure; you don’t suppose they would forget. We have two hours yet to wait.’
[pg 409]
’Time enough, my dear Maud; you are fatigued; are you sure you feel quite well?’
’There is no hurry, you know; you need not even go by the next packet. Your uncle, he tell me, I may use
my discretion.’
- 422 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
She pulled it with alacrity. I afterwards learnt that it did not ring.
’What has become of my gipsy pin?’ I demanded, with an unaccountable sinking of the heart.
’Oh! the little pin with the red top? maybe it ’as fall on the ground; we weel find when you get up.’
I suspected that she had taken it merely to spite me. It would have been quite the thing she would have
liked. I cannot describe to you how the loss of this little ’charm’ depressed and excited me. I searched the
bed; I turned over all the bed-clothes; I searched in and outside; at last I gave up.
And, like a fool as I was, I threw myself on my face on the bed and wept, partly in anger, partly in dismay.
After a time, however, this blew over. I had a hope of recovering it. If Madame had stolen it, it would turn
up yet. But in the meantime its disappearance troubled me like an omen.
’I am afraid, my dear cheaile, you are not very well. It is really very odd you should make such fuss about a
pin! Nobody would believe! Do you not theenk it would be a good plan to take a your breakfast in your
bed?
She continued to urge this point for some time. At last, however, having by this time quite recovered my
self-command, and resolved to preserve ostensibly fair terms with Madame, who could contribute so
essentially to make me wretched during the rest of my journey, and possibly to prejudice me very seriously
on my arrival, I said quietly—
’Well, Madame, I know it is very silly; but I had kept that foolish little pin so long and so carefully, that I
had grown quite fond of it; but I suppose it is lost, and I must content myself, [pg 410] though I cannot
laugh as you do. So I will get up now, and dress.’
’I think you will do well to get all the repose you can,’ answered Madame; ’but as you please,’ she added,
observing that I was getting up.
- 423 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I looked out and saw a dreary quadrangle of cut stone, in one side of which my window was placed. As I
looked a dream rose up before me.
’This hotel,’ I said, in a puzzled way. ’Is it a hotel? Why this is just like—it is the inner court of
Bartram-Haugh!’
Madame clapped her large hands together, made a fantastic chassé on the floor, burst into a great nasal
laugh like the scream of a parrot, and then said—
I was so utterly confounded that I could only stare about me in stupid silence, a spectacle which renewed
Madame’s peals of laughter.
’We are at Bartram-Haugh!’ I repeated, in utter consternation. ’How was this done?’
I had no reply but shrieks of laughter, and one of those Walpurgis dances in which she excelled.
I sat down in total silence, looking out into the deep and dark enclosure, and trying to comprehend the
reality and the meaning of all this.
’Well, Madame, I suppose you will be able to satisfy my uncle of your fidelity and intelligence. But to me it
seems that his money has been ill-spent, and his directions anything but well observed.’
’Ah, ha! Never mind; I think he will forgive me,’ laughed Madame.
Her tone frightened me. I began to think, with a vague but overpowering sense of danger, that she had acted
under the Machiavellian directions of her superior.
- 424 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 411]
’No; but what you have said can have no other meaning, though I can’t believe it. And why have I been
brought here? What is the object of all this duplicity and trick. I will know. It is not possible that my uncle, a
gentleman and a kinsman, can be privy to so disreputable a manouvre.’
’First you will eat your breakfast, dear Maud; next you can tell your story to your uncle, Monsieur Ruthyn;
and then you shall hear what he thinks of my so terrible misconduct. What nonsense, cheaile! Can you not
think how many things may ’appen to change a your uncle’s plans? Is he not in danger to be arrest? Bah!
You are cheaile still; you cannot have intelligence more than a cheaile. Dress yourself, and I will order
breakfast.’
I could not comprehend the strategy which had been practised on me. Why had I been so shamelessly
deceived? If it were decided that I should remain here, for what imaginable reason had I been sent so far on
my journey to France? Why had I been conveyed back with such mystery? Why was I removed to this
uncomfortable and desolate room, on the same floor with the apartment in which Charke had met his death,
and with no window commanding the front of the house, and no view but the deep and weed-choked court,
that looked like a deserted churchyard in a city?
’Not to-day, my dear cheaile, for it was all disarrange when we go ’way; ’twill be ready again in two three
days.’
’Mary Quince!—she has follow us to France,’ said Madame, making what in Ireland they call a bull.
’They are not sure where they will go or what will do for day or two more. I will go and get breakfast.
Adieu for a moment.’
- 425 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Madame was out of the door as she said this, and I thought I heard the key turn in the lock.
[pg 412]
CHAPTER LXII
You who have never experienced it can have no idea how angry and frightened you become under the
sinister insult of being locked into a room, as on trying the door I found I was.
The key was in the lock; I could see it through the hole. I called after Madame, I shook at the solid
oak-door, beat upon it with my hands, kicked it—but all to no purpose.
I rushed into the next room, forgetting—if indeed I had observed it, that there was no door from it upon the
gallery. I turned round in an angry and dismayed perplexity, and, like prisoners in romances, examined the
windows.
I was shocked and affrighted on discovering in reality what they occasionally find—a series of iron bars
crossing the window! They were firmly secured in the oak woodwork of the window-frame, and each
window was, besides, so compactly screwed down that it could not open. This bedroom was converted into
a prison. A momentary hope flashed on me—perhaps all the windows were secured alike! But it was no
such thing: these gaol-like precautions were confined to the windows to which I had access.
For a few minutes I felt quite distracted; but I bethought me that I must now, if ever, control my terrors and
exert whatever faculties I possessed.
I stood upon a chair and examined the oak-work. I thought I detected marks of new chiselling here and
there. The screws, too, looked new; and they and the scars on the woodwork were freshly smeared over with
some coloured stuff by way of disguise.
- 426 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
While I was making these observations, I heard the key stealthily stirred. I suspect that Madame wished to
surprise me. Her approaching step, indeed, was seldom audible; she had the soft tread of the feline tribe.
[pg 413]
I was standing in the centre of the room confronting her when she entered.
She slipped in suddenly with an insidious smirk, and locked the door hastily.
’Hish!’ whispered Madame, raising her broad palm; and then screwing in her cheeks, she made an ogle over
her shoulder in the direction of the passage.
’Hish! be quiate, cheaile, weel you, and I weel tale you everything presently.’
’Now I can speak, ma chère; I weel tale a you there is bailiff in the house, two, three, four soche impertinent
fallows! They have another as bad as themselve to make a leest of the furniture: we most keep them out of
these rooms, dear Maud.’
’You left the key in the door on the outside,’ I retorted; ’that was not to keep them out, but me in, Madame.’
’Deed I leave the key in the door?’ ejaculated Madame, with both hands raised, and such a genuine look of
consternation as for a moment shook me.
It was the nature of this woman’s deceptions that they often puzzled though they seldom convinced me.
’I re-ally think, Maud, all those so frequent changes and excite-ments they weel overturn my poor head.’
’And the windows are secured with iron bars—what are they for?’ I whispered sternly, pointing with my
finger at these grim securities.
’That is for more a than forty years, when Sir Phileep Aylmer was to reside here, and had this room for his
children’s nursery, and was afraid they should fall out.’
- 427 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’But if you look you will find these bars have been put here very recently: the screws and marks are quite
new.’
’Eendeed!’ ejaculated Madame, with prolonged emphasis, in precisely the same consternation. ’Why, my
dear, they told a me down stair what I have tell a you, when I ask the reason! Late a me see.’
And Madame mounted on a chair, and made her scrutiny with much curiosity, but could not agree with me
as to the very recent date of the carpentry.
[pg 414]
There is nothing, I think, so exasperating as that sort of falsehood which affects not to see what is quite
palpable.
’Do you mean to say, Madame, that you really think those chisellings and screws are forty years old?’
’How can I tell, cheaile? What does signify whether it is forty or only fourteen years? Bah! we av other
theeng to theenk about. Those villain men! I am glad to see bar and bolt, and lock and key, at least, to our
room, to keep soche faylows out!’
At that moment a knock came to the door, and Madame’s nasal ’in moment’ answered promptly, and she
opened the door, stealthily popping out her head.
’Hold a your tongue,’ said Madame imperiously to the visitor, whose voice I fancied I recognised—’go
way.’
Out slipped Madame again, locking the door; but this time she returned immediately, bearing a tray with
breakfast.
I think she fancied that I would perhaps attempt to break away and escape; but I had no such thought at that
moment. She hastily set down the tray on the floor at the threshold, locking the door as before.
- 428 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
My share of breakfast was a little tea; but Madame’s digestion was seldom disturbed by her sympathies, and
she ate voraciously. During this process there was a silence unusual in her company; but when her meal was
ended she proposed a reconnaissance, professing much uncertainty as to whether my Uncle had been
arrested or not.
’And in case the poor old gentleman be poot in what you call stone jug, where are we to go my dear
Maud—to Knowl or to Elverston? You must direct.’
And so she disappeared, turning the key in the door as before. It was an old custom of hers, locking herself
in her room, and leaving the key in the lock; and the habit prevailed, for she left it there again.
With a heavy heart I completed my simple toilet, wondering all the while how much of Madame’s story
might be false and how much, if any, true. Then I looked out upon the dingy courtyard below, in its deep
damp shadow, and thought, ’How could an assassin have scaled that height in safety, and entered so
noiselessly as not to awaken the slumbering gamester?’ Then [pg 415] there were the iron bars across my
window. What a fool had I been to object to that security!
I was labouring hard to reassure myself, and keep all ghastly suspicions at arm’s length. But I wished that
my room had been to the front of the house, with some view less dismal.
Lost in these ruminations of fear, as I stood at the window I was startled by the sound of a sharp tread on the
lobby, and by the key turning in the lock of my door.
In a panic I sprang back into the corner, and stood with my eyes fixed upon the door. It opened a little, and
the black head of Meg Hawkes was introduced.
The miller’s daughter was pale, and her eyes, I thought, were red and swollen.
’I darn’t come in. The old un’s gone down, and locked the cross-door, and left me to watch. They think I
care nout about ye, no more nor themselves. I donna know all, but summat more nor her. They tell her nout,
- 429 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
she’s so gi’n to drink; they say she’s not safe, an’ awful quarrelsome. I hear a deal when fayther and Master
Dudley be a-talkin’ in the mill. They think, comin’ in an’ out, I don’t mind; but I put one think an’ t’other
together. An’ don’t ye eat nor drink nout here, Miss; hide away this; it’s black enough, but wholesome
anyhow!’ and she slipt a piece of a coarse loaf from under her apron. ’Hide it mind. Drink nout but the
water in the jug there—it’s clean spring.’
’Oh, Meg! Oh, Meg! I know what you mean,’ said I, faintly.
’Ay, Miss, I’m feared they’ll try it; they’ll try to make away wi’ ye somehow. I’m goin’ to your friends arter
dark; I darn’t try it no sooner. I’ll git awa to Ellerston, to your lady-cousin, and I’ll bring ’em back wi’ me
in a rin; so keep a good hairt, lass. Meg Hawkes will stan’ to ye. Ye were better to me than fayther and
mother, and a’;’ and she clasped me round the waist, and buried her head in my dress; ’an I’ll gie my life for
ye, darling, and if they hurt ye I’ll kill myself.’
’Not a word, lass,’ she said, in her old tone. ’Don’t ye try to git away—they’ll kill ye—ye can’t do’t. Leave
a’ to me. It won’t be, whatever it is, till two or three o’clock in the morning. I’ll [pg 416] ha’e them a’ here
long afore; so keep a brave heart—there’s a darling.’
I suppose she heard, or fancied she heard, a step approaching, for she said—
’Hish!’
Her pale wild face vanished, the door shut quickly and softly, and the key turned again in the lock.
Meg, in her rude way, had spoken softly—almost under her breath; but no prophecy shrieked by the
Pythoness ever thundered so madly in the ears of the hearer. I dare say that Meg fancied I was marvellously
little moved by her words. I felt my gaze grow intense, and my flesh and bones literally freeze. She did not
know that every word she spoke seemed to burst like a blaze in my brain. She had delivered her frightful
warning, and told her story coarsely and bluntly, which, in effect, means distinctly and concisely; and, I dare
say, the announcement so made, like a quick bold incision in surgery, was more tolerable than the slow
imperfect mangling, which falters and recedes and equivocates with torture. Madame was long away. I sat
down at the window, and tried to appreciate my dreadful situation. I was stupid—the imagery was all
frightful; but I beheld it as we sometimes see horrors—heads cut off and houses burnt—in a dream, and
- 430 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
without the corresponding emotions. It did not seem as if all this were really happening to me. I remember
sitting at the window, and looking and blinking at the opposite side of the building, like a person unable but
striving to see an object distinctly, and every minute pressing my hand to the side of my head and saying—
’Oh, it won’t be—it won’t be—Oh no!—never!—it could not be!’ And in this stunned state Madame found
me on her return.
But the valley of the shadow of death has its varieties of dread. The ’horror of great darkness’ is disturbed
by voices and illumed by sights. There are periods of incapacity and collapse, followed by paroxysms of
active terror. Thus in my journey during those long hours I found it—agonies subsiding into lethargies, and
these breaking again into frenzy. I sometimes wonder how I carried my reason safely through the ordeal.
Madame locked the door, and amused herself with her own [pg 417] business, without minding me,
humming little nasal snatches of French airs, as she smirked on her silken purchases displayed in the
daylight. Suddenly it struck me that it was very dark, considering how early it was. I looked at my watch; it
seemed to me a great effort of concentration to understand it. Four o’clock, it said. Four o’clock! It would
be dark at five—night in one hour!
’Madame, what o’clock is it? Is it evening?’ I cried with my hand to my forehead, like a person puzzled.
’Two three minutes past four. It had five minutes to four when I came up-stairs,’ answered she, without
interrupting her examination of a piece of darned lace which she was holding close to her eyes at the
window.
’Oh, Madame! Madame! I’m frightened,’ cried I, with a wild and piteous voice, grasping her arm, and
looking up, as shipwrecked people may their last to heaven, into her inexorable eyes. Madame looked
frightened too, I thought, as she stared into my face. At last she said, rather angrily, and shaking her arm
loose—
’Oh save me, Madame!—oh save me!—oh save me, Madame!’ I pleaded, with the wild monotony of perfect
terror, grasping and clinging to her dress, and looking up, with an agonised face, into the eyes of that
shadowy Atropos.
- 431 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Oh, Madame! Oh, dear Madame! for God’s sake, only get me away—get me from this, and I’ll do
everything you ask me all my life—I will—indeed, Madame, I will! Oh save me! save me! save me!’
’And who told you, cheaile, you are in any danger?’ demanded Madame, looking down on me with a black
and witchlike stare.
’I am, Madame—I am—in great danger! Oh, Madame, think of me—take pity on me! I have none to help
me—there is no one but God and you!’
Madame all this time viewed me with the same dismal stare, like a sorceress reading futurity in my face.
’Well, maybe you are—how can I tell? Maybe your uncle is [pg 418] mad—maybe you are mad. You have
been my enemy always—why should I care?’
Again I burst into wild entreaty, and, clasping her fast, poured forth my supplications with the bitterness of
death.
’I have no confidence in you, little Maud; you are little rogue—petite traîtresse! Reflect, if you can, how
you ’av always treat Madame. You ’av attempt to ruin me—you conspire with the bad domestics at Knowl
to destroy me—and you expect me here to take a your part! You would never listen to me—you ’ad no
mercy for me—you join to hunt me away from your house like wolf. Well, what you expect to find me
now? Bah!’
This terrific ’Bah!’ with a long nasal yell of scorn, rang in my ears like a clap of thunder.
’I say you are mad, petite insolente, to suppose I should care for you more than the poor hare it will care for
the hound—more than the bird who has escape will love the oiseleur. I do not care—I ought not care. It is
your turn to suffer. Lie down on your bed there, and suffer quaitely.’
- 432 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
CHAPTER LXIII
SPICED CLARET
I did not lie down; but I despaired. I walked round and round the room, wringing my hands in utter
distraction. I threw myself at the bedside on my knees. I could not pray; I could only shiver and moan, with
hands clasped, and eyes of horror turned up to heaven. I think Madame was, in her malignant way,
perplexed. That some evil was intended me I am sure she was persuaded; but I dare say Meg Hawkes had
said rightly in telling me that she was not fully in their secrets.
The first paroxysm of despair subsided into another state. All at once my mind was filled with the idea of
Meg Hawkes, her enterprise, and my chances of escape. There is one point at which the road to Elverston
makes a short ascent: there is a sudden [pg 419] curve there, two great ash-trees, with a roadside stile
between, at the right side, covered with ivy. Driving back and forward, I did not recollect having
particularly remarked this point in the highway; but now it was before me, in the thin light of the thinnest
segment of moon, and the figure of Meg Hawkes, her back toward me, always ascending towards Elverston.
It was constantly the same picture—the same motion without progress—the same dreadful suspense and
impatience.
I was now sitting on the side of the bed, looking wistfully across the room. When I did not see Meg Hawkes,
I beheld Madame darkly eyeing first one then another point of the chamber, evidently puzzling over some
problem, and in one of her most savage moods—sometimes muttering to herself, sometimes protruding, and
sometimes screwing up her great mouth.
She went into her own room, where she remained, I think, nearly ten minutes, and on her return there was
that in the flash of her eyes, the glow of her face, and the peculiar fragrance that surrounded her, that
showed she had been partaking of her favourite restorative.
She paused about the middle of the floor, and looked at me with what I can only describe as her wild-beast
stare.
- 433 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’You are a very secrete family, you Ruthyns—you are so coning. I hate the coning people. By my faith, I
weel see Mr. Silas Ruthyn, and ask wat he mean. I heard him tell old Wyat that Mr. Dudley is gone away
to-night. He shall tell me everything, or else I weel make echec et mat aussi vrai que je vis.’
Madame’s words had hardly ceased, when I was again watching Meg Hawkes on the steep road, mounting,
but never reaching, the top of the acclivity, on the way to Elverston, and mentally praying that she might be
brought safely there. Vain prayer of an agonised heart! Meg’s journey was already frustrated: she was not to
reach Elverston in time.
Madame revisited her apartment, and returned, not, I think, improved in temper. She walked about the
room, hustling the scanty furniture hither and thither as she encountered it. She kicked her empty box out of
her way, with a horrid crash, and a curse in French. She strode and swaggered round the room, muttering all
the way, and turning the corners of her course with a furious whisk. At last, out of the door she went. I think
[pg 420] she fancied she had not been sufficiently taken into confidence as to what was intended for me.
It was now growing late, and yet no succour! I was seized, I remember, with a dreadful icy shivering.
I was listening for signals of deliverance. At ever distant sound, half stifled with a palpitation, these sounds
piercing my ear with a horrible and exaggerated distinctness—’Oh Meg!—Oh cousin Monica!—Oh come!
Oh Heaven, have mercy!—Lord, have mercy!’ I thought I heard a roaring and jangle of voices. Perhaps it
came from Uncle Silas’s room. It might be the tipsy violence of Madame. It might—merciful Heaven!—be
the arrival of friends. I started to my feet; I listened, quivering with attention. Was it in my brain?—was it
real? I was at the door, and it seemed to open of itself. Madame had forgotten to lock it; she was losing her
head a little by this time. The key stood in the gallery door beyond; it too, was open. I fled wildly. There
was a subsiding sound of voices in my uncle’s room. I was, I know not how, on the lobby at the great
stair-head outside my uncle’s apartment. My hand was on the banisters, my foot on the first step, when
below me and against the faint light that glimmered through the great window on the landing I saw a bulky
human form ascending, and a voice said ’Hush!’ I staggered back, and at that instant fancied, with a thrill of
conviction, I heard Lady Knollys’s voice in Uncle Silas’ room.
I don’t know how I entered the room; I was there like a ghost. I was frightened at my own state.
Lady Knollys was not there—no one but Madame and my guardian.
- 434 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I can never forget the look that Uncle Silas fixed on me as he cowered, seemingly as appalled as I.
I think I must have looked like a phantom newly risen from the grave.
’Death! death!’ was my whispered answer, as I froze with terror where I stood.
’What does she mean?—what does all this mean?’ said Uncle Silas, recovering wonderfully, and turning
with a withering sneer on Madame. ’Do you think it right to disobey my plain directions, and let her run
about the house at this hour?’ [pg 421] ’Death! death! Oh, pray to God for you and me!’ I whispered in the
same dreadful tones.
My uncle stared strangely at me again; and after several horrible seconds, in which he seemed to have
recovered himself, he said, sternly and coolly—
’You give too much place to your imagination, niece. Your spirits are in an odd state—you ought to have
advice.’
’Oh, uncle, pity me! Oh, uncle, you are good! you’re kind; you’re kind when you think. You could
not—you could not—could not! Oh, think of your brother that was always so good to you! He sees me here.
He sees us both. Oh, save me, uncle—save me!—and I’ll give up everything to you. I’ll pray to God to bless
you—I’ll never forget your goodness and mercy. But don’t keep me in doubt. If I’m to go, oh, for God’s
sake, shoot me now!’
’You were always odd, niece; I begin to fear you are insane,’ he replied, in the same stern icy tone.
’I hope not; but you’ll conduct yourself like a sane person if you wish to enjoy the privileges of one.’
Then, with his finger pointing at me, he turned to Madame, and said, in a tone of suppressed ferocity—
Madame was gabbling volubly, but to me it was only a shrilly noise. My whole soul was concentrated in my
uncle, the arbiter of my life, before whom I stood in the wildest agony of supplication.
- 435 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
That night was dreadful. The people I saw dizzily, made of smoke or shining vapour, smiling or frowning, I
could have passed my hand through them. They were evil spirits.
’There’s no ill intended you; by —— there’s none,’ said my uncle, for the first time violently agitated.
’Madame told you why we’ve changed your room. You told her about the bailiffs, did not you? ’with a
stamp of fury he demanded of Madame, whose nasal roullades of talk were running on like a
accompaniment all the time. She had told me indeed only a few hours since, and now it sounded to me like
the echo of something heard a month ago or more.
’You can’t go about the house, d—n it, with bailiffs in occupation. [pg 422] There now—there’s the whole
thing. Get to your room, Maud, and don’t vex me. There’s a good girl.’
He was trying to smile as he spoke these last words, and, with quavering soft tones, to quiet me; but the old
scowl was there, the smile was corpse-like and contorted, and the softness of his tones was more dreadful
than another man’s ferocity.
’There, Madame, she’ll go quite gently, and you can call if you want help. Don’t let it happen again.’
’Come, Maud,’ said Madame, encircling but not hurting my arm with her grip; ’let us go, my friend.’
I did go, you will wonder, as well you may—as you may wonder at the docility with which strong men walk
through the press-room to the drop, and thank the people of the prison for their civility when they bid them
good-bye, and facilitate the fixing of the rope and adjusting of the cap. Have you never wondered that they
don’t make a last battle for life with the unscrupulous energy of terror, instead of surrendering it so gently in
cold blood, on a silent calculation, the arithmetic of despair?
I went up-stairs with Madame like a somnambulist. I rather quickened my step as I drew near my room. I
went in, and stood a phantom at the window, looking into the dark quadrange. A thin glimmering crescent
hung in the frosty sky, and all heaven was strewn with stars. Over the steep roof at the other side spread on
the dark azure of the night this glorious blazonry of the unfathomable Creator. To me a dreadful
scroll—inexorable eyes—the cloud of cruel witnesses looking down in freezing brightness on my prayers
and agonies.
I turned about and sat down, leaning my head upon my arms. Then suddenly I sat up, as for the first time the
picture of Uncle Silas’s littered room, and the travelling bags and black boxes plied on the floor by his
- 436 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
table—the desk, hat-case, umbrella, coats, rugs, and mufflers, all ready for a journey—reached my brain
and suggested thought. The mise en scène had remained in every detail fixed upon my retina; and how I
wondered—’When is he going—how soon? Is he going to carry me away and place me in a madhouse?’
’Am I—am I mad?’ I began to think. ’Is this all a dream, or is it real?’
I remembered how a thin polite gentleman, with a tall grizzled [pg 423] head and a black velvet waistcoat,
came into the carriage on our journey, and said a few words to me; how Madame whispered him something,
and he murmured ’Oh!’ very gently, with raised eyebrows, and a glance at me, and thenceforward spoke no
more to me, only to Madame, and at the next station carried his hat and other travelling chattels into another
carriage. Had she told him I was mad?
These horrid bars! Madame always with me! The direful hints that dropt from my uncle! My own terrific
sensations!—All these evidences revolved in my brain, and presented themselves in turn like writings on a
wheel of fire.
Oh, Meg! Was it she? No; old Wyat whispered Madame something about her room.
So Madame re-entered, with a little silver tray and flagon in her hands, and a glass. Nothing came from
Uncle Silas in ungentlemanlike fashion.
’Drink, Maud,’ said Madame, raising the cover, and evidently enjoying the fragrant steam.
I could not. I might have done so had I been able to swallow anything—for I was too distracted to think of
Meg’s warning.
Madame suddenly recollected her mistake of that evening, and tried the door; but it was duly locked. She
took the key from her pocket and placed it in her breast.
’You weel ’av these rooms to yourself, ma chère. I shall sleep downstairs to-night.’
She poured out some of the hot claret into the glass abstractedly, and drank it off.
’’Tis very good—I drank without theenk. Bote ’tis very good. Why don’t you drink some?’
- 437 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’Vary polite, certally, to Madame was it to send nothing at all for hair’ (so she pronounced ’her’); ’bote is
all same thing.’ And so she ran on in her tipsy vein, which was loud and sarcastic, with a fierce laugh now
and then.
Afterwards I heard that they were afraid of Madame, who was given to cross purposes, and violent in her
cups. She had been noisy and quarrelsome downstairs. She was under the delusion that I was to be conveyed
away that night to a remote and safe [pg 424] place, and she was to be handsomely compensated for
services and evidence to be afterwards given. She was not to be trusted, however, with the truth. That was to
be known but to three people on earth.
I never knew, but I believe that the spiced claret which Madame drank was drugged. She was a person who
could, I have been told. Drink a great deal without exhibiting any change from it but an inflamed colour and
furious temper. I can only state for certain what I saw, and that was, that shortly after she had finished the
claret she laid down upon my bed, and, I now know, fell asleep. I then thought she was feigning sleep only,
and that she was really watching me.
About an hour after this I suddenly heard a little clink in the yard beneath. I peeped out, but saw nothing.
The sound was repeated, however—sometimes more frequently, sometimes at long intervals. At last, in the
deep shadow next the farther wall, I thought I could discover a figure, sometimes erect, sometimes stooping
and bowing toward the earth. I could see this figure only in the rudest outline mingling with the dark.
After the first dreadful stun I grew quite wild, and ran up and down the room wringing my hands and
gasping prayers to heaven. Then a calm stole over me—such a dreadful calm as I could fancy glide over one
who floated in a boat under the shadow of the ’Traitor’s Gate,’ leaving life and hope and trouble behind.
Shortly after there came a very low tap at my door; then another, like a tiny post-knock. I could never
understand why it was I made no answer. Had I done so, and thus shown that I was awake, it might have
sealed my fate. I was standing in the middle of the floor staring at the door, which I expected to see open,
and admit I knew not what troop of spectres.
- 438 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 425]
CHAPTER LXIV
It was a very still night and frosty. My candle had long burnt out. There was still a faint moonlight, which
fell in a square of yellow on the floor near the window, leaving the rest of the room in what to an eye less
accustomed than mine had become to that faint light would have been total darkness. Now, I am sure, I
heard a soft whispering outside my door. I knew that I was in a state of siege! The crisis was come, and
strange to say, I felt myself grow all at once resolute and self-possessed. It was not a subsidence, however,
of the dreadful excitement, but a sudden screwing-up of my nerves to a pitch such as I cannot describe.
I suppose the people outside moved with great caution; and the perfect solidity of the floor, which had not
anywhere a creaking board in it, favoured their noiseless movements. It was well for me that there were in
the house three persons whom it was part of their plan to mystify respecting my fate. This alone compelled
the extreme caution of their proceedings. They suspected that I had placed furniture against the door, and
were afraid to force it, lest a crash, a scream, perhaps a long and shrilly struggle, might follow.
I remained for a space which I cannot pretend to estimate in the same posture, afraid to stir—afraid to move
my eye from the door.
A very peculiar grating sound above my head startled me from my watch—something of the character of
sawing, only more crunching, and with a faint continued rumble in it—utterly inexplicable. It sounded over
that portion of the roof which was farthest from the door, toward which I now glided; and as I took my stand
under cover of the projecting angle of a clumsy old press that stood close by it, I perceived the room a [pg
426] little darkened, and I saw a man descend and take his stand upon the window-stone. He let go a rope,
which, however, was still fast round his body, and employed both his hands, with apparently some exertion,
about something at the side of the window, which in a moment more, in one mass, bars and all, swung
- 439 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
noiselessly open, admitting the frosty night-air; and the man, whom I now distinctly saw to be Dudley
Ruthyn, kneeled on the sill, and stept, after a moment’s listening, into the room. His foot made no sound
upon the floor; his head was bare, and he wore his usual short shooting-jacket.
I cowered to the ground in my post of observation. He stood, as it seemed to me irresolutely for a moment,
and then drew from his pocket an instrument which I distinctly saw against the faint moonlight. Imagine a
hammer, one end of which had been beaten out into a longish tapering spike, with a handle something
longer than usual. He drew stealthily to the window, and seemed to examine this hurriedly, and tested its
strength with a twist or two of his hand. And then he adjusted it very carefully in his grasp, and made two or
three little experimental picks with it in the air.
I remained perfectly still, with a terrible composure, crouched in my hiding-place, my teeth clenched, and
prepared to struggle like a tigress for my life when discovered. I thought his next measure would be to light
a match. I saw a lantern, I fancied, on the window-sill. But this was not his plan. He stole, in a groping way,
which seemed strange to me, who could distinguish objects in this light, to the side of my bed, the exact
position of which he evidently knew; he stooped over it. Madame was breathing in the deep respiration of
heavy sleep. Suddenly but softly he laid, as it seemed to me, his left hand over her face, and nearly at the
same instant there came a scrunching blow; an unnatural shriek, beginning small and swelling for two or
three seconds into a yell such as are imagined in haunted houses, accompanied by a convulsive sound, as of
the motion of running, and the arms drumming on the bed; and then another blow—and with a horrid gasp
he recoiled a step or two, and stood perfectly still. I heard a horrible tremor quivering through the joints and
curtains of the bedstead—the convulsions of the murdered woman. It was a dreadful sound, like the shaking
of a tree and rustling of leaves. Then once more he steps to the side [pg 427] of the bed, and I heard another
of those horrid blows—and silence—and another—and more silence—and the diabolical surgery was
ended. For a few seconds, I think, I was on the point of fainting; but a gentle stir outside the door, close to
my ear, startled me, and proved that there had been a watcher posted outside. There was a little tapping at
the door.
- 440 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
And a key was introduced, the door quickly unlocked, and Uncle Silas entered. I saw that frail, tall, white
figure, the venerable silver locks that resembled those upon the honoured head of John Wesley, and his thin
white hand, the back of which hung so close to my face that I feared to breathe. I could see his fingers
twitching nervously. The smell of perfumes and of ether entered the room with him.
’There, Dudley, like a dear boy, don’t give way; it’s done. Right or wrong, we can’t help it. You must be
quiet,’ said the old man, with a stern gentleness.
Dudley groaned.
’Come, Dudley, you and Hawkes must use expedition. You know you must get that out of the way.’
’I’ve done too much. I won’t do nout; I’ll not touch it. I wish my hand was off first; I wish I was a soger. Do
as ye like, you an’ Hawkes. I won’t go nigh it; damn ye both—and that!’ and he hurled the hammer with all
his force upon the floor.
’Come, come, be reasonable, Dudley, dear boy. There’s nothing to fear but your own folly. You won’t make
a noise?’
’Oh, oh, my God!’ said Dudley, hoarsely, and wiped his forehead with his open hand.
- 441 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’There now, you’ll be all well in a minute,’ continued the old man.
[pg 428]
’You said ’twouldn’t hurt her. If I’d a known she’d a screeched like that I’d never a done it. ’Twas a damn
lie. You’re the damndest villain on earth.’
’Come, Dudley!’ said the old man under his breath, but very sternly, ’make up your mind. If you don’t
choose to go on, it can’t be helped; only it’s a pity you began. For you it is a good deal—it does not much
matter for me.’
’Ay, for you!’ echoed Dudley, through his set teeth. ’The old talk!’
’Well, sir,’ snarled the old man, in the same low tones, ’you should have thought of all this before. It’s only
taking leave of the world a year or two sooner, but a year or two’s something. I’ll leave you to do as you
please.’
’Stop, will you? Stop here. I know it’s a fixt thing now. If a fella does a thing he’s damned for, you might let
him talk a bit anyhow. I don’t care much if I was shot.’
’There now—there—just stick to that, and don’t run off again. There’s a box and a bag here; we must
change the direction, and take them away. The box has some jewels. Can you see them? I wish we had a
light.’
’No, I’d rayther not; I can see well enough. I wish we were out o’ this. Here’s the box.’
’Pull it to the window,’ said the old man, to my inexpressible relief advancing at last a few steps.
Coolness was given me in that dreadful moment, and I knew that all depended on my being prompt and
resolute. I stood up swiftly. I often thought if I had happened to wear silk instead of the cachmere I had on
that night, its rustle would have betrayed me.
I distinctly saw the tall stooping figure of my uncle, and the outline of his venerable tresses, as he stood
between me and the dull light of the window, like a shape cut in card.
He was saying ’just to there,’ and pointing with his long arm at that contracting patch of moonlight which
lay squared upon the floor. The door was about a quarter open, and just as Dudley began to drag Madame’s
- 442 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
heavy box, with my jewel-case in it, across the floor from her room, inhaling a great breath—with a mental
prayer for help—I glided on tiptoe from the room and found myself on the gallery floor.
I turned to my right, simply by chance, and followed a long [pg 429] gallery in the dark, not running—I was
too fearful of making the least noise—but walking with the tiptoe-swiftness of terror. At the termination of
this was a cross-gallery, one end of which—that to my left—terminated in a great window, through which
the dusky night-view was visible. With the instinct of terror I chose the darker, and turned again to my right;
hurrying through this long and nearly dark passage, I was terrified by a light, about thirty feet before me,
emerging from the ceiling. In spotted patches this light fell through the door and sides of a stable lantern,
and showed me a ladder, down which, from an open skylight I suppose for the cool night-air floated in my
face, came Dickon Hawkes notwithstanding his maimed condition, with so much celerity as to leave me
hardly a moment for consideration.
He sat on the last round of the ladder, and tightened the strap of his wooden leg.
At my left was a door-case open, but no door. I entered; it was a short passage about six feet long, leading
perhaps to a backstair, but the door at the end was locked.
I was forced to stand in this recess, then, which afforded no shelter, while Pegtop stumped by with his
lantern in his hand. I fancy he had some idea of listening to his master unperceived, for he stopped close to
my hiding-place, blew out the candle, and pinched the long snuff with his horny finger and thumb.
Having listened for a few seconds, he stumped stealthily along the gallery which I had just traversed, and
turned the corner in the direction of the chamber where the crime had just been committed, and the
discovery was impending. I could see him against the broad window which in the daytime lighted this long
passage, and the moment he had passed the corner I resumed my flight.
I descended a stair corresponding with that backstair, as I am told, up which Madame had led me only the
night before. I tried the outer door. To my wild surprise it was open. In a moment I was upon the step, in the
free air, and as instantaneously was seized by the arm in the gripe of a man.
It was Tom Brice, who had already betrayed me, and who was now, in surtout and hat, waiting to drive the
carriage with the guilty father and son from the scene of their abhorred outrage.
- 443 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
[pg 430]
CHAPTER LXV
I stood before him on the step, the white moon shining on my face. I was trembling so that I wonder I could
stand, my helpless hands raised towards him, and I looked up in his face. A long shuddering
moan—’Oh—oh—oh!’ was all I uttered.
The man, still holding my arm, looked, I thought frightened, into my white dumb face.
’Never say another word’ (I had not uttered one). ’They shan’t hurt ye, Miss; git ye in; I don’t care a damn!’
It was an uncouth speech. To me it was the voice of an angel. With a burst of gratitude that sounded in my
own ears like a laugh, I thanked God for those blessed words.
In a moment more he had placed me in the carriage, and almost instantly we were in motion—very
cautiously while crossing the court, until he had got the wheels upon the grass, and then at a rapid pace,
improving his speed as the distance increased. He drove along the side of the back-approach to the house,
keeping on the grass; so that our progress, though swaying like that of a ship in a swell, was very nearly as
noiseless.
The gate had been left unlocked—he swung it open, and remounted the box. And we were now beyond the
spell of Bartram-Haugh, thundering—Heaven be praised!—along the Queen’s highway, right in the route to
Elverston. It was literally a gallop. Through the chariot windows I saw Tom stand as he drove, and every
now and then throw an awful glance over his shoulder. Were we pursued? Never was agony of prayer like
- 444 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
mine, as with clasped hands and wild stare I gazed through the windows on the road, whose trees and
hedges and gabled cottages were chasing one another backward at so giddy a speed.
[pg 431]
We were now ascending that identical steep, with the giant ash-trees at the right and the stile between,
which my vision of Meg Hawkes had presented all that night, when my excited eye detected a running
figure within the hedge. I saw the head of some one crossing the stile in pursuit, and I heard Brice’s name
shrieked.
But Brice pulled up. I was on my knees on the floor of the carriage, with clasped hands, expecting capture,
when the door opened, and Meg Hawkes, pale as death, her cloak drawn over her black tresses, looked in.
’Oh!—ho!—ho!—thank God!’ she screamed. ’Shake hands, lass. Tom, yer a good un! He’s a good lad,
Tom.’
’Come in, Meg—you must sit by me,’ I said, recovering all at once.
Meg made no demur. ’Take my hand,’ I said offering mine to her disengaged one.
And so it was, poor thing! She had been espied and overtaken in her errand of mercy for me, and her ruffian
father had felled her with his cudgel, and then locked her into the cottage, whence, however, she had
contrived to escape, and was now flying to Elverston, having tried in vain to get a hearing in Feltram, whose
people had been for hours in bed.
The door being shut upon Meg, the steaming horses were instantly at a gallop again.
Tom was still watching as before, with many an anxious glance to rearward, for pursuit. Again he pulled up,
and came to the window.
- 445 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
’’Bout that letter, Miss; I couldn’t help. ’Twas Dickon, he found it in my pocket. That’s a’.’
’Thanks—thank you—you’re very good—I shall always thank you, Tom, as long as I live!’
At length we entered Elverston. I think I was half wild. I don’t know how I got into the hall. I was in the
oak-parlour, I [pg 432] believe, when I saw cousin Monica. I was standing, my arms extended. I could not
speak; but I ran with a loud long scream into her arms. I forget a great deal after that.
CONCLUSION
Oh, my beloved cousin Monica! Thank Heaven, you are living still, and younger, I think, than I in all things
but in years.
And Milly, my dear companion, she is now the happy wife of that good little clergyman, Sprigge Biddlepen.
It has been in my power to be of use to them, and he shall have the next presentation to Dawling.
Meg Hawkes, proud and wayward, and the most affectionate creature on earth, was married to Tom Brice a
few months after these events; and, as both wished to emigrate, I furnished them with the capital, and I am
told they are likely to be rich. I hear from my kind Meg often, and she seems very happy.
My dear old friends, Mary Quince and Mrs. Rusk, are, alas! growing old, but living with me, and very
happy. And after long solicitation, I persuaded Doctor Bryerly, the best and truest of ministers, with my
dearest friend’s concurrence, to undertake the management of the Derbyshire estates. In this I have been
most fortunate. He is the very person for such a charge—so punctual, so laborious, so kind, and so shrewd.
In compliance with medical advice, cousin Monica hurried me away to the Continent, where she would
never permit me to allude to the terrific scenes which remain branded so awfully on my brain. It needed no
- 446 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
The plan was craftily devised. Neither old Wyat nor Giles, the butler, had a suspicion that I had returned to
Bartram. Had I been put to death, the secret of my fate would have been deposited in the keeping of four
persons only—the two Ruthyns, Hawkes, and ultimately Madame. My dear cousin Monica had been artfully
led to believe in my departure for France, and [pg 433] prepared for my silence. Suspicion might not have
been excited for a year after my death, and then would never, in all probability, have pointed to Bartram as
the scene of the crime. The weeds would have grown over me, and I should have lain in that deep grave
where the corpse of Madame de la Rougierre was unearthed in the darksome quadrangle of Bartram-Haugh.
It was more than two years after that I heard what had befallen at Bartram after my flight. Old Wyat, who
went early to Uncle Silas’s room, to her surprise—for he had told her that he was that night to accompany
his son, who had to meet the mailtrain to Derby at five o’clock in the morning—saw her old master lying on
the sofa, much in his usual position.
’There was nout much strange about him,’ old Wyat said, ’but that his scent-bottle was spilt on its side over
on the table, and he dead.’
She thought he was not quite cold when she found him, and she sent the old butler for Doctor Jolks, who
said he died of too much ’loddlum.’
Of my wretched uncle’s religion what am I to say? Was it utter hypocrisy, or had it at any time a vein of
sincerity in it? I cannot say. I don’t believe that he had any heart left for religion, which is the highest form
of affection, to take hold of. Perhaps he was a sceptic with misgivings about the future, but past the time for
finding anything reliable in it. The devil approached the citadel of his heart by stealth, with many zigzags
and parallels. The idea of marrying me to his son by fair means, then by foul, and, when that wicked chance
was gone, then the design of seizing all by murder, supervened. I dare say that Uncle Silas thought for a
while that he was a righteous man. He wished to have heaven and to escape hell, if there were such places.
But there were other things whose existence was not speculative, of which some he coveted, and some he
dreaded more, and temptation came. ’Now if any man build upon this foundation, gold, silver, precious
stones, wood, hay, stubble, every man’s work shall be made manifest; for the day shall declare it, because it
shall be revealed by fire; and the fire shall try every man’s work of what sort it is.’ There comes with old
age a time when the heart is no longer fusible or malleable, and must retain the form in which it has cooled
down. ’He [pg 434] that is unjust, let him be unjust still; he which is filthy, let him be filthy still.’
- 447 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
Dudley had disappeared; but in one of her letters, Meg, writing from her Australian farm, says: ’There’s a
fella in toon as calls hisself Colbroke, wi’ a good hoose o’ wood, 15 foot length, and as by ’bout as silling o’
the pearler o’ Bartram—only lots o’ rats, they do say, my lady—a bying and sellin’ of goold back and
forred wi’ the diggin foke and the marchants. His chick and mouth be wry wi’ scar o’ burns or vitterel, an’
no wiskers, bless you; but my Tom ee toll him he knowed him for Master Doodley. I ant seed him; but he
sade ad shute Tom soon is look at ’im, an’ denide it, wi’ mouthful o’ curses and oaf. Tom baint right shure;
if I seed un wons i’d no for sartin; but ’appen,’twil best be let be.’ This was all.
Old Hawkes stood his ground, relying on the profound cunning with which their actual proceedings had
been concealed, even from the suspicions of the two inmates of the house, and on the mystery that
habitually shrouded Bartram-Haugh and all its belongings from the eyes of the outer world.
Strangely enough, he fancied that I had made my escape long before the room was entered; and, even if he
were arrested, there was no evidence, he was certain, to connect him with the murder, all knowledge of
which he would stoutly deny.
There was an inquest on the body of my uncle, and Dr. Jolks was the chief witness. They found that his
death was caused by ’an excessive dose of laudanum, accidentally administered by himself.’
It was not until nearly a year after the dreadful occurrences at Bartram that Dickon Hawkes was arrested on
a very awful charge, and placed in gaol. It was an old crime, committed in Lancashire, that had found him
out. After his conviction, as a last chance, he tried a disclosure of all the circumstances of the unsuspected
death of the Frenchwoman. Her body was discovered buried where he indicated, in the inner court of
Bartram-Haugh, and, after due legal enquiry, was interred in the churchyard of Feltram.
Thus I escaped the horrors of the witness-box, or the far worse torture of a dreadful secret.
Doctor Bryerly, shortly after Lady Knollys had described to [pg 435] him the manner in which Dudley
entered my room, visited the house of Bartram-Haugh, and minutely examined the windows of the room in
which Mr. Charke had slept on the night of his murder. One of these he found provided with powerful steel
hinges, very craftily sunk and concealed in the timber of the window-frame, which was secured by an iron
pin outside, and swung open on its removal. This was the room in which they had placed me, and this the
contrivance by means of which the room had been entered. The problem of Mr. Charke’s murder was
solved.
- 448 -
Uncle Silas by Joseph Sheridan Le Fanu
I have penned it. I sit for a moment breathless. My hands are cold and damp. I rise with a great sigh, and
look out on the sweet green landscape and pastoral hills, and see the flowers and birds and the waving
boughs of glorious trees—all images of liberty and safety; and as the tremendous nightmare of my youth
melts into air, I lift my eyes in boundless gratitude to the God of all comfort, whose mighty hand and
outstretched arm delivered me. When I lower my eyes and unclasp my hands, my cheeks are wet with tears.
A tiny voice is calling me ’Mamma!’ and a beloved smiling face, with his dear father’s silken brown tresses,
peeps in.
I am Lady Ilbury, happy in the affection of a beloved and noblehearted husband. The shy useless girl you
have known is now a mother—trying to be a good one; and this, the last pledge, has lived.
I am not going to tell of sorrows—how brief has been my pride of early maternity, or how beloved were
those whom the Lord gave and the Lord has taken away. But sometimes as, smiling on my little boy, the
tears gather in my eyes, and he wonders, I can see, why they come, I am thinking—and trembling while I
smile—to think, how strong is love, how frail is life; and rejoicing while I tremble that, in the deathless love
of those who mourn, the Lord of Life, who never gave a pang in vain, conveys the sweet and ennobling
promise of a compensation by eternal reunion. So, through my sorrows, I have heard a voice from heaven
say, ’Write, from hencefore blessed are the dead that die in the Lord!’
[pg 436]
This world is a parable—the habitation of symbols—the phantoms of spiritual things immortal shown in
material shape. May the blessed second-sight be mine—to recognise under these beautiful forms of earth the
ANGELS who wear them; for I am sure we may walk with them if we will, and hear them speak!
- 449 -